Quotations.ch
  Directory : Clarissa, Volume 3 (of 9)
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • Project Gutenberg's Clarissa, Volume 3 (of 9), by Samuel Richardson
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: Clarissa, Volume 3 (of 9)
  • Author: Samuel Richardson
  • Release Date: February, 2006 [EBook #9881]
  • Posting Date: August 1, 2009
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CLARISSA, VOLUME 3 (OF 9) ***
  • Produced by Julie C. Sparks
  • CLARISSA HARLOWE
  • or the
  • HISTORY OF A YOUNG LADY
  • By Samuel Richardson
  • Nine Volumes
  • Volume III.
  • LETTERS OF VOLUME III
  • LETTER I. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Is astonished, confounded, aghast.
  • Repeats her advice to marry Lovelace.
  • LETTER II. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Gives a particular account of her
  • meeting Lovelace; of her vehement contention with him; and, at last,
  • of her being terrified out of her predetermined resolution, and tricked
  • away. Her grief and compunction of heart upon it. Lays all to the fault
  • of corresponding with him at first against paternal prohibition. Is
  • incensed against him for his artful dealings with her, and for his
  • selfish love.
  • LETTER III. Mr. Lovelace to Joseph Leman.--A letter which lays open the
  • whole of his contrivance to get off Clarissa.
  • LETTER IV. Joseph Leman. In answer.
  • LETTER V. Lovelace to Belford.--In ecstasy on the success of his
  • contrivances. Well as he loves Clarissa, he would show her no mercy, if
  • he thought she preferred any man living to him. Will religiously observe
  • the INJUNCTIONS she laid upon him previous to their meeting.
  • LETTER VI. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--A recriminating conversation between
  • her and Lovelace. He reminds her of her injunctions; and, instead of
  • beseeching her to dispense with them, promises a sacred regard to them.
  • It is not, therefore, in her power, she tells Miss Howe, to take her
  • advice as to speedy marriage. [A note on the place, justifying her
  • conduct.] Is attended by Mrs. Greme, Lord M.'s housekeeper at The Lawn,
  • who waits on her to her sister Sorlings, with whom she consents to
  • lodge. His looks offend her. Has written to her sister for her clothes.
  • LETTER VII. Lovelace to Belford.--Gives briefly the particulars of
  • his success. Describes her person and dress on her first meeting him.
  • Extravagant exultation. Makes Belford question him on the honour of his
  • designs by her: and answers doubtfully.
  • LETTER VIII. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Her sentiments on her narrative.
  • Her mother, at the instigation of Antony Harlowe, forbids their
  • correspondence. Mr. Hickman's zeal to serve them in it. What her family
  • now pretend, if she had not left them. How they took her supposed
  • projected flight. Offers her money and clothes. Would have her seem to
  • place some little confidence in Lovelace. Her brother and sister will
  • not permit her father and uncles to cool.
  • LETTER IX. X. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Advises her to obey her mother, who
  • prohibits their correspondence. Declines to accept her offers of money:
  • and why. Mr. Lovelace not a polite man. She will be as ready to place a
  • confidence in him, as he will be to deserve it. Yet tricked away by him
  • as she was, cannot immediately treat him with great complaisance. Blames
  • her for her liveliness to her mother. Encloses the copy of her letter to
  • her sister.
  • LETTER XI. Lovelace to Belford.--Prides himself in his arts in the
  • conversations between them. Is alarmed at the superiority of her
  • talents. Considers opposition and resistance as a challenge to do his
  • worst. His artful proceedings with Joseph Leman.
  • LETTER XII. From the same.--Men need only be known to be rakes, he says,
  • to recommend themselves to the favour of the sex. Wishes Miss Howe were
  • not so well acquainted with Clarissa: and why.
  • LETTER XIII. From the same.--Intends to set old Antony at Mrs. Howe, to
  • prevent the correspondence between the two young ladies. Girl, not gold,
  • his predominant passion. Rallies Belford on his person and appearance.
  • Takes humourous notice of the two daughters of the widow Sorlings.
  • LETTER XIV. From the same.--Farther triumphs over the Harlowes.
  • Similitude of the spider and fly. Is for having separate churches as
  • well as separate boarding-schools for the sexes. The women ought to love
  • him, he says: and why. Prides himself that they do.
  • LETTER XV. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Particulars of an angry conference
  • with Lovelace. Seeing her sincerely displeased, he begs the ceremony may
  • immediately pass. He construes her bashful silence into anger, and vows
  • a sacred regard to her injunctions.
  • LETTER XVI. XVII. XVIII. Lovelace to Belford.--The pleasure of a
  • difficult chace. Triumphs in the distress and perplexity he gave her by
  • his artful and parading offer of marriage. His reasons for and against
  • doing her justice. Resolves to try her to the utmost. The honour of the
  • whole sex concerned in the issue of her trial. Matrimony, he sees, is in
  • his power, now she is.
  • LETTER XIX. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Will not obey her mother in her
  • prohibition of their correspondence: and why. Is charmed with her
  • spirit.
  • LETTER XX. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Knows not what she can do with
  • Lovelace. He may thank himself for the trouble he has had on her
  • account. Did she ever, she asks, make him any promises? Did she ever
  • receive him as a lover?
  • LETTER XXI. XXII. From the same.--She calls upon Lovelace to give her a
  • faithful account of the noise and voices she heard at the garden-door,
  • which frightened her away with him. His confession, and daring hints in
  • relation to Solmes, and her brother, and Betty Barnes. She is terrified.
  • LETTER XXIII. Lovelace to Belford.--Rejoices in the stupidity of the
  • Harlowes. Exults in his capacity for mischief. The condescensions
  • to which he intends to bring the lady. Libertine observations to the
  • disadvantage of women; which may serve as cautions to the sex.
  • LETTER XXIV. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--A conversation with Mr. Lovelace
  • wholly agreeable. His promises of reformation. She remembers, to his
  • advantage, his generosity to his Rosebud and his tenants. Writes to her
  • aunt Hervey.
  • LETTER XXV. XXVI. Lovelace to Belford.--His acknowledged vanity.
  • Accounts for his plausible behaviour, and specious promises and
  • proposals. Apprehensive of the correspondence between Miss Howe and
  • Clarissa. Loves to plague him with out-of-the-way words and phrases.
  • LETTER XXVII. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--How to judge of Lovelace's
  • suspicious proposals and promises. Hickman devoted to their service. Yet
  • she treats him with ridicule.
  • LETTER XXVIII. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Lovelace complains, she hears, to
  • Mrs. Greme, of her adhering to her injunctions. What means he by it, she
  • asks, yet forego such opportunities as he had? She is punished for her
  • vanity in hoping to be an example. Blames Miss Howe for her behaviour to
  • Hickman.
  • LETTER XXIX. From the same.--Warm dialogues with Lovelace. She is
  • displeased with him for his affectedly-bashful hints of matrimony.
  • Mutual recriminations. He looks upon her as his, she says, by a strange
  • sort of obligation, for having run away with her against her will. Yet
  • but touches on the edges of matrimony neither. She is sick of herself.
  • LETTER XXX. From the same.--Mr. Lovelace a perfect Proteus. He now
  • applauds her for that treatment of him which before he had resented; and
  • communicates to her two letters, one from Lady Betty Lawrance, the other
  • from Miss Montague. She wonders he did not produce those letters before,
  • as he must know they would be highly acceptable to her.
  • LETTER XXXI. XXXII. XXXIII. XXXIV. From the same.--The contents of the
  • letters from Lady Betty and Miss Montague put Clarissa in good humour
  • with Mr. Lovelace. He hints at marriage; but pretends to be afraid of
  • pursuing the hint. She is earnest with him to leave her: and why.
  • He applauds her reasonings. Her serious questions, and his ludicrous
  • answer.--He makes different proposals.--He offers to bring Mrs. Norton
  • to her. She is ready to blame herself for her doubts of him: but
  • gives reasons for her caution.--He writes by her consent to his friend
  • Doleman, to procure lodgings for her in town.
  • LETTER XXXV. Lovelace to Belford.--Glories in his contrivances. Gives
  • an advantageous description of Clarissa's behaviour. Exults on her
  • mentioning London. None but impudent girls, he says, should run away
  • with a man. His farther views, plots, and designs.
  • LETTER XXXVI. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Humourously touches on her
  • reproofs in relation to Hickman. Observations on smooth love. Lord
  • M.'s family greatly admire her. Approves of her spirited treatment of
  • Lovelace, and of her going to London. Hints at the narrowness of her own
  • mother. Advises her to keep fair with Lovelace.
  • LETTER XXXVII. XXXVIII. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Wonders not that her
  • brother has weight to make her father irreconcilable.--Copy of Mr.
  • Doleman's answer about London lodgings. Her caution in her choice of
  • them. Lovelace has given her five guineas for Hannah. Other instances of
  • his considerateness. Not displeased with her present prospects.
  • LETTER XXXIX. Lovelace to Belford.--Explains what is meant by Doleman's
  • answer about the lodgings. Makes Belford object to his scheme, that
  • he may answer the objections. Exults. Swells. Despises every body.
  • Importance of the minutiae. More of his arts, views, and contrivances.
  • LETTER XL. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Acquaints her with a scheme formed
  • by her brother and captain Singleton, to carry her off. Hickman's silent
  • charities. She despises all his sex, as well as him. Ill terms on which
  • her own father and mother lived. Extols Clarissa for her domestic good
  • qualities. Particulars of a great contest with her mother, on their
  • correspondence. Has been slapt by her. Observations on managing wives.
  • LETTER XLI. XLII. XLIII. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--A strong remonstrance
  • on her behaviour to her mother; in which she lays down the duty of
  • children. Accuses her of want of generosity to Hickman. Farther excuses
  • herself on declining to accept of her money offers. Proposes a condition
  • on which Mrs. Howe may see all they write.
  • LETTER XLIV. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Her mother rejects the proposed
  • condition. Miss Howe takes thankfully her reprehensions: but will
  • continue the correspondence. Some excuses for herself. Humourous story
  • of game-chickens.
  • LETTER XLV. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Lovelace communicates her brother's
  • and Singleton's project; but treats it with seeming contempt. She asks
  • his advice what to do upon it. This brings on an offer of marriage from
  • him. How it went off.
  • LETTER XLVI. Lovelace to Belford.--He confesses his artful intentions in
  • the offer of marriage: yet had like, he says, to have been caught in his
  • own snares.
  • LETTER XLVII. Joseph Leman to Mr. Lovelace.--With intelligence of a
  • design formed against him by the Harlowes. Joseph's vile hypocrisy and
  • selfishness.
  • LETTER XLVIII. Lovelace. In answer.--Story of Miss Betterton. Boast of
  • his treatment of his mistresses. The artful use he makes of Joseph's
  • intelligence.
  • LETTER XLIX. Clarissa to her aunt Hervey.--Complains of her silence.
  • Hints at her not having designed to go away with Lovelace. She will open
  • her whole heart to her, if she encourage her to do so, by the hopes of a
  • reconciliation.
  • LETTER L. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Observations on Lovelace's meanness,
  • pride, and revenge. Politeness not to be expected from him. She raves
  • at him for the artful manner in which he urges Clarissa to marry him.
  • Advises her how to act in her present situation.
  • LETTER LI. Belford to Lovelace.--Becomes a warm advocate for the lady.
  • Gives many instructive reasons to enforce his arguments in her favour.
  • LETTER LII. Mrs. Hervey to Clarissa.--A severe and cruel letter in
  • answer to her's, Letter XLIX. It was not designed, she says, absolutely
  • to force her to marry to her dislike.
  • LETTER LIII. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--Her deep regret on this
  • intelligence, for having met Lovelace. The finer sensibilities make
  • not happy. Her fate too visibly in her power. He is unpolite, cruel,
  • insolent, unwise, a trifler in his own happiness. Her reasons why she
  • less likes him than ever. Her soul his soul's superior. Her fortitude.
  • Her prayer.
  • LETTER LIV. LV. From the same.--Now indeed is her heart broken, she
  • says. A solemn curse laid upon her by her father. Her sister's barbarous
  • letters on the occasion.
  • LETTER LVI. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--A letter full of generous
  • consolation and advice. Her friendly vow. Sends her fifty guineas in the
  • leaves of a Norris's miscellanies.
  • LETTER LVII. Clarissa to Miss Howe.--A faithful friend the medicine of
  • life. She is just setting out for London. Lovelace has offered marriage
  • to her in so unreserved a manner, that she wishes she had never written
  • with diffidence of him. Is sorry it was not in her power to comply with
  • his earnest solicitations. Returns her Norris: and why.
  • LETTER LVIII. LIX. Miss Howe to Clarissa.--Sorry she has returned
  • her Norris. Wishes she had accepted of Lovelace's unreserved offer of
  • marriage. Believes herself to have a sneaking kindness for Hickman: and
  • why. She blames Mrs. Harlowe: and why.
  • In answer to Letter VIII. Clarissa states the difference in the
  • characters of Mr. Lovelace and Mr. Hickman; and tells her, that her
  • motives for suspending marriage were not merely ceremonious ones.
  • Regrets Mrs. Howe's forbidding the correspondence between them. Her
  • dutiful apology for her own mother. Lesson to children.
  • LETTER LX. Lovelace to Belford.--Thinks he shall be inevitably manacled
  • at last. The lady's extreme illness. Her filial piety gives her dreadful
  • faith in a father's curses. She lets not Miss Howe know how very ill she
  • was. His vows of marriage bring her back to life. Absolutely in earnest
  • in those vows. [The only time he was so.] He can now talk of love and
  • marriage without check. Descants upon Belford's letter, No. LI.
  • LETTER LXI. From the same.--Is setting out for London. A struggle with
  • his heart. Owns it to be a villain of a heart. A fit of strong, but
  • transitory remorse. If he do marry, he doubts he shall have a vapourish
  • wife. Thinks it would be better for both not to marry. His libertine
  • reasons. Lessons to the sex.
  • LETTER LXII. From the same.--They arrive at Mrs. Sinclair's. Sally
  • Martin and Polly Horton set upon him. He wavers in his good purposes.
  • Dorcas Wykes proposed, and reluctantly accepted for a servant, till
  • Hannah can come. Dorcas's character. He has two great points to carry.
  • What they are.
  • THE HISTORY OF CLARISSA HARLOWE
  • LETTER I
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE TUESDAY, NINE O'CLOCK.
  • I write, because you enjoin me to do so. Love you still!--How can I
  • help it, if I would? You may believe how I stand aghast, your letter
  • communicating the first news--Good God of Heaven and Earth!--But what
  • shall I say?--I am all impatient for particulars.
  • Lord have mercy upon me!--But can it be?
  • My mother will indeed be astonished!--How can I tell it her!--It was
  • but last night (upon some jealousies put into her head by your foolish
  • uncle) that I assured her, and this upon the strength of your own
  • assurances, that neither man nor devil would be able to induce you to
  • take a step that was in the least derogatory to the most punctilious
  • honour.
  • But, once more, can it be? What woman at this rate!--But, God preserve
  • you!
  • Let nothing escape you in your letters. Direct them for me, however, to
  • Mrs. Knolly's, till further notice.
  • *****
  • Observe, my dear, that I don't blame you by all this--Your relations
  • only are in fault!--Yet how you came to change your mind is the
  • surprising thing.
  • How to break it to my mother, I know not. Yet if she hear it first
  • from any other, and find I knew it before, she will believe it to be my
  • connivance!--Yet, as I hope to live, I know not how to break it to her.
  • But this is teasing you.--I am sure, without intention.
  • Let me now repeat my former advice--If you are not married by this time,
  • be sure delay not the ceremony. Since things are as they are, I wish it
  • were thought that you were privately married before you went away. If
  • these men plead AUTHORITY to our pain, when we are theirs--Why should we
  • not, in such a case as this, make some good out of the hated word, for
  • our reputation, when we are induced to violate a more natural one?
  • Your brother and sister [that vexes me almost as much as any thing!]
  • have now their ends. Now, I suppose, will go forward alterations of
  • wills, and such-like spiteful doings.
  • *****
  • Miss Lloyd and Miss Biddulph this moment send up their names. They
  • are out of breath, Kitty says, to speak to me--easy to guess their
  • errand;--I must see my mother, before I see them. I have no way but to
  • shew her your letter to clear myself. I shall not be able to say a
  • word, till she has run herself out of her first breath.--Forgive me, my
  • dear--surprise makes me write thus. If your messenger did not wait, and
  • were not those young ladies below, I could write it over again, for fear
  • of afflicting you.
  • I send what you write for. If there be any thing else you want that is
  • in my power, command without reserve
  • Your ever affectionate ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER II.
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE. TUESDAY NIGHT.
  • I think myself obliged to thank you, my dear Miss Howe, for your
  • condescension, in taking notice of a creature who has occasioned you so
  • much scandal.
  • I am grieved on this account, as much, I verily think, as for the evil
  • itself.
  • Tell me--but yet I am afraid to know--what your mother said.
  • I long, and yet I dread, to be told, what the young ladies my
  • companions, now never more perhaps to be so, say of me.
  • They cannot, however, say worse of me than I will of myself. Self
  • accusation shall flow in every line of my narrative where I think I am
  • justly censurable. If any thing can arise from the account I am going to
  • give you, for extenuation of my fault (for that is all a person can
  • hope for, who cannot excuse herself) I know I may expect it from your
  • friendship, though not from the charity of any other: since by this time
  • I doubt not every mouth is opened against me; and all that know Clarissa
  • Harlowe condemn the fugitive daughter.
  • After I had deposited my letter to you, written down to the last hour,
  • as I may say, I returned to the ivy summer-house; first taking back my
  • letter from the loose bricks: and there I endeavoured, as coolly as my
  • situation would permit, to recollect and lay together several incidents
  • that had passed between my aunt and me; and, comparing them with some of
  • the contents of my cousin Dolly's letter, I began to hope, that I needed
  • not to be so very apprehensive as I have been of next Wednesday. And
  • thus I argued with myself.
  • 'Wednesday cannot possibly be the day they intend, although to
  • intimidate me they may wish me to think it is: for the settlements are
  • unsigned: nor have they been offered me to sign. I can choose whether I
  • will or will not put my hand to them; hard as it will be to refuse if my
  • father and mother propose, if I made compulsion necessary, to go to my
  • uncle's themselves in order to be out of the way of my appeals? Whereas
  • they intend to be present on Wednesday. And, however affecting to me the
  • thought of meeting them and all my friends in full assembly is, perhaps
  • it is the very thing I ought to wish for: since my brother and sister
  • had such an opinion of my interest in them, that they got me excluded
  • from their presence, as a measure which they thought previously
  • necessary to carry on their designs.
  • 'Nor have I reason to doubt, but that (as I had before argued with
  • myself) I shall be able to bring over some of my relations to my party;
  • and, being brought face to face with my brother, that I shall expose his
  • malevolence, and of consequence weaken his power.
  • 'Then supposing the very worst, challenging the minister as I shall
  • challenge him, he will not presume to proceed: nor surely will Mr.
  • Solmes dare to accept my refusing and struggling hand. And finally,
  • if nothing else will do, nor procure me delay, I can plead scruples of
  • conscience, and even pretend prior obligation; for, my dear, I have give
  • Mr. Lovelace room to hope (as you will see in one of my letters in your
  • hands) that I will be no other man's while he is single, and gives me
  • not wilful and premeditated cause of offence against him; and this in
  • order to rein-in his resentment on the declared animosity of my brother
  • and uncles to him. And as I shall appeal, or refer my scruples on this
  • head, to the good Dr. Lewen, it is impossible but that my mother and
  • aunt (if nobody else) must be affected with this plea.'
  • Revolving cursorily these things, I congratulated myself, that I had
  • resolved against going away with Mr. Lovelace.
  • I told you, my dear, that I would not spare myself: and I enumerate
  • these particulars as so many arguments to condemn the actions I have
  • been so unhappily betrayed into. An argument that concludes against me
  • with the greater force, as I must acknowledge, that I was apprehensive,
  • that what my cousin Dolly mentions as from Betty, and from my sister who
  • told her, that she should tell me, in order to make me desperate, and
  • perhaps to push me upon some such step as I have been driven to take, as
  • the most effectual means to ruin me with my father and uncles.
  • God forgive me, if I judge too harshly of their views!--But if I do not,
  • it follows, that they laid a wicked snare for me; and that I have been
  • caught in it.--And now they triumph, if they can triumph, in the ruin of
  • a sister, who never wished or intended to hurt them!
  • As the above kind of reasoning had lessened my apprehensions as to the
  • Wednesday, it added to those I had of meeting Mr. Lovelace--now, as it
  • seemed, not only the nearest, but the heaviest evil; principally indeed
  • because nearest; for little did I dream (foolish creature that I
  • was, and every way beset!) of the event proving what it has proved. I
  • expected a contention with him, 'tis true, as he had not my letter: but
  • I thought it would be very strange, as I mentioned in one of my former,*
  • if I, who had so steadily held out against characters so venerable,
  • against authorities so sacred, as I may say, when I thought them
  • unreasonably exerted, should not find myself more equal to such a trial
  • as this; especially as I had so much reason to be displeased with him
  • for not having taken away my letter.
  • On what a point of time may one's worldly happiness depend! Had I but
  • two hours more to consider of the matter, and to attend to and improve
  • upon these new lights, as I may call them--but even then, perhaps, I
  • might have given him a meeting.--Fool that I was! what had I to do to
  • give him hope that I would personally acquaint him with the reason for
  • my change of mind, if I did change it?
  • O my dear! an obliging temper is a very dangerous temper!--By
  • endeavouring to gratify others, it is evermore disobliging itself!
  • When the bell rang to call the servants to dinner, Betty came to me
  • and asked, if I had any commands before she went to hers; repeating
  • her hint, that she should be employed; adding, that she believed it was
  • expected that I should not come up till she came down, or till I saw my
  • aunt or Miss Hervey.
  • I asked her some questions about the cascade, which had been out of
  • order, and lately mended; and expressed a curiosity to see how it
  • played, in order to induce her [how cunning to cheat myself, as it
  • proved!] to go thither, if she found me not where she left me; it being
  • a part of the garden most distant from the ivy summer-house.
  • She could hardly have got into the house when I heard the first
  • signal--O how my heart fluttered!--but no time was to be lost. I
  • stept to the garden-door; and seeing a clear coast, unbolted the
  • already-unlocked door--and there was he, all impatience, waiting for me.
  • A panic next to fainting seized me when I saw him. My heart seemed
  • convulsed; and I trembled so, that I should hardly have kept my feet,
  • had he not supported me.
  • Fear nothing, dearest creature, said he--let us hasten away--the chariot
  • is at hand--and, by this sweet condescension, you have obliged me beyond
  • expression or return.
  • Recovering my spirits a little, as he kept drawing me after him, O Mr.
  • Lovelace, said I, I cannot go with you--indeed I cannot--I wrote you
  • word so--let go my hand, and you shall see my letter. It is lain there
  • from yesterday morning, till within this half-hour. I bid you watch to
  • the last for a letter from me, lest I should be obliged to revoke the
  • appointment; and, had you followed the direction, you would have found
  • it.
  • I have been watched, my dearest life, said he, half out of breath--I
  • have been watched in every step I took: and my trusty servant has been
  • watched too, ever since Saturday; and dared not to come near your
  • wall. And here we shall be discovered in a moment.--Speed away, my
  • charmer--this is the moment of your deliverance--if you neglect this
  • opportunity, you can never have such another.
  • What is it you mean, Sir?--Let go my hand: for I tell you [struggling
  • vehemently] that I will sooner die than go with you.
  • Good God! said he, with a look of wildness and surprise, what is it I
  • hear?--But [still drawing me after him, as he retreated farther from the
  • door] it is no time to argue--by all that's good you must go--surely you
  • cannot doubt my honour, nor give me cause to question your own.
  • As you value me, Mr. Lovelace, urge me no farther. I come fixed and
  • resolved. Let me give you the letter I have written. My further reasons
  • shall follow; and they will convince you that I ought not to go.
  • Nothing, Madam, can convince me--by all that's sacred, I will not leave
  • you. To leave you now, would be to lose you for ever--
  • Am I to be thus compelled? interrupted I, with equal indignation and
  • vehemence.--Let go my hands--I am resolved not to go with you--and I
  • will convince you that I ought not.
  • All my friends expect you, Madam--all your own are determined against
  • you--Wednesday next is the day, the important, perhaps the fatal day!
  • Would you stay to be Solmes's wife?--Can this be your determination at
  • last?
  • No, never, never will I be that man's--But I will not go with you! [draw
  • me not thus--How dare you, Sir? I would not have seen you, but to tell
  • you so]. I had not met you, but for fear you would have been guilty of
  • some rashness--and, once more, I will not go--What mean you?--striving
  • with all my force to get from him.
  • What can have possessed my angel, said he [quitting my hands, and with a
  • gentler voice] that after so much ill-usage from your relations; vows so
  • solemn on my part; an affection so ardent; you stab me with a refusal to
  • stand by your own appointment?
  • We have no time to talk, Mr. Lovelace. I will give you my reasons at a
  • better opportunity. I cannot go with you now--and once more urge me no
  • farther--surely, I am not to be compelled by every body!
  • I see how it is, said he, with a dejected but passionate air--What a
  • severe fate is mine!--At length your spirit is subdued!--Your brother
  • and sister have prevailed; and I must give up all my hopes to a wretch
  • so truly despicable--
  • Once more I tell you, interrupted I, I never will be his--all may end on
  • Wednesday differently from what you expect--
  • And it may not!--And then, good heavens!
  • It is to be their last effort, as I have reason to believe--
  • And I have reason to believe so too--since if you stay, you will
  • inevitably be Solmes's wife.
  • Not so, interrupted I--I have obliged them in one point. They will be
  • in good-humour with me. I shall gain time at least. I am sure I shall. I
  • have several ways to gain time.
  • And what, Madam, will gaining time do? It is plain you have not a
  • hope beyond that--it is plain you have not, by putting all upon that
  • precarious issue. O my dearest, dearest life, let me beseech you not
  • to run a risque of this consequence. I can convince you that it will be
  • more than a risque if you go back, that you will on Wednesday next be
  • Solmes's wife.--Prevent, therefore, now that it is in your power to
  • prevent, the fatal mischief that will follow such a dreadful certainty.
  • While I have any room for hope, it concerns your honour, Mr. Lovelace,
  • as well as mine, (if you have the value for me you pretend, and wish me
  • to believe you,) that my conduct in this great point should justify my
  • prudence.
  • Your prudence, Madam! When has that been questionable? Yet what stead
  • has either your prudence or your duty stood you in, with people so
  • strangely determined?
  • And then he pathetically enumerated the different instances of the harsh
  • treatment I had met with; imputing all to the malice and caprice of a
  • brother, who set every body against him: and insisting, that I had no
  • other way to bring about a reconciliation with my father and uncles,
  • than by putting myself out of the power of my brother's inveterate
  • malice.
  • Your brother's whole reliance, proceeded he, has been upon your easiness
  • to bear his insults. Your whole family will seek to you, when you have
  • freed yourself from this disgraceful oppression. When they know you are
  • with those who can and will right you, they will give up to you your own
  • estate. Why then, putting his arms around me, and again drawing me
  • with a gentle force after him, do you hesitate a moment?--Now is the
  • time--Fly with me, then, I beseech you, my dearest creature! Trust
  • your persecuted adorer. Have we not suffered in the same cause? If any
  • imputations are cast upon you, give me the honour (as I shall be found
  • to deserve it) to call you mine; and, when you are so, shall I not be
  • able to protect both your person and character?
  • Urge me no more, Mr. Lovelace, I conjure you. You yourself have given
  • me a hint, which I will speak plainer to, than prudence, perhaps, on any
  • other occasion, would allow. I am convinced, that Wednesday next (if I
  • had time I would give you my reasons) is not intended to be the day we
  • had both so much dreaded: and if after that day shall be over, I find my
  • friends determined in Mr. Solmes's favour, I will then contrive some
  • way to meet you with Miss Howe, who is not your enemy: and when the
  • solemnity has passed, I shall think that step a duty, which till then
  • will be criminal to take: since now my father's authority is unimpeached
  • by any greater.
  • Dearest Madam--
  • Nay, Mr. Lovelace, if you now dispute--if, after this more favourable
  • declaration, than I had the thought of making, you are not satisfied, I
  • shall know what to think both of your gratitude and generosity.
  • The case, Madam, admits not of this alternative. I am all gratitude upon
  • it. I cannot express how much I should be delighted with the charming
  • hope you have given me, were you not next Wednesday, if you stay, to
  • be another man's. Think, dearest creature! what an heightening of my
  • anguish the distant hope you bid me look up to is, taken in this light!
  • Depend, depend upon it, I will die sooner than be Mr. Solmes's. If you
  • would have me rely upon your honour, why should you doubt of mine?
  • I doubt not your honour, Madam; your power is all I doubt. You never,
  • never can have such another opportunity.--Dearest creature, permit
  • me--and he was again drawing me after him.
  • Whither, Sir, do you draw me?--Leave me this moment--Do you seek to keep
  • me till my return shall grow dangerous or impracticable? This moment let
  • me go, if you would have me think tolerably of you.
  • My happiness, Madam, both here and hereafter, and the safety of all your
  • implacable family, depend upon this moment.
  • To Providence, Mr. Lovelace, and to the law, will I leave the safety
  • of my friends. You shall not threaten me into a rashness that my heart
  • condemns!--Shall I, to promote your happiness, as you call it, depend
  • upon future peace of mind?
  • You trifle with me, my dear life, just as our better prospects begin to
  • open. The way is clear; just now it is clear; but you may be prevented
  • in a moment. What is it you doubt?--May I perish eternally, if your
  • will shall not be a law to me in every thing! All my relations expect
  • you.--Next Wednesday!--Dearest creature! think of next Wednesday!--And
  • to what is it I urge you, but to take a step that sooner than any other
  • will reconcile you to all whom you have most reason to value in your
  • family?
  • Let my judge for myself, Sir. Do not you, who blame my friends for
  • endeavouring to compel me, yourself seek to compel. I won't bear it.
  • Your earnestness gives me greater apprehensions, and greater reluctance.
  • Let me go back, then--let me, before it is too late, go back, that it
  • may not be worse for both--What mean you by this forcible treatment? Is
  • it thus that I am to judge of the entire submission to my will which you
  • have so often vowed?--Unhand me this moment, or I will cry out for help.
  • I will obey you, my dearest creature!--And quitted my hand with a look
  • full of tender despondency, that, knowing the violence of his temper,
  • half-concerned me for him. Yet I was hastening from him, when, with a
  • solemn air, looking upon his sword, but catching, as it were, his hand
  • from it, he folded both his arms, as if a sudden thought had recovered
  • him from an intended rashness.
  • Stay, one moment--but one moment stay, O best beloved of my soul!--Your
  • retreat is secure, if you will go: the key lies at the door.--But,
  • O Madam, next Wednesday, and you are Mr. Solmes's!--Fly me not so
  • eagerly--hear me but a few words.
  • When near the garden-door, I stopped; and was the more satisfied, as
  • I saw the key there, by which I could let myself in again at pleasure.
  • But, being uneasy lest I should be missed, I told him, I could stay
  • no longer. I had already staid too long. I would write to him all my
  • reasons. And depend upon it, Mr. Lovelace, said I [just upon the point
  • of stooping for the key, in order to return] I will die, rather than
  • have that man. You know what I have promised, if I find myself in
  • danger.
  • One word, Madam, however; one word more [approaching me, his arms still
  • folded, as if, I thought, he would not be tempted to mischief]. Remember
  • only, that I come at your appointment, to redeem you, at the hazard of
  • my life, from your gaolers and persecutors, with a resolution, God is
  • my witness, or may he for ever blast me! [that was his shocking
  • imprecation] to be a father, uncle, brother, and, as I humbly hoped, in
  • your own good time, a husband to you, all in one. But since I find you
  • are so ready to cry out for help against me, which must bring down upon
  • me the vengeance of all your family, I am contented to run all risques.
  • I will not ask you to retreat with me; I will attend you into the
  • garden, and into the house, if I am not intercepted.
  • Nay, be not surprised, Madam. The help you would have called for, I will
  • attend you to; for I will face them all: but not as a revenger, if they
  • provoke me not too much. You shall see what I can further bear for your
  • sake--and let us both see, if expostulation, and the behaviour of a
  • gentleman to them, will not procure me the treatment due to a gentleman
  • from them.
  • Had he offered to draw his sword upon himself, I was prepared to have
  • despised him for supposing me such a poor novice, as to be intimidated
  • by an artifice so common. But this resolution, uttered with so serious
  • an air, of accompanying me in to my friends, made me gasp with terror.
  • What mean you, Mr. Lovelace? said I: I beseech you leave me--leave me,
  • Sir, I beseech you.
  • Excuse me, Madam! I beg you to excuse me. I have long enough skulked
  • like a thief about these lonely walls--long, too long, have I borne
  • the insults of your brother, and other of your relations. Absence but
  • heightens malice. I am desperate. I have but this one chance for it; for
  • is not the day after to-morrow Wednesday? I have encouraged virulence
  • by my tameness.--Yet tame I will still be. You shall see, Madam, what I
  • will bear for your sake. My sword shall be put sheathed into your hands
  • [and he offered it to me in the scabbard].--My heart, if you please,
  • clapping one hand upon his breast, shall afford a sheath for your
  • brother's sword. Life is nothing, if I lose you--be pleased, Madam, to
  • shew me the way into the garden [moving toward the door]. I will attend
  • you, though to my fate!--But too happy, be it what it will, if I receive
  • it in your presence. Lead on, dear creature! [putting his sword into his
  • belt]--You shall see what I can bear for you. And he stooped and took
  • up the key; and offered it to the lock; but dropped it again, without
  • opening the door, upon my earnest expostulations.
  • What can you mean, Mr. Lovelace?--said I--Would you thus expose
  • yourself? Would you thus expose me?--Is this your generosity? Is every
  • body to take advantage thus of the weakness of my temper?
  • And I wept. I could not help it.
  • He threw himself upon his knees at my feet--Who can bear, said he, [with
  • an ardour that could not be feigned, his own eyes glistening,] who
  • can bear to behold such sweet emotion?--O charmer of my heart, [and,
  • respectfully still kneeling, he took my hand with both his, pressing it
  • to his lips,] command me with you, command me from you; in every way
  • I am implicit to obedience--but I appeal to all you know of your
  • relations' cruelty to you, their determined malice against me, and as
  • determined favour to the man you tell me you hate, (and, O Madam, if you
  • did not hate him, I should hardly think there would be a merit in your
  • approbation, place it where you would)--I appeal to every thing you
  • know, to all you have suffered, whether you have not reason to be
  • apprehensive of that Wednesday, which is my terror!--whether you can
  • possibly have another opportunity--the chariot ready: my friends with
  • impatience expecting the result of your own appointment: a man whose
  • will shall be entirely your will, imploring you, thus, on his knees,
  • imploring you--to be your own mistress; that is all: nor will I ask
  • for your favour, but as upon full proof I shall appear to deserve it.
  • Fortune, alliance, unobjectionable!--O my beloved creature! pressing my
  • hand once more to his lips, let not such an opportunity slip. You never,
  • never will have such another.
  • I bid him rise. He arose; and I told him, that were I not thus
  • unaccountably hurried by his impatience, I doubted not to convince
  • him, that both he and I had looked upon next Wednesday with greater
  • apprehension than was necessary. I was proceeding to give him my
  • reasons; but he broke in upon me--
  • Had I, Madam, but the shadow of a probability to hope what you hope, I
  • would be all obedience and resignation. But the license is actually
  • got: the parson is provided: the pedant Brand is the man. O my dearest
  • creature, do these preparations mean only a trial?
  • You know not, Sir, were the worst to be intended, and weak as you think
  • me, what a spirit I have: you know not what I can do, and how I can
  • resist when I think myself meanly or unreasonably dealt with: nor do you
  • know what I have already suffered, what I have already borne, knowing to
  • whose unbrotherly instigations all is to be ascribed--
  • I may expect all things, Madam, interrupted he, from the nobleness of
  • your mind. But your spirits may fail you. What may not be apprehended
  • from the invincible temper of a father so positive, to a daughter so
  • dutiful?--Fainting will not save you: they will not, perhaps, be sorry
  • for such an effect of their barbarity. What will signify expostulations
  • against a ceremony performed? Must not all, the dreadful all follow,
  • that is torture to my heart but to think of? Nobody to appeal to, of
  • what avail will your resistance be against the consequences of a rite
  • witnessed to by the imposers of it, and those your nearest relations?
  • I was sure, I said, of procuring a delay at least. Many ways I had to
  • procure a delay. Nothing could be so fatal to us both, as for me now to
  • be found with him. My apprehensions on this score, I told him, grew too
  • strong for my heart. I should think very hardly of him, if he sought to
  • detain me longer. But his acquiescence should engage my gratitude.
  • And then stooping to take up the key to let myself into the garden, he
  • started, and looked as if he had heard somebody near the door, on the
  • inside; clapping his hand on his sword.
  • This frighted me so, that I thought I should have sunk down at his feet.
  • But he instantly re-assured me: He thought, he said, he had heard a
  • rustling against the door: but had it been so, the noise would have been
  • stronger. It was only the effect of his apprehension for me.
  • And then taking up the key, he presented it to me.--If you will go,
  • Madam--Yet, I cannot, cannot leave you!--I must enter the garden with
  • you--forgive me, but I must enter the garden with you.
  • And will you, will you thus ungenerously, Mr. Lovelace, take advantage
  • of my fears? of my wishes to prevent mischief? I, vain fool, to be
  • concerned for every one; nobody for me!
  • Dearest creature! interrupted he, holding my hand, as I tremblingly
  • offered to put the key to the lock--let me, if you will go, open the
  • door. But once more, consider, could you possibly obtain that delay
  • which seems to be your only dependence, whether you may not be closer
  • confined? I know they have already had that in consideration. Will you
  • not, in this case, be prevented from corresponding either with Miss
  • Howe, or with me?--Who then shall assist you in your escape, if escape
  • you would?--From your chamber-window only permitted to view the garden
  • you must not enter into, how will you wish for the opportunity you
  • now have, if your hatred to Solmes continue!--But alas! that cannot
  • continue. If you go back, it must be from the impulses of a yielding
  • (which you'll call, a dutiful) heart, tired and teased out of your own
  • will.
  • I have no patience, Sir, to be thus constrained. Must I never be at
  • liberty to follow my own judgment? Be the consequence what it may, I
  • will not be thus constrained.
  • And then, freeing my hand, I again offered the key to the door.
  • Down the ready kneeler dropt between me and that: And can you, can you,
  • Madam, once more on my knees let me ask you, look with an indifferent
  • eye upon the evils that may follow? Provoked as I have been, and
  • triumphed over as I shall be, if your brother succeeds, my own heart
  • shudders, at times, at the thoughts of what must happen: And can yours
  • be unconcerned? Let me beseech you, dearest creature, to consider all
  • these things; and lose not this only opportunity. My intelligence--
  • Never, Mr. Lovelace, interrupted I, give so much credit to the words of
  • a traitor. Your base intelligencer is but a servant. He may pretend
  • to know more than he has grounds for, in order to earn the wages of
  • corruption. You know not what contrivances I can find out.
  • I was once more offering the key to the lock, when, starting from his
  • knees, with a voice of affrightment, loudly whispering, and as if out
  • of breath, they are at the door, my beloved creature! and taking the
  • key from me, he fluttered with it, as if he would double lock it. And
  • instantly a voice from within cried out, bursting against the door, as
  • if to break it open, the person repeating his violent pushes, Are you
  • there?--come up this moment!--this moment!--here they are--here they are
  • both together!--your pistol this moment!--your gun!--Then another push,
  • and another. He at the same moment drew his sword, and clapping it
  • naked under his arm, took both my trembling hands in his; and drawing me
  • swiftly after him, Fly, fly, my charmer; this moment is all you have for
  • it, said he.--Your brother!--your uncles!--or this Solmes!--they will
  • instantly burst the door--fly, my dearest life, if you would not be
  • more cruelly used than ever--if you would not see two or three murders
  • committed at your feet, fly, fly, I beseech you.
  • O Lord:--help, help, cried the fool, all in amaze and confusion,
  • frighted beyond the power of controuling.
  • Now behind me, now before me, now on this side, now on that, turned I my
  • affrighted face, in the same moment; expecting a furious brother here,
  • armed servants there, an enraged sister screaming, and a father armed
  • with terror in his countenance more dreadful than even the drawn sword
  • which I saw, or those I apprehended. I ran as fast as he; yet knew not
  • that I ran; my fears adding wings to my feet, at the same time that they
  • took all power of thinking from me--my fears, which probably would not
  • have suffered me to know what course to take, had I not had him to urge
  • and draw me after him: especially as I beheld a man, who must have come
  • out of the door, keeping us in his eye, running now towards us; then
  • back to the garden; beckoning and calling to others, whom I supposed he
  • saw, although the turning of the wall hindered me from seeing them; and
  • whom I imagined to be my brother, my father, and their servants.
  • Thus terrified, I was got out of sight of the door in a very few
  • minutes: and then, although quite breathless between running and
  • apprehension, he put my arm under his, his drawn sword in the other
  • hand, and hurried me on still faster: my voice, however, contradicting
  • my action; crying, no, no, no, all the while; straining my neck to look
  • back, as long as the walls of the garden and park were within sight,
  • and till he brought me to the chariot: where, attending, were two armed
  • servants of his own, and two of Lord M.'s on horseback.
  • Here I must suspend my relation for a while: for now I am come to this
  • sad period of it, my indiscretion stares me in the face; and my shame
  • and my grief give me a compunction that is more poignant methinks than
  • if I had a dagger in my heart. To have it to reflect, that I should
  • so inconsiderately give in to an interview, which, had I known either
  • myself or him, or in the least considered the circumstances of the case,
  • I might have supposed would put me into the power of his resolution, and
  • out of that of my own reason.
  • For, might I not have believed, that he, who thought he had cause to
  • apprehend that he was on the point of losing a person who had cost
  • him so much pains and trouble, would not hinder her, if possible, from
  • returning? That he, who knew I had promised to give him up for ever, if
  • insisted as a condition of reconciliation, would not endeavour to put it
  • out of my power to do so? In short, that he, who had artfully forborne
  • to send for my letter, (for he could not be watched, my dear,) lest he
  • should find in it a countermand to my appointment, (as I myself could
  • apprehend, although I profited by the apprehension,) would want a device
  • to keep me with him till the danger of having our meeting discovered
  • might throw me absolutely into his power, to avoid my own worse usage,
  • and the mischiefs which might have ensued (perhaps in my very sight) had
  • my friends and he met?
  • But if it shall come out, that the person within the garden was his
  • corrupted implement, employed to frighten me away with him, do you
  • think, my dear, that I shall not have reason to hate him and myself
  • still more? I hope his heart cannot be so deep and so vile a one: I hope
  • it cannot! But how came it to pass, that one man could get out at the
  • garden-door, and no more? how, that that man kept aloof, as it were,
  • and pursued us not; nor ran back to alarm the house? my fright, and my
  • distance, would not let me be certain; but really this man, as I now
  • recollect, had the air of that vile Joseph Leman.
  • O why, why, my dear friends!--But wherefore blame I them, when I had
  • argued myself into a hope, not improbable, that even the dreadful
  • trial I was to undergo so soon might turn out better than if I had been
  • directly carried away from the presence of my once indulgent parents,
  • who might possibly intend that trial to be the last I should have had?
  • Would to Heaven, that I had stood it, however! then if I had afterwards
  • done, what now I have been prevailed upon, or perhaps foolishly
  • frightened to do, I should not have been stung so much by inward
  • reproach as now I am: and this would have been a great evil avoided.
  • You know, my dear, that your Clarissa's mind was ever above justifying
  • her own failings by those of others. God forgive those of my friends
  • who have acted cruelly by me! But their faults are their own, and
  • not excuses for mine. And mine began early: for I ought not to have
  • corresponded with him.
  • O the vile encroacher! how my indignation, at times, rises at him! thus
  • to lead a young creature (too much indeed relying upon her own strength)
  • from evil to evil!--This last evil, although the remote, yet sure
  • consequence of my first--my prohibited correspondence! by a father early
  • prohibited.
  • How much more properly had I acted, with regard to that correspondence,
  • had I, once for all, when he was forbidden to visit me, and I to receive
  • his visits, pleaded the authority by which I ought to have been bound,
  • and denied to write to him!--But I thought I could proceed, or stop, as
  • I pleased. I supposed it concerned me, more than any other, to be
  • the arbitress of the quarrels of unruly spirits.--And now I find my
  • presumption punished--punished, as other sins frequently are, by itself!
  • As to this last rashness; now, that it is too late, I plainly see how
  • I ought to have conducted myself. As he knew I had but one way of
  • transmitting to him the knowledge of what befel me; as he knew that my
  • fate was upon a crisis with my friends; and that I had in my letter
  • to him reserved the liberty of revocation; I should not have been
  • solicitous whether he had got my letter or not: when he had come, and
  • found I did not answer to his signal, he would presently have resorted
  • to the loose bricks, and there been satisfied, by the date of my letter,
  • that it was his own fault that he had it not before. But, governed by
  • the same pragmatical motives which induced me to correspond with him at
  • first, I was again afraid, truly, with my foolish and busy prescience;
  • and the disappointment would have thrown him into the way of receiving
  • fresh insults from the same persons; which might have made him guilty
  • of some violence to them. And so to save him an apprehended rashness,
  • I rushed into a real one myself. And what vexes me more is, that it is
  • plain to me now, by all his behaviour, that he had as great a confidence
  • in my weakness, as I had in my own strength. And so, in a point entirely
  • relative to my honour, he has triumphed; for he has not been mistaken in
  • me, while I have in myself!
  • Tell me, my dear Miss Howe, tell me truly, if your unbiassed heart does
  • not despise me?--It must! for your mind and mine were ever one; and
  • I despise myself!--And well I may: For could the giddiest and most
  • inconsiderate girl in England have done worse than I shall appear to
  • have done in the eye of the world? Since my crime will be known without
  • the provocations, and without the artifices of the betrayer too; while
  • it will be a high aggravation, that better things were expected from me
  • than from many others.
  • You charge me to marry the first opportunity--Ah! my dear! another of
  • the blessed effects of my folly--That's as much in my power now as--as
  • I am myself!--And can I besides give a sanction immediately to his
  • deluding arts?--Can I avoid being angry with him for tricking me thus,
  • as I may say, (and as I have called it to him,) out of myself?--For
  • compelling me to take a step so contrary to all my resolutions and
  • assurances given to you; a step so dreadfully inconvenient to myself; so
  • disgraceful and so grievous (as it must be) to my dear mother, were I to
  • be less regardful of any other of my family or friends?--You don't know,
  • nor can you imagine, my dear, how I am mortified!--How much I am sunk
  • in my own opinion! I, that was proposed for an example, truly, to
  • others!--O that I were again in my father's house, stealing down with
  • a letter to you; my heart beating with expectation of finding one from
  • you!
  • *****
  • This is the Wednesday morning I dreaded so much, that I once thought
  • of it as the day of my doom: but of the Monday, it is plain, I ought to
  • have been most apprehensive. Had I staid, and had the worst I
  • dreaded happened, my friends would then have been answerable for the
  • consequences, if any bad ones had followed:--but now, I have only this
  • consolation left me (a very poor one, you'll say!) that I have cleared
  • them of blame, and taken it all upon myself!
  • You will not wonder to see this narrative so dismally scrawled. It is
  • owing to different pens and ink, all bad, and written in snatches of
  • time; my hand trembling too with fatigue and grief.
  • I will not add to the length of it, by the particulars of his behaviour
  • to me, and of our conversation at St. Alban's, and since; because those
  • will come in course in the continuation of my story; which, no doubt,
  • you will expect from me.
  • Only thus much will I say, that he is extremely respectful (even
  • obsequiously so) at present, though I am so much dissatisfied with
  • him and myself that he has hitherto had no great cause to praise my
  • complaisance to him. Indeed, I can hardly, at times, bear the seducer in
  • my sight.
  • The lodgings I am in are inconvenient. I shall not stay in them: so it
  • signifies nothing to tell you how to direct to me hither. And where my
  • next may be, as yet I know not.
  • He knows that I am writing to you; and has offered to send my letter,
  • when finished, by a servant of his. But I thought I could not be too
  • cautious, as I am now situated, in having a letter of this importance
  • conveyed to you. Who knows what such a man may do? So very wicked
  • a contriver! The contrivance, if a contrivance, to get me away, so
  • insolently mean!--But I hope it is not a contrivance neither!--Yet, be
  • that as it will, I must say, that the best of him, and of my prospects
  • with him, are bad; and yet, having enrolled myself among the too-late
  • repenters, who shall pity me?
  • Nevertheless, I will dare to hope for a continued interest in your
  • affections [I shall be miserable indeed if I may not!] and to be
  • remembered in your daily prayers. For neither time nor accident shall
  • ever make me cease to be
  • Your faithful and affectionate CLARISSA HARLOWE.
  • LETTER III
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOSEPH LEMAN SAT. APRIL 8.
  • HONEST JOSEPH,
  • At length your beloved young lady has consented to free herself from
  • the cruel treatment she has so long borne. She is to meet me without the
  • garden-door at about four o'clock on Monday afternoon. I told you she
  • had promised to do so. She has confirmed her promise. Thank Heaven she
  • has confirmed her promise!
  • I shall have a chariot-and-six ready in the by-road fronting the private
  • path to Harlowe-paddock; and several of my friends and servants not far
  • off, armed to protect her, if there be occasion: but every one charged
  • to avoid mischief. That, you know, has always been my principal care.
  • All my fear is, that, when she comes to the point, the over-niceness of
  • her principles will make her waver, and want to go back: although her
  • honour is my honour, you know, and mine is her's. If she should, and
  • should I be unable to prevail upon her, all your past services will
  • avail nothing, and she will be lost to me for ever: the prey then of
  • that cursed Solmes, whose vile stinginess will never permit him to do
  • good to any of the servants of the family.
  • I have no doubt of your fidelity, honest Joseph; nor of your zeal to
  • serve an injured gentleman, and an oppressed young lady. You see by the
  • confidence I repose in you, that I have not; more particularly, on this
  • very important occasion, in which your assistance may crown the work:
  • for, if she waver, a little innocent contrivance will be necessary.
  • Be very mindful, therefore, of the following directions; take them into
  • your heart. This will probably be your last trouble, until my beloved
  • and I are joined in holy wedlock: and then we will be sure to take care
  • of you. You know what I have promised. No man ever reproached me for
  • breach of word.
  • These, then, honest Joseph, are they:
  • Contrive to be in the garden, in disguise, if possible, and unseen by
  • your young lady. If you find the garden-door unbolted, you will know
  • that she and I are together, although you should not see her go out at
  • it. It will be locked, but my key shall be on the ground just without
  • the door, that you may open it with your's, as it may be needful.
  • If you hear our voices parleying, keep at the door till I cry Hem, hem,
  • twice: but be watchful for this signal; for I must not hem very loud,
  • lest she should take it for a signal. Perhaps, in struggling to prevail
  • upon the dear creature, I may have an opportunity to strike the door
  • hard with my elbow, or heel, to confirm you--then you are to make a
  • violent burst against the door, as if you would break it open, drawing
  • backward and forward the bolt in a hurry: then, with another push, but
  • with more noise than strength, lest the lock give way, cry out (as if
  • you saw some of the family) Come up, come up, instantly!--Here they
  • are! Here they are!--Hasten!--This instant! hasten! And mention swords,
  • pistols, guns, with as terrible a voice as you can cry out with. Then
  • shall I prevail upon her, no doubt, if loth before, to fly. If I cannot,
  • I will enter the garden with her, and the house too, be the consequence
  • what it will. But, so affrighted, these is no question but she will fly.
  • When you think us at a sufficient distance [and I shall raise my voice
  • urging her swifter flight, that you may guess at that] then open the
  • door with your key: but you must be sure to open it very cautiously,
  • lest we should not be far enough off. I would not have her know you have
  • a hand in this matter, out of my great regard to you.
  • When you have opened the door, take your key out of the lock, and put
  • it in your pocket: then, stooping for mine, put it in the lock on the
  • inside, that it may appear as if the door was opened by herself, with
  • a key, which they will suppose to be of my procuring (it being new) and
  • left open by us.
  • They should conclude she is gone off by her own consent, that they may
  • not pursue us: that they may see no hopes of tempting her back again. In
  • either case, mischief might happen, you know.
  • But you must take notice, that you are only to open the door with your
  • key, in case none of the family come up to interrupt us, and before we
  • are quite gone: for, if they do, you'll find by what follows, that you
  • must not open the door at all. Let them, on breaking it open, or by
  • getting over the wall, find my key on the ground, if they will.
  • If they do not come to interrupt us, and if you, by help of your key,
  • come out, follow us at a distance; and, with uplifted hands, and wild
  • impatient gestures, (running backward and forward, for fear you
  • should come up too near us, and as if you saw somebody coming to your
  • assistance,) cry out for help, help, and to hasten. Then shall we be
  • soon at the chariot.
  • Tell the family that you saw me enter a chariot with her: a dozen,
  • or more, men on horseback, attending us; all armed; some with
  • blunderbusses, as you believe; and that we took quite the contrary way
  • to that we should take.
  • You see, honest Joseph, how careful I am, as well as you, to avoid
  • mischief.
  • Observe to keep at such a distance that she may not discover who you
  • are. Take long strides, to alter your gait; and hold up your head,
  • honest Joseph; and she'll not know it to be you. Men's airs and gaits
  • are as various and peculiar as their faces. Pluck a stake out of one of
  • the hedges: and tug at it, though it may come easy: this, if she turn
  • back, will look terrible, and account for your not following us faster.
  • Then, returning with it, shouldered, to brag to the family what you
  • would have done, could you have overtaken us, rather than your young
  • lady should be carried off by such a ------ And you may call me names,
  • and curse me. And these airs will make you look valiant, and in earnest.
  • You see, honest Joseph, I am always contriving to give you reputation.
  • No man suffers by serving me.
  • But, if our parley should last longer than I wish; and if any of her
  • friends miss her before I cry, Hem, hem, twice; then, in order to save
  • yourself, (which is a very great point with me, I assure you,) make the
  • same noise as above: but as I directed before, open not the door with
  • your key. On the contrary, wish for a key with all your heart; but
  • for fear any of them should by accident have a key about them, keep in
  • readiness half a dozen little gravel-stones, no bigger than peas, and
  • thrust two or three slily into the key-hole; which will hinder their
  • key from turning round. It is good, you know, Joseph, to provide against
  • every accident in such an important case, as this. And let this be your
  • cry, instead of the other, if any of my enemies come in your sight, as
  • you seem to be trying to burst the door open, Sir! Sir! or Madam! Madam!
  • O Lord, hasten! O Lord, hasten! Mr. Lovelace! Mr. Lovelace!--And very
  • loud--and that shall quicken me more than it shall those you call
  • to.--If it be Betty, and only Betty, I shall think worse of your art
  • of making love* than of your fidelity, if you can't find a way to amuse
  • her, and put her upon a false scent.
  • * See Vol.II. Letter XXIX.
  • You must tell them that your young lady seemed to run as fast off with
  • me as I with her. This will also confirm to them that all pursuit is
  • in vain. An end will hereby be put to Solmes's hopes: and her friends,
  • after a while, will be more studious to be reconciled to her than to get
  • her back. So you will be a happy instrument of great good to all round.
  • And this will one day be acknowledged by both families. You will then be
  • every one's favourite; and every good servant, for the future, will be
  • proud to be likened to honest Joseph Leman.
  • If she should guess at you, or find you out, I have it already in my
  • head to write a letter for you to copy,* which, occasionally produced,
  • will set you right with her.
  • * See Vol.III. Letter XXI.
  • This one time be diligent, be careful: this will be the crown of all:
  • and once more, depend, for a recompense, upon the honour of
  • Your assured friend, R. LOVELACE.
  • You need not be so much afraid of going too far with Betty. If you
  • should make a match with her, she is a very likely creature, though
  • a vixen, as you say. I have an admirable receipt to cure a termagant
  • wife.--Never fear, Joseph, but thou shalt be master of thine house. If
  • she be very troublesome, I can teach thee how to break her heart in a
  • twelvemonth; and honestly too;--or the precept would not be mine.
  • I enclose a new earnest of my future favour.
  • LETTER IV
  • TO ROBERT LOVELACE, ESQUIER, HIS HONNER SUNDAY MORNING, APRIL 9.
  • HONNERED SIR,
  • I must confesse I am infinitely obliged to your Honner's bounty. But
  • this last command!--It seems so intricket! Lord be merciful to me, how
  • have I been led from littel stepps to grate stepps!--And if I should
  • be found out!--But your Honner says you will take me into your Honner's
  • sarvise, and protect me, if as I should at any time be found out;
  • and raise my wages besides; or set me upp in a good inne; which is my
  • ambishion. And you will be honnerable and kind to my dearest young lady,
  • God love her.--But who can be unkind to she?
  • I wil do my best I am able, since your Honner will be apt to lose her,
  • as your Honner says, if I do not; and a man so stingie will be apt
  • to gain her. But mayhap my deareste young lady will not make all this
  • trubble needful. If she has promissed, she will stand to it, I dare to
  • say.
  • I love your Honner for contriveing to save mischiff so well. I thought
  • till I know'd your Honner, that you was verry mischevous, and plese
  • your Honner: but find it to be clene contrary. Your Honner, it is plane,
  • means mighty well by every body, as far as I see. As I am sure I do
  • myself; for I am, althoff a very plane man, and all that, a very honnest
  • one, I thank my God. And have good principels, and have kept my young
  • lady's pressepts always in mind: for she goes no where, but saves a soul
  • or two, more or less.
  • So, commending myself to your Honner's further favour, not forgetting
  • the inne, when your Honner shall so please, and good one offers; for
  • plases are no inherritanses now-a-days. And, I hope, your Honner will
  • not think me a dishonest man for sarving your Honner agenst my duty, as
  • it may look; but only as my conshence clears me.
  • Be pleased, howsomever, if it like your Honner, not to call me honest
  • Joseph, so often. For, althoff I think myself verry honnest, and all
  • that, yet I am touched a littel, for fear I should not do the quite
  • right thing: and too besides, your Honner has such a fesseshious way
  • with you, as that I hardly know whether you are in jest or earnest, when
  • your Honner calls me honnest so often.
  • I am a very plane man, and seldom have writ to such honourable
  • gentlemen; so you will be good enuff to pass by every thing, as I have
  • often said, and need not now say over again.
  • As to Mrs. Betty; I tho'te, indeed, she looked above me. But she comes
  • on vere well, natheless. I could like her better, iff she was better to
  • my young lady. But she has too much wit for so plane a man. Natheless,
  • if she was to angre me, althoff it is a shame to bete a woman, yet I
  • colde make shift to throe my hat at her, or so, your Honner.
  • But that same reseit, iff your Honner so please, to cure a shrewish
  • wife. It would more encurrege to wed, iff so be one know'd it
  • before-hand, as one may say. So likewise, if one knoed one could
  • honnestly, as your Honner says, and as of the handy-work of God, in one
  • twelvemonth--
  • But, I shall grow impertinent to such a grate man.--And hereafter may
  • do for that, as she turnes out: for one mought be loth to part with her,
  • mayhap, so verry soon too; espessially if she was to make the notable
  • landlady your Honner put into my head.
  • Butt wonce moer, begging your Honner's parden, and promissing all
  • dilligence and exsackness, I reste,
  • Your Honner's dewtiful sarvant to command, JOSEPH LEMAN.
  • LETTER V
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. ST. ALBAN'S, MONDAY NIGHT.
  • I snatch a few moments while my beloved is retired, [as I hope, to
  • rest,] to perform my promise. No pursuit--nor have I apprehensions of
  • any; though I must make my charmer dread that there will be one.
  • And now, let me tell thee, that never was joy so complete as mine!--But
  • let me inquire, is not the angel flown away?
  • *****
  • O no! She is in the next apartment!--Securely mine!--Mine for ever!
  • O ecstasy!--My heart will burst my breast,
  • To leap into her bosom!
  • I knew that the whole stupid family were in a combination to do my
  • business for me. I told thee that they were all working for me, like so
  • many ground moles; and still more blind than the moles are said to be,
  • unknowing that they did so. I myself, the director of their principal
  • motions; which falling in with the malice of their little hearts, they
  • took to be all their own.
  • But did I say my joy was perfect?--O no!--It receives some abatement
  • from my disgusted bride. For how can I endure to think that I owe more
  • to her relations' precautions than to her favour for me?--Or even, as
  • far as I know, to her preference of me to another man?
  • But let me not indulge this thought. Were I to do so, it might cost my
  • charmer dear. Let me rejoice, that she has passed the rubicon: that she
  • cannot return: that, as I have ordered it, the flight will appear to the
  • implacables to be altogether with her own consent: and that if I doubt
  • her love, I can put her to trials as mortifying to her niceness, as
  • glorious to my pride.--For, let me tell thee, dearly as I love her, if
  • I thought there was but the shadow of a doubt in her mind whether she
  • preferred me to any man living, I would shew her no mercy.
  • TUESDAY, DAY-DAWN.
  • But, on the wings of love, I fly to my charmer, who perhaps by this time
  • is rising to encourage the tardy dawn. I have not slept a wink of the
  • hour and half I lay down to invite sleep. It seems to me, that I am not
  • so much body, as to require such a vulgar renovation.
  • But why, as in the chariot, as in the inn, at alighting, all
  • heart-bursting grief, my dearest creature? SO persecuted as thou wert
  • persecuted!--So much in danger of the most abhorred compulsion!--Yet
  • grief so unsuspectedly sincere for an escape so critical!--Take care,
  • take care, O beloved of my soul! for jealous is the heart in which love
  • has erected a temple to thee.
  • Yet, it must be allowed, that such a sudden transition must affect her;
  • must ice her over. When a little more used to her new situation; when
  • her hurries are at an end; when she sees how religiously I shall
  • observe all her INJUNCTIONS; she will undoubtedly have the gratitude
  • to distinguish between the confinement she has escaped from, and the
  • liberty she has reason to rejoice in.
  • She comes! She comes! And the sun is just rising to attend her! Adieu!
  • Be half as happy as I am (for all diffidencies, like night-fogs before
  • the sun, disperse at her approach) and, next myself, thou wilt be the
  • happiest man in the world.
  • LETTER VI
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE WEDNESDAY, APRIL 12.
  • I will pursue my melancholy story.
  • Being thus hurried to the chariot, it would have been to no purpose to
  • have refused entering into it, had he not in my fright lifted me in, as
  • he did: and it instantly drove away a full gallop, and stopped not till
  • it brought us to St. Alban's; which was just as the day shut in.
  • I thought I should have fainted several times by the way. With uplifted
  • hands and eyes, God protect me! said I often to myself: Can it be I,
  • that am here! My eyes running over, and my heart ready to burst with
  • sighs as involuntarily as my flight.
  • How different, how inexpressibly different, the gay wretch; visibly
  • triumphing (as I could not but construe his almost rapturous joy) in the
  • success of his arts! But overflowing with complimental flourishes, yet
  • respectfully distant his address, all the way we flew; for that, rather
  • than galloping, was the motion of the horses; which took, as I believe,
  • a round-about way, to prevent being traced.
  • I have reason to think, there were other horsemen at his devotion; three
  • or four different persons, above the rank of the servants, galloping by
  • us now-and-then, on each side of the chariot: but he took no notice
  • of them; and I had too much grief, mingled with indignation,
  • notwithstanding all his blandishments, to ask any questions about them,
  • or any thing else.
  • Think, my dear, what were my thoughts on alighting from the chariot;
  • having no attendant of my own sex; no clothes but what I had on, and
  • those little suited to such a journey as I had already taken, and was
  • still to take: neither hood nor hat, nor any thing but a handkerchief
  • round my head and shoulders: fatigued to death: my mind still more
  • fatigued than my body: and in such a foam the horses, that every one in
  • the inn we put up at guessed [they could not do otherwise] that I was
  • a young giddy creature, who had run away from her friends. This it was
  • easy to see, by their whispering and gaping: more of the people of the
  • house also coming in by turns, than were necessary for the attendance.
  • The mistress of the house, whom he sent in to me, showed me another
  • apartment; and, seeing me ready to faint, brought me hartshorn and water;
  • and then, upon my desiring to be left alone for half an hour, retired:
  • for I found my heart ready to burst, on revolving every thing in my
  • thoughts: and the moment she was gone, fastening the door, I threw
  • myself into an old great chair, and gave way to a violent flood of
  • tears, which a little relieved me.
  • Mr. Lovelace, sooner than I wished, sent up the gentlewoman, who pressed
  • me, in his name, to admit my brother, or to come down to him: for he had
  • told her I was his sister; and that he had brought me, against my will,
  • and without warning, from a friend's house, where I had been all the
  • winter, in order to prevent my marrying against the consent of my
  • friends; to whom he was now conducting me; and that, having given me no
  • time for a travelling-dress, I was greatly offended at him.
  • So, my dear, your frank, your open-hearted friend, was forced to
  • countenance this tale; which indeed suited me the better, because I was
  • unable for some time to talk, speak, or look up; and so my dejection,
  • and grief, and silence, might very well pass before the gentlewoman and
  • her niece who attended me, as a fit of sullenness.
  • The room I was in being a bed-chamber, I chose to go down, at his
  • repeated message, attended by the mistress of the house, to that in
  • which he was. He approached me with great respect, yet not exceeding
  • a brotherly politeness, where a brother is polite; and, calling me his
  • dearest sister, asked after the state of my mind; and hoped I would
  • forgive him; for never brother half so well loved a sister, as he me.
  • A wretch! how naturally did he fall into the character, although I was
  • so much out of mine!
  • Unthinking creatures have some comfort in the shortness of their views;
  • in their unapprehensiveness; and that they penetrate not beyond the
  • present moment: in short that they are unthinking!--But, for a person of
  • my thoughtful disposition, who has been accustomed to look forward, as
  • well to the possible, as to the probable, what comfort can I have in my
  • reflections?
  • But let me give you the particulars of our conversation a little before
  • and after our supper-time, joining both in one.
  • When we were alone, he besought me (I cannot say but with all the tokens
  • of a passionate and respectful tenderness) to be better reconciled to
  • myself and to him: he repeated all the vows of honour and inviolable
  • affection that he ever made me: he promised to be wholly governed by me
  • in every future step. He asked me to give him leave to propose, whether
  • I chose to set out next day to either of his aunts?
  • I was silent. I knew not what to say, nor what to do.
  • Whether I chose to have private lodgings procured for me in either of
  • those ladies' neighbourhood, as were once my thoughts?
  • I was still silent.
  • Whether I chose to go to either of Lord M.'s seats; that of Berks, or
  • that in the county we were in?
  • In lodgings, I said, any where, where he was not to be.
  • He had promised this, he owned; and he would religiously keep to his
  • word, as soon as he found all danger of pursuit over; and that I was
  • settled to my mind. But, if the place were indifferent to me, London was
  • the safest, and the most private: and his relations should all visit
  • me there, the moment I thought fit to admit them. His cousin Charlotte,
  • particularly, should attend me, as my companion, if I would accept of
  • her, as soon as she was able to go abroad. Mean time, would I go to Lady
  • Betty Lawrance's (Lady Sarah was a melancholy woman)? I should be the
  • most welcome guest she ever received.
  • I told him, I wished not to go (immediately, however, and in the frame
  • I was in, and not likely to be out of) to any of his relations: that my
  • reputation was concerned, to have him absent from me: that, if I were in
  • some private lodging, the meaner the less to be suspected, (as it would
  • be known, that I went away by his means; and he would be supposed to
  • have provided me handsome accommodations,) it would be most suitable
  • both to my mind and to my situation: that this might be best, I should
  • think, in the country for me; in town for him. And no matter how soon he
  • was known to be there.
  • If he might deliver his opinion, he said, it was, that since I declined
  • going to any of his relations, London was the only place in the world
  • to be private in. Every new comer in a country town or village excited a
  • curiosity: A person of my figure [and many compliments he made me] would
  • excite more. Even messages and letters, where none used to be brought,
  • would occasion inquiry. He had not provided a lodging any where,
  • supposing I would choose to go either to London, where accommodations of
  • that sort might be fixed upon in an hour's time, or to Lady Betty's; or
  • to Lord M.'s Herfordshire seat, where was the housekeeper, an excellent
  • woman, Mrs. Greme, such another as my Norton.
  • To be sure, I said, if I were pursued, it would be in their first
  • passion; and some one of his relations' houses would be the place they
  • would expect to find me at--I knew not what to do.
  • My pleasure should determine him, he said, be it what it would. Only
  • that I were safe, was all he was solicitous about. He had lodgings in
  • town; but he did not offer to propose them. He knew, I would have more
  • objections to go to them, than I could to go to Lord M.'s, or to Lady
  • Betty's.
  • No doubt of it, I replied, with such an indignation in my manner, as
  • made him run over with professions, that he was far from proposing them,
  • or wishing for my acceptance of them. And again he repeated, that my
  • honour and safety were all he was solicitous about; assuring me, that my
  • will should be a law to him in every particular.
  • I was too peevish, and too much afflicted, and indeed too much incensed
  • against him, to take well any thing he said.
  • I thought myself, I said, extremely unhappy. I knew not what to
  • determine upon: my reputation now, no doubt, utterly ruined: destitute
  • of clothes: unfit to be seen by any body: my very indigence, as I might
  • call it, proclaiming my folly to every one who saw me; who would suppose
  • that I had been taken at advantage, or had given an undue one; and had
  • no power over either my will or my actions: that I could not but think I
  • had been dealt artfully with: that he had seemed to have taken, what he
  • might suppose, the just measure of my weakness, founded on my youth and
  • inexperience: that I could not forgive myself for meeting him: that my
  • heart bled for the distresses of my father and mother, on this occasion:
  • that I would give the world, and all my hopes in it, to have been still
  • in my father's house, whatever had been my usage: that, let him protest
  • and vow what he would, I saw something low and selfish in his love, that
  • he could study to put a young creature upon making such a sacrifice of
  • her duty and conscience: when a person, actuated by a generous love,
  • must seek to oblige the object of it, in every thing essential to her
  • honour, and to her peace of mind.
  • He was very attentive to all I said, never offering to interrupt me
  • once. His answer to every article, almost methodically, shewed his
  • memory.
  • 'What I had said, he told me, made him very grave; and he would answer
  • accordingly.
  • 'He was grieved at his heart, to find that he had so little share in my
  • favour or confidence.
  • 'As to my reputation, (he must be very sincere with me,) that could not
  • suffer half so much by the step I so regretted to have taken, as by the
  • confinement, and equally foolish and unjust treatment, I had met with
  • from my relations: that every mouth was full of blame of them, of my
  • brother and sister particularly; and of wonder at my patience: that he
  • must repeat what he had written to me he believed more than once, That
  • my friends themselves expected that I should take a proper opportunity
  • to free myself from their persecutions; why else did they confine me?
  • That my exalted character, as he called it, would still bear me out,
  • with those who knew me; who knew my brother's and sister's motives; and
  • who knew the wretch they were for compelling me to have.
  • 'With regard to clothes; who, as matters were circumstanced, could
  • expect that I should be able to bring away any others than those I had
  • on at the time? For present use or wear, all the ladies of his family
  • would take a pride to supply me: for future, the product of the best
  • looms, not only in England, but throughout the world, were at my
  • command.
  • 'If I wanted money, as no doubt I must, he should be proud to supply me:
  • Would to heaven, he might presume to hope, there were but one interest
  • between us!'
  • And then he would fain have had me to accept of a bank note of a hundred
  • pounds; which, unawares to me, he put into my hand: but which, you may
  • be sure, I refused with warmth.
  • 'He was inexpressibly grieved and surprised, he said, to hear me say
  • he had acted artfully by me. He came provided, according to my confirmed
  • appointment,' [a wretch to upbraid me thus!] 'to redeem me from my
  • persecutors; and little expected a change of sentiment, and that he
  • should have so much difficulty to prevail upon me, as he had met with:
  • that perhaps I might think his offer to go into the garden with me, and
  • to face my assembled relations, was a piece of art only: but that if I
  • did, I wronged him: since to this hour, seeing my excessive uneasiness,
  • he wished, with all his soul he had been permitted to accompany me in.
  • It was always his maxim to brave a threatened danger. Threateners, where
  • they have an opportunity to put in force their threats, were seldom
  • to be feared. But had he been assured of a private stab, or of as many
  • death's wounds as there were persons in my family, (made desperate as
  • he should have been by my return,) he would have attended me into the
  • house.'
  • So, my dear, what I have to do, is to hold myself inexcusable for
  • meeting such a determined and audacious spirit; that's all! I have
  • hardly any question now, but that he would have contrived some wicked
  • stratagem or other to have got me away, had I met him at a midnight
  • hour, as once or twice I had thoughts to do; and that would have been
  • more terrible still.
  • He concluded this part of his talk, with saying, 'That he doubted not
  • but that, had he attended me in, he should have come off in every
  • one's opinion well, that he should have had general leave to renew his
  • visits.'
  • He went on--'He must be so bold as to tell me, that he should have paid
  • a visit of this kind, (but indeed accompanied by several of his trusty
  • friends,) had I not met him; and that very afternoon too; for he could
  • not tamely let the dreadful Wednesday come, without making some effort
  • to change their determinations.'
  • What, my dear, was to be done with such a man!
  • 'That therefore for my sake, as well as for his own, he had reason to
  • wish that a disease so desperate had been attempted to be overcome by as
  • desperate a remedy. We all know, said he, that great ends are sometimes
  • brought about by the very means by which they are endeavoured to be
  • frustrated.'
  • My present situation, I am sure, thought I, affords a sad evidence of
  • this truth!
  • I was silent all this time. My blame was indeed turned inward.
  • Sometimes, too, I was half-frighted at his audaciousness: at others, had
  • the less inclination to interrupt him, being excessively fatigued, and
  • my spirits sunk to nothing, with a view even of the best prospects with
  • such a man.
  • This gave his opportunity to proceed: and that he did; assuming a still
  • more serious air.
  • 'As to what further remained for him to say, in answer to what I had
  • said, he hoped I would pardon him; but, upon his soul, he was concerned,
  • infinitely concerned, he repeated, (his colour and his voice rising,)
  • that it was necessary for him to observe, how much I chose rather to
  • have run the risque of being Solmes's wife, than to have it in my power
  • to reward a man who, I must forgive him, had been as much insulted on my
  • account, as I had been on his--who had watched my commands, and (pardon
  • me, Madam) ever changeable motion of your pen, all hours, in all
  • weathers, and with a cheerfulness and ardour, that nothing but the most
  • faithful and obsequious passion could inspire.'
  • I now, my dear, began to revive into a little more warmth of
  • attention.--
  • 'And all, Madam, for what?'--How I stared! for he stopt then a moment
  • or two--'Only,' went he on, 'to prevail upon you to free yourself from
  • ungenerous and base oppressions'--
  • Sir, Sir, indignantly said I--
  • 'Hear me but out, dearest Madam!--My heart is full--I must speak what
  • I have to say--To be told (for your words are yet in my ears, and at my
  • heart!) that you would give the world, and all your hopes in it, to have
  • been still in your cruel and gloomy father's house'--
  • Not a word, Sir, against my father!--I will not bear that--
  • 'Whatever had been your usage:--and you have a credulity, Madam, against
  • all probability, if you believe you should have avoided being
  • Solmes's wife: That I have put you upon sacrificing your duty and
  • conscience--yet, dearest creature! see you not the contradiction that
  • your warmth of temper has surprised you into, when the reluctance
  • you shewed to the last to leave your persecutors, has cleared your
  • conscience from the least reproach of this sort?'--
  • O Sir! Sir! are you so critical then? Are you so light in your anger as
  • to dwell upon words?--
  • Indeed, my dear, I have since thought that his anger was not owing to
  • that sudden impetus, which cannot be easily bridled; but rather was a
  • sort of manageable anger let loose to intimidate me.
  • 'Forgive me, Madam--I have just done--Have I not, in your opinion,
  • hazarded my life to redeem you from oppression? Yet is not my reward,
  • after all, precarious?--For, Madam, have you not conditioned with me
  • (and, hard as the condition is, most sacredly will I observe it) that
  • all my hope must be remote? That you are determined to have it in your
  • power to favour or reject me totally, as you please?'
  • See, my dear! in every respect my condition changed for the worse! Is it
  • in my power to take your advice, if I should think it ever so right to
  • take it?*
  • * Clarissa had been censured as behaving to Mr. Lovelace, in their first
  • conversation at St. Alban's, and afterwards, with too much reserve, and
  • even with haughtiness. Surely those, who have thought her to blame on
  • this account, have not paid a due attention to the story. How early, as
  • above, and in what immediately follows, does he remind her of the terms
  • of distance which she had prescribed to him, before she was in his
  • power, in hopes to leave the door open for a reconciliation with
  • her friends, which her heart was set upon? And how artfully does he
  • (unrequired) promise to observe the conditions in which she in her
  • present circumstances and situation (in pursuance of Miss Howe's advice)
  • would gladly have dispensed with?--To say nothing of the resentment she
  • was under a necessity to shew, at the manner of his getting her away, in
  • order to justify to him the sincerity of her refusal to go off with him.
  • See, in her subsequent Letter to Miss Howe, No. IX., her own sense upon
  • the subject.
  • 'And have you not furthermore declared,' proceeded he 'that you will
  • engage to renounce me for ever, if your friends insist upon that cruel
  • renunciation, as the terms of being reconciled to you?
  • 'But nevertheless, Madam, all the merit of having saved you from an
  • odious compulsion, shall be mine. I glory in it, though I were to lose
  • you for ever. As I see I am but too likely to do, from your present
  • displeasure; and especially, if your friends insist upon the terms you
  • are ready to comply with.
  • 'That you are your own mistress, through my means, is, I repeat, my
  • boast. As such, I humbly implore your favour, and that only upon the
  • conditions I have yielded to hope for it. As I do now, thus humbly,
  • [the proud wretch falling on one knee,] your forgiveness, for so long
  • detaining your ear, and for all the plain dealing that my undesigning
  • heart would not be denied to utter by my lips.'
  • O Sir, pray rise! Let the obliged kneel, if one of us must kneel! But,
  • nevertheless, proceed not in this strain, I beseech you. You have had
  • a great deal of trouble about me: but had you let me know in time, that
  • you expected to be rewarded for it at the price of my duty, I should
  • have spared you much of it.
  • Far be it from me, Sir, to depreciate merit so extraordinary. But let me
  • say, that had it not been for the forbidden correspondence I was teased
  • by you into; and which I had not continued (every letter, for many
  • letters, intended to be the last) but because I thought you a sufferer
  • from my friends; I had not been either confined or ill treated: nor
  • would my brother's low-meant violence have had a foundation to work
  • upon.
  • I am far from thinking my case would have been so very desperate as you
  • imagine had I staid. My father loved me in his heart: he would not see
  • me before; and I wanted only to see him, and to be heard; and a delay
  • of his sentence was the least thing I expected from the trial I was to
  • stand.
  • You are boasting of your merits, Sir: let merit be your boast; nothing
  • else can attract me. If personal considerations had principal weight
  • with me, either in Solmes's disfavour, or in your favour, I shall
  • despise myself: if you value yourself upon them, in preference to the
  • person of the poor Solmes, I shall despise you!
  • You may glory in your fancied merits in getting me away: but the cause
  • of your glory, I tell you plainly, is my shame.
  • Make to yourself a title to my regard, which I can better approve of; or
  • else you will not have so much merit with me, as you have with yourself.
  • But here, Sir, like the first pair, (I, at least, driven out of my
  • paradise,) are we recriminating. No more shall you need to tell me of
  • your sufferings, and your merits! your all hours, and all weathers! For
  • I will bear them in memory as long as I live; and if it be impossible
  • for me to reward them, be ever ready to own the obligation. All that
  • I desire of you now is, to leave it to myself to seek for some private
  • abode: to take the chariot with you to London, or elsewhere: and, if
  • I have any further occasion for your assistance and protection, I will
  • signify it to you, and be still further obliged to you.
  • You are warm, my dearest life!--But indeed there is no occasion for it.
  • Had I any views unworthy of my faithful love for you, I should not have
  • been so honest in my declarations.
  • Then he began again to vow the sincerity of his intentions--
  • But I took him up short: I am willing to believe you, Sir. It would
  • be insupportable but to suppose there were a necessity for such solemn
  • declarations. [At this he seemed to collect himself, as I may say, into
  • a little more circumspection.] If I thought there were, I would not sit
  • with you here, in a public inn, I assure you, although cheated hither,
  • as far as I know, by methods (you must excuse me, Sir) which, but
  • to suspect, will hardly let me have patience either with you or with
  • myself--but no more of this, just now: Let me, I beseech you, good Sir,
  • bowing [I was very angry!] let me only know whether you intend to leave
  • me; or whether I have only escaped from one confinement to another?
  • Cheated hither, as far as I know, Madam! Let you know (and with that
  • air, too, charming, though grievous to my heart!) if you have only
  • escaped from one confinement to another--amazing! perfectly amazing! And
  • can there be a necessity for me to answer this? You are absolutely your
  • own mistress--it was very strange, if you were not. The moment you are
  • in a place of safety, I will leave you. To one condition only, give me
  • leave to beg your consent: it is this, that you will be pleased, now you
  • are so entirely in your own power, to renew a promise voluntarily made
  • before; voluntarily, or I would not now presume to request it; for
  • although I would not be thought capable of growing upon concession, yet
  • I cannot bear to think of losing the ground your goodness had given
  • me room to hope I had gained; 'That, make up how you please with your
  • relations, you will never marry any other man, while I am living and
  • single, unless I should be so wicked as to give new cause for high
  • displeasure.'
  • I hesitate not to confirm this promise, Sir, upon your own condition. In
  • what manner do you expect to confirm it?
  • Only, Madam, by your word.
  • Then I never will.
  • He had the assurance (I was now in his power) to salute me as a sealing
  • of my promise, as he called it. His motion was so sudden, that I was not
  • aware of it. It would have looked affected to be very angry; yet I could
  • not be pleased, considering this as a leading freedom, from a spirit so
  • audacious and encroaching: and he might see, that I was not.
  • He passed all that by with an air peculiar to himself--Enough, enough,
  • dearest Madam! And now let me beg of you but to conquer this dreadful
  • uneasiness, which gives me to apprehend too much for my jealous love to
  • bear; and it shall be my whole endeavour to deserve your favour, and to
  • make you the happiest woman in the world; as I shall be the happiest of
  • men.
  • I broke from him to write to you my preceding letter; but refused to
  • send it by his servant, as I told you. The mistress of the house helped
  • me to a messenger, who was to carry what you should give him to Lord
  • M.'s seat in Hertfordshire, directed for Mrs. Greme, the housekeeper
  • there. And early in the morning, for fear of pursuit, we were to set
  • out that way: and there he proposed to change the chariot and six for a
  • chaise and pair of his own, which he had at that seat, as it would be a
  • less-noticed conveyance.
  • I looked over my little stock of money; and found it to be no more
  • than seven guineas and some silver: the rest of my stock was but fifty
  • guineas, and that five more than I thought it was, when my sister
  • challenged me as to the sum I had by me:* and those I left in my
  • escritoire, little intending to go away with him.
  • * See Vol. I. Letter XLIII.
  • Indeed my case abounds with a shocking number of indelicate
  • circumstances. Among the rest, I was forced to account to him, who knew
  • I could have no clothes but what I had on, how I came to have linen with
  • me (for he could not but know I sent for it); lest he should imagine
  • I had an early design to go away with him, and made that part of the
  • preparation.
  • He most heartily wished, he said, for my mind's sake, that your mother
  • would have afforded me her protection; and delivered himself upon this
  • subject with equal freedom and concern.
  • There are, my dear Miss Howe, a multitude of punctilios and decorums,
  • which a young creature must dispense with, who, in a situation like
  • mine, makes a man the intimate attendant of her person. I could now,
  • I think, give twenty reasons stronger than any I have heretofore
  • mentioned, why women of the least delicacy should never think of
  • incurring the danger and the disgrace of taking the step I have been
  • drawn in to take, but with horror and aversion; and why they should look
  • upon the man who should tempt them to it, as the vilest and most selfish
  • of seducers.
  • *****
  • Before five o'clock (Tuesday morning) the maidservant came up to tell me
  • that my brother was ready, and that breakfast also waited for me in
  • the parlour. I went down with a heart as heavy as my eyes, and received
  • great acknowledgements and compliments from him on being so soon
  • dressed, and ready (as he interpreted it) to continue on our journey.
  • He had the thought which I had not (for what had I to do with thinking, who
  • had it not when I stood most in need of it?) to purchase for me a velvet
  • hood, and a short cloke, trimmed with silver, without saying any thing
  • to me. He must reward himself, the artful encroacher said, before the
  • landlady and her maids and niece, for his forethought; and would salute
  • his pretty sullen sister!--He took his reward; and, as he said before,
  • a tear with it. While he assured me, still before them [a vile wretch!]
  • that I had nothing to fear from meeting with parents who so dearly loved
  • me.--
  • How could I be complaisant, my dear, to such a man as this?
  • When we had got in the chariot, and it began to move, he asked me,
  • whether I had any objection to go to Lord M.'s Hertfordshire seat? His
  • Lordship, he said, was at his Berkshire one.
  • I told him, I chose not to go, as yet, to any of his relations; for that
  • would indicate a plain defiance to my own. My choice was, to go to a
  • private lodging, and for him to be at a distance from me: at least, till
  • I heard how things were taken by my friends: for that, although I had
  • but little hopes of a reconciliation as it was; yet if they knew I was
  • in his protection, or in that of any of his friends, (which would be
  • looked upon as the same thing,) there would not be room for any hopes at
  • all.
  • I should govern him as I pleased, he solemnly assured me, in every
  • thing. But he still thought London was the best place for me; and if I
  • were once safe there, and in a lodging to my liking, he would go to M.
  • Hall. But, as I approved not of London, he would urge it no further.
  • He proposed, and I consented, to put up at an inn in the neighbourhood
  • of The Lawn (as he called Lord M.'s seat in this county) since I chose
  • not to go thither. And here I got two hours to myself; which I told him
  • I should pass in writing another letter to you, (meaning my narrative,
  • which, though greatly fatigued, I had begun at St. Alban's,) and in one
  • to my sister, to apprise the family (whether they were solicitous about
  • it or not) that I was well; and to beg that my clothes, some particular
  • books, and the fifty guineas I had left in my escritoire, might be sent
  • me.
  • He asked, if I had considered whither to have them directed?
  • Indeed, not I, I told him: I was a stranger to--
  • So was he, he interrupted me; but it struck him by chance--
  • Wicked story-teller!
  • But, added he, I will tell you, Madam, how it shall be managed--If
  • you don't choose to go to London, it is, nevertheless, best that your
  • relations should think you there; for then they will absolutely despair
  • of finding you. If you write, be pleased to direct, to be left for you,
  • at Mr. Osgood's, near Soho-square. Mr. Osgood is a man of reputation:
  • and this will effectually amuse them.
  • Amuse them, my dear!--Amuse whom?--My father!--my uncles!--But it must
  • be so!----All his expedients ready, you see!
  • I had no objection to this: and I have written accordingly. But what
  • answer I shall have, or whether any, that is what gives me no small
  • anxiety.
  • This, however, is one consolation, that if I have an answer, and
  • although my brother should be the writer, it cannot be more severe than
  • the treatment I have of late received from him and my sister.
  • Mr. Lovelace staid out about an hour and half; and then came in;
  • impatiently sending up to me no less than four times, to desire
  • admittance. But I sent him word as often, that I was busy; and at last,
  • that I should be so, till dinner was ready. He then hastened that, as I
  • heard him now-and-then, with a hearty curse upon the cook and waiters.
  • This is another of his perfections. I ventured afterwards to check him
  • for his free words, as we sat at dinner.
  • Having heard him swear at his servant, when below, whom, nevertheless,
  • he owns to be a good one; it is a sad life, said I, these innkeepers
  • live, Mr. Lovelace.
  • No; pretty well, I believe--but why, Madam, think you, that fellows, who
  • eat and drink at other men's cost, or they are sorry innkeepers, should
  • be entitled to pity?
  • Because of the soldiers they are obliged to quarter; who are generally,
  • I believe, wretched profligates. Bless me! said I, how I heard one of
  • them swear and curse, just now, at a modest, meek man, as I judge by his
  • low voice, and gentle answers!--Well do they make it a proverb--Like a
  • trooper!
  • He bit his lip; arose; turned upon his heel; stept to the glass; and
  • looking confidently abashed, if I may say so, Ay, Madam, said he,
  • these troopers are sad swearing fellows. I think their officers should
  • chastise them for it.
  • I am sure they deserve chastisement, replied I: for swearing is a most
  • unmanly vice, and cursing as poor and low a one; since they proclaim the
  • profligate's want of power, and his wickedness at the same time; for,
  • could such a one punish as he speaks, he would be a fiend!
  • Charmingly observed, by my soul, Madam!--The next trooper I hear swear
  • and curse, I'll tell him what an unmanly, and what a poor wretch he is.
  • Mrs. Greme came to pay her duty to me, as Mr. Lovelace called it; and
  • was very urgent with me to go to her lord's house; letting me know what
  • handsome things she had heard of her lord, and his two nieces, and all
  • the family, say of me; and what wishes for several months past they had
  • put up for the honour she now hoped would soon be done them all.
  • This gave me some satisfaction, as it confirmed from the mouth of a very
  • good sort of woman all that Mr. Lovelace had told me.
  • Upon inquiry about a private lodging, she recommended me to a
  • sister-in-law of hers, eight miles from thence--where I now am. And what
  • pleased me the better, was, that Mr. Lovelace (of whom I could see she
  • was infinitely observant) obliged her, of his own motion, to accompany
  • me in the chaise; himself riding on horseback, with his two servants,
  • and one of Lord M.'s. And here we arrived about four o'clock.
  • But, as I told you in my former, the lodgings are inconvenient. Mr.
  • Lovelace indeed found great fault with them: and told Mrs. Greme (who
  • had said, that they were not worthy of us) that they came not up even to
  • her own account of them. As the house was a mile from a town, it was not
  • proper for him, he said, to be so far distant from me, lest any thing
  • should happen: and yet the apartments were not separate and distinct
  • enough for me to like them, he was sure.
  • This must be agreeable enough for him, you will believe.
  • Mrs. Greme and I had a good deal of talk in the chaise about him: she
  • was very easy and free in her answers to all I asked; and has, I find, a
  • very serious turn.
  • I led her on to say to the following effect; some part of it not unlike
  • what Lord M.'s dismissed bailiff had said before; by which I find that
  • all the servants have a like opinion of him.
  • 'That Mr. Lovelace was a generous man: that it was hard to say, whether
  • the servants of her lord's family loved or feared him most: that her
  • lord had a very great affection for him: that his two noble aunts were
  • not less fond of him: that his cousins Montague were as good natured
  • young ladies as ever lived: that Lord M. and Lady Sarah, and Lady Betty
  • had proposed several ladies to him, before he made his addresses to me:
  • and even since; despairing to move me and my friends in his favour.--But
  • that he had no thoughts of marrying at all, she had heard him say, if it
  • were not to me: that as well her lord as the two ladies his sisters were
  • a good deal concerned at the ill-usage he received from my family: but
  • admired my character, and wished to have him married to me (although I
  • were not to have a shilling) in preference to any other person, from the
  • opinion they had of the influence I should have over him. That, to be
  • sure, Mr. Lovelace was a wild gentleman: but wildness was a distemper
  • which would cure itself. That her lord delighted in his company,
  • whenever he could get it: but that they often fell out; and his lordship
  • was always forced to submit--indeed, was half afraid of him, she
  • believed; for Mr. Lovelace would do as he pleased. She mingled a
  • thousand pities often, that he acted not up to the talents lent him--yet
  • would have it, that he had fine qualities to found a reformation upon:
  • and, when the happy day came, would make amends for all: and of this all
  • his friends were so assured, that they wished for nothing so earnestly,
  • as for his marriage.'
  • This, indifferent as it is, is better than my brother says of him.
  • The people of the house here are very honest-looking industrious folks:
  • Mrs. Sorlings is the gentlewoman's name. The farm seems well stocked,
  • and thriving. She is a widow; has two sons, men grown, who vie with each
  • other which shall take most pains in promoting the common good; and they
  • are both of them, I already see, more respectful to two modest young
  • women their sisters, than my brother was to his sister.
  • I believe I must stay here longer than at first I thought I should.
  • I ought to have mentioned, that, before I set out for this place, I
  • received your kind letter.* Every thing is kind from so dear a friend.
  • * See Vol. II. Letter XLVII.
  • I own, that after I had told you of my absolute determination not to go
  • away with him, you might well be surprised, at your first hearing that
  • I was actually gone. The Lord bless me, my dear, I myself, at times, can
  • hardly believe it is I, that have been led to take so strange a step.
  • I have not the better opinion of Mr. Lovelace for his extravagant
  • volubility. He is too full of professions. He says too many fine things
  • of me, and to me. True respect, true value, I think, lies not in words:
  • words cannot express it: the silent awe, the humble, the doubting eye,
  • and even the hesitating voice, better shew it by much, than, as our
  • beloved Shakespeare says,
  • ----The rattling tongue
  • Of saucy and audacious eloquence.
  • The man indeed at times is all upon the ecstatic; one of his phrases.
  • But, to my shame and confusion, I must say, that I know too well to what
  • to attribute his transports. In one word, it is to his triumph, my
  • dear. And, to impute it to that perhaps equally exposes my vanity, and
  • condemns my folly.
  • We have been alarmed with notions of a pursuit, founded upon a letter
  • from his intelligencer.
  • How do different circumstances either sanctify or condemn the same
  • action!--What care ought we to take not to confound the distinctions of
  • right and wrong, when self comes in the question!--I condemned in Mr.
  • Lovelace the corrupting of a servant of my father's; and now I am glad
  • to give a kind of indirect approbation of that fault, by inquiring of
  • him what he hears, by that or any other way, of the manner in which my
  • relations took my flight. A preconcerted, forward, and artful flight, it
  • must undoubtedly appear to them. How grievous is that to think of! yet
  • how, as long as I am situated, can I put them right?
  • Most heavily, he says, they take it; but shew not so much grief as rage.
  • And he can hardly have patience to hear of the virulence and menaces
  • of my brother against himself. Then a merit is made to me of his
  • forbearance.
  • What a satisfaction am I robbed of, my dearest friend, when I reflect
  • upon my inconsiderateness! O that I had it still in my power to say I
  • suffered wrong, rather than did wrong! That others were more wanting in
  • their kindness to me than I duty (where duty is owing) to them.
  • Fie upon me! for meeting the seducer!--Let all end as happily as it now
  • may, I have laid up for myself remorse for my whole life.
  • What still more concerns me is, that every time I see this man, I am
  • still at a greater loss than before what to make of him. I watch every
  • turn of his countenance: and I think I see very deep lines in it. He
  • looks with more meaning, I verily think, than he used to look; yet not
  • more serious; not less gay--I don't know how he looks--but with more
  • confidence a great deal than formerly; and yet he never wanted that.
  • But here is the thing; I behold him with fear now, as conscious of the
  • power my indiscretion has given him over me. And well may he look more
  • elate, when he sees me deprived of all the self-supposed significance,
  • which adorns and exalts a person who has been accustomed to respect; and
  • who now, by a conscious inferiority, allows herself to be overcome,
  • and in a state of obligation, as I may say, to a man who from a humble
  • suitor to her for her favour, assumes the consequence and airs of a
  • protector.
  • I shall send this, as my former, by a poor man, who travels every day
  • with pedlary matters. He will leave it at Mrs. Knolly's, as you direct.
  • If you hear any thing of my father and mother, and of their health, and
  • how my friends were affected by my unhappy step, pray be so good as to
  • write me a few lines by the messenger, if his waiting for them can be
  • known to you.
  • I am afraid to ask you, Whether, upon reading that part of my narrative
  • already in your hands, you think any sort of extenuation lies for
  • Your unhappy CLARISSA HARLOWE?
  • LETTER VII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. TUESDAY, WEDN. APRIL 11, 12.
  • You claim my promise, that I will be as particular as possible, in
  • all that passes between me and my goddess. Indeed, I never had a more
  • illustrious subject to exercise my pen. And, moreover, I have leisure;
  • for by her good will, my access would be as difficult to her, as that of
  • the humblest slave to an Eastern monarch. Nothing, then, but inclination
  • to write can be wanting; and since our friendship, and your obliging
  • attendance upon me at the White Hart, will not excuse that, I will
  • endeavour to keep my word.
  • I parted with thee and thy brethren, with a full resolution, thou
  • knowest, to rejoin ye, if she once again disappointed me, in order to go
  • together (attended by our servants, for shew sake) to the gloomy father;
  • and demand audience of the tyrant upon the freedoms taken with my
  • character. In short, to have tried by fair resolutions, and treat his
  • charming daughter with less inhumanity, and me with more civility.
  • I told thee my reasons for not going in search of a letter of
  • countermand. I was right; for if I had, I should have found such a one;
  • and had I received it, she would not have met me. Did she think, that
  • after I had been more than once disappointed, I would not keep her to
  • her promise; that I would not hold her to it, when I had got her in so
  • deeply?
  • The moment I heard the door unbolt, I was sure of her. That motion
  • made my heart bound to my throat. But when that was followed with the
  • presence of my charmer, flashing upon me all at once in a flood of
  • brightness, sweetly dressed, though all unprepared for a journey, I trod
  • air, and hardly thought myself a mortal.
  • Thou shalt judge of her dress, as at the moment I first beheld her she
  • appeared to me, and as, upon a nearer observation, she really was. I am
  • a critic, thou knowest, in women's dresses. Many a one have I taught
  • to dress, and helped to undress. But there is such a native elegance in
  • this lady, that she surpasses all that I could imagine surpassing. But
  • then her person adorns what she wears, more than dress can adorn her;
  • and that's her excellence.
  • Expect therefore a faint sketch of her admirable person with her dress.
  • Her wax-like flesh (for after all, flesh and blood I think she is) by
  • its delicacy and firmness, answers for the soundness of her health. Thou
  • hast often heard me launch out in praise of her complexion. I never in
  • my life beheld a skins so illustriously fair. The lily and the driven
  • snow it is nonsense to talk of: her lawn and her laces one might indeed
  • compare to those; but what a whited wall would a woman appear to be,
  • who had a complexion which would justify such unnatural comparisons? But
  • this lady is all glowing, all charming flesh and blood; yet so clear,
  • that every meandring vein is to be seen in all the lovely parts of her
  • which custom permits to be visible.
  • Thou has heard me also describe the wavy ringlets of her shining hair,
  • needing neither art nor powder; of itself an ornament, defying all
  • other ornaments; wantoning in and about a neck that is beautiful beyond
  • description.
  • Her head-dress was a Brussels-lace mob, peculiarly adapted to the
  • charming air and turn of her features. A sky-blue ribband illustrated
  • that. But although the weather was somewhat sharp, she had not on either
  • hat or hood; for, besides that she loves to use herself hardily (by
  • which means and by a temperance truly exemplary, she is allowed to have
  • given high health and vigour to an originally tender constitution) she
  • seems to have intended to shew me, that she was determined not to stand
  • to her appointment. O Jack! that such a sweet girl should be a rogue!
  • Her morning gown was a pale primrose-coloured paduasoy: the cuffs
  • and robins curiously embroidered by the fingers of this ever-charming
  • Arachne, in a running pattern of violets and their leaves, the light in
  • the flowers silver, gold in the leaves. A pair of diamond snaps in
  • her ears. A white handkerchief wrought by the same inimitable fingers
  • concealed--O Belford! what still more inimitable beauties did it not
  • conceal!--And I saw, all the way we rode, the bounding heart (by its
  • throbbing motions I saw it!) dancing beneath her charming umbrage.
  • Her ruffles were the same as her mob. Her apron a flowered lawn. Her
  • coat white sattin, quilted: blue sattin her shoes, braided with the same
  • colour, without lace; for what need has the prettiest foot in the world
  • of ornament? neat buckles in them: and on her charming arms a pair of
  • black velvet glove-like muffs of her own invention; for she makes and
  • gives fashions as she pleases.--Her hands velvet of themselves, thus
  • uncovered the freer to be grasped by those of her adorer.
  • I have told thee what were my transports, when the undrawn bolt
  • presented to me my long-expected goddess. Her emotions were more sweetly
  • feminine, after the first moments; for then the fire of her starry eyes
  • began to sink into a less dazzling languor. She trembled: nor knew
  • she how to support the agitations of a heart she had never found so
  • ungovernable. She was even fainting, when I clasped her in my supporting
  • arms. What a precious moment that! How near, how sweetly near, the
  • throbbing partners!
  • By her dress, I saw, as I observed before, how unprepared she was for
  • a journey; and not doubting her intention once more to disappoint me, I
  • would have drawn her after me. Then began a contention the most vehement
  • that ever I had with woman. It would pain thy friendly heart to be told
  • the infinite trouble I had with her. I begged, I prayed; on my knees,
  • yet in vain, I begged and prayed her to answer her own appointment: and
  • had I not happily provided for such a struggle, knowing whom I had to
  • deal with, I had certainly failed in my design; and as certainly would
  • have accompanied her in, without thee and thy brethren: and who knows
  • what might have been the consequence?
  • But my honest agent answering my signal, though not quite so soon as I
  • expected, in the manner thou knowest I had prescribed, They are coming!
  • They are coming!--Fly, fly, my beloved creature, cried I, drawing my
  • sword with a flourish, as if I would have slain half an hundred of the
  • supposed intruders; and, seizing her trembling hands, I drew her after
  • me so swiftly, that my feet, winged by love, could hardly keep pace with
  • her feet, agitated by fear.--And so I became her emperor.
  • I'll tell thee all, when I see thee: and thou shalt then judge of my
  • difficulties, and of her perverseness. And thou wilt rejoice with me at
  • my conquest over such a watchful and open-eyed charmer.
  • But seest thou not now (as I think I do) the wind outstripping fair one
  • flying from her love to her love? Is there not such a game?--Nay, flying
  • from her friends she was resolved not to abandon, to the man she was
  • determined not to go off with?--The sex! the sex, all over!--Charming
  • contradiction!--Hah, hah, hah, hah!--I must here--I must here, lay down
  • my pen, to hold my sides; for I must have my laugh out now the fit is
  • upon me.
  • *****
  • I believe--I believe--Hah, hah, hah! I believe, Jack, my dogs conclude
  • me mad: for here has one of them popt in, as if to see what ailed me, or
  • whom I had with me. Hah, hah, hah! An impudent dog! O Jack, knewest thou
  • my conceit, and were but thy laugh joined to mine, I believe it would
  • hold me for an hour longer.
  • But, O my best beloved fair one, repine not thou at the arts by which
  • thou suspectest thy fruitless vigilence has been over watched. Take
  • care, that thou provokest not new ones, that may be still more worthy
  • of thee. If once thy emperor decrees thy fall, thou shalt greatly fall.
  • Thou shalt have cause, if that come to pass, which may come to pass (for
  • why wouldst thou put off marriage to so long a day, as till thou hadst
  • reason to be convinced of my reformation, dearest?) thou shalt have
  • cause, never fear, to sit down more dissatisfied with the stars, than
  • with thyself. And come the worst to the worst, glorious terms will I
  • give thee. Thy garrison, with general Prudence at the head, and governor
  • Watchfulness bringing up the rear, shall be allowed to march out with
  • all the honours due to so brave a resistance. And all thy sex, and all
  • mine, that hear of my stratagems, and of thy conduct, shall acknowledge
  • the fortress as nobly won as defended.
  • 'Thou wilt not dare, methinks I hear thee say, to attempt to reduce such
  • a goddess as this, to a standard unworthy of her excellencies. It is
  • impossible, Lovelace, that thou shouldst intent to break through oaths
  • and protestations so solemn.'
  • That I did not intend it, is certain. That I do intend it, I cannot (my
  • heart, my reverence for her, will not let me) say. But knowest thou not
  • my aversion to the state of shackles?--And is she not IN MY POWER?
  • 'And wilt thou, Lovelace, abuse that power which--'
  • Which what, Belford? Which I obtained not by her own consent, but
  • against it.
  • 'But which thou never hadst obtained, had she not esteemed thee above
  • all men.'
  • And which I had never taken so much pains to obtain, had I not loved her
  • above all women. So far upon a par, Jack! and if thou pleadest honour,
  • ought not honour to be mutual? If mutual, does it not imply mutual
  • trust, mutual confidence? And what have I had of that from her to boast
  • of?--Thou knowest the whole progress of our warfare: for a warfare it
  • has truly been; and far, very far, from an amorous warfare too. Doubts,
  • mistrusts, upbraidings, on her part; humiliations the most abject, on
  • mine. Obliged to assume such airs of reformation, that every varlet of
  • ye has been afraid I should reclaim in good earnest. And hast thou not
  • thyself frequently observed to me, how awkwardly I returned to my usual
  • gayety, after I had been within a mile of her father's garden-wall,
  • although I had not seen her?
  • Does she not deserve to pay for all this?--To make an honest fellow look
  • like an hypocrite, what a vile thing is that!
  • Then thou knowest what a false little rogue she has been. How little
  • conscience she has made of disappointing me. Hast thou not been a
  • witness of my ravings on this score? Have I not, in the height of them,
  • vowed revenge upon the faithless charmer? And if I must be forsworn,
  • whether I answer her expectations, or follow my own inclinations; and if
  • the option be in my own power, can I hesitate a moment which to choose?
  • Then, I fancy by her circumspection, and her continual grief, that she
  • expects some mischief from me. I don't care to disappoint any body I
  • have a value for.
  • But O the noble, the exalted creature! Who can avoid hesitating when he
  • thinks of an offence against her? Who can but pity--
  • Yet, on the other hand, so loth at last to venture, though threatened
  • to be forced into the nuptial fetters with a man, whom to look upon as
  • a rival, is to disgrace myself!--So sullen, now she has ventured!--What
  • title has she to pity; and to a pity which her pride would make her
  • disclaim?
  • But I resolve not any way. I will see how her will works; and how my
  • will leads me on. I will give the combatants fair play, and yet, every
  • time I attend her, I find that she is less in my power; I more in hers.
  • Yet, a foolish little rogue! to forbid me to think of marriage till I am
  • a reformed man! Till the implacables of her family change their natures,
  • and become placable!
  • It is true, when she was for making those conditions, she did not think,
  • that without any, she should be cheated out of herself; for so the dear
  • soul, as I may tell thee in its place, phrases it.
  • How it swells my pride, to have been able to outwit such a vigilant
  • charmer! I am taller by half a yard in my imagination than I was. I look
  • down upon every body now. Last night I was still more extravagant. I
  • took off my hat, as I walked, to see if the lace were not scorched,
  • supposing it had brushed down a star; and, before I put it on again, in
  • mere wantonness and heart's ease, I was for buffeting the moon.
  • In short, my whole soul is joy. When I go to bed I laugh myself asleep;
  • and I awake either laughing or singing--yet nothing nearly in view,
  • neither--For why?--I am not yet reformed enough!
  • I told thee at the time, if thou rememberest, how capable this
  • restriction was of being turned upon the over-scrupulous dear creature,
  • could I once get her out of her father's house; and were I disposed to
  • punish her for her family's faults, and for the infinite trouble she
  • herself had given me. Little thinks she, that I have kept an account of
  • both: and that, when my heart is soft, and all her own, I can but turn
  • to my memoranda, and harden myself at once.
  • O my charmer, look to it! Abate of thy haughty airs! Value not thyself
  • upon thy sincerity, if thou art indifferent to me! I will not bear it
  • now. Art thou not in my POWER!--Nor, if thou lovest me, think, that
  • the female affectation of denying thy love, will avail thee now, with a
  • heart so proud and so jealous as mine?--Remember, moreover, that all thy
  • family sins are upon thy head--!
  • But ah! Jack, when I see my angel, when I am admitted to the presence of
  • this radiant beauty, what will become of all this vapouring?
  • But, be my end what it may, I am obliged, by thy penetration, fair one,
  • to proceed by the sap. Fair and softly. A wife at any time! Marriage
  • will be always in my power.
  • When put to the university, the same course of initial studies will
  • qualify the yonker for the one line or the other. The genius ought to
  • point out the future lawyer, divine, or physician!--So the same cautious
  • conduct, with such a vigilance, will do either for the wife, or for the
  • no-wife. When I reform, I'll marry. 'Tis time enough for the one, the
  • lady must say--for the other, say I!
  • But how I ramble!--This is to be in such a situation, that I know not
  • what to resolve upon.
  • I'll tell thee my inclinings, as I proceed. The pro's and the con's I'll
  • tell thee: but being got too far from the track I set out in, I will
  • close here. I may, however, write every day something, and send it as
  • opportunity offers.
  • Regardless, nevertheless, I shall be in all I write, of connection,
  • accuracy, or of any thing but of my own imperial will and pleasure.
  • LETTER VIII
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE WEDNESDAY NIGHT, APRIL 12.
  • I have your narrative, my dear. You are the same noble creature you
  • ever were. Above disguise, above art, above attempting to extenuate a
  • failing.
  • The only family in the world, yours, surely, that could have driven such
  • a daughter upon such extremities.
  • But you must not be so very much too good for them, and for the case.
  • You lay the blame so properly and so unsparingly upon your meeting him,
  • that nothing can be added to that subject by your worst enemies, were
  • they to see what you have written.
  • I am not surprised, now I have read your narrative, that so bold and so
  • contriving a man--I am forced to break off----
  • *****
  • You stood it out much better and longer--Here again comes my bustling,
  • jealous mother!
  • *****
  • Don't be angry at yourself. Did you not do for the best at the time? As
  • to your first fault, the answering his letters; it was always incumbent
  • upon you to assume the guardianship of such a family, when the bravo of
  • it had run riot, as he did, and brought himself into danger.
  • Except your mother, who has no will of her own, have any of them common
  • sense?
  • Forgive me, my dear--Here is that stupid uncle Antony of yours. A
  • pragmatical, conceited positive.--He came yesterday, in a fearful
  • pucker, and puffed, and blowed, and stumped about our hall and parlour,
  • while his message was carried up.
  • My mother was dressing. These widows are as starched as the old
  • bachelors. She would not see him in a dishabille for the world--What can
  • she mean by it?
  • His errand was to set her against you, and to shew her their determined
  • rage on your going away. The issue proved too evidently that this was
  • the principal end of his visit.
  • The odd creature desired to speak with her alone. I am not used to such
  • exceptions whenever any visits are made to my mother.
  • When she was primed out, down she came to him. They locked themselves
  • in. The two positive heads were put together--close together I suppose;
  • for I listened, but could hear nothing distinctly, though they both
  • seemed full of their subject.
  • I had a good mind, once or twice, to have made them open the door.
  • Could I have been sure of keeping but tolerably my temper, I would have
  • demanded admittance. But I was afraid, if I had obtained it, that I
  • should have forgot it was my mother's house, and been for turning
  • him out of it. To come to rave against and abuse my dearest, dearest,
  • faultless friend! and the ravings to be encouraged, and perhaps joined
  • in, in order to justify themselves; the one for contributing to drive
  • that dear friend out of her father's house; the other for refusing her
  • a temporary asylum, till the reconciliation could have been effected,
  • which her dutiful heart was set upon; and which it would have become
  • the love which my mother had ever pretended for you, to have mediated
  • for--Could I have had patience!
  • The issue, as I said, shewed what the errand was--Its fusty appearance,
  • after the old fusty fellow was marched off, [you must excuse me, my
  • dear,] was in a kind of gloomy, Harlowe-like reservedness in my mother;
  • which upon a few resenting flirts of mine, was followed by a rigorous
  • prohibition of correspondence.
  • This put us, you may suppose, upon terms not the most agreeable, I
  • desired to know, if I were prohibited dreaming of you?--For, my dear,
  • you have all my sleeping as well as waking hours.
  • I can easily allow for your correspondence with your wretch at first
  • (and yet your notions were excellent) by the effect this prohibition has
  • upon me; since, if possible, it has made me love you better than before;
  • and I am more desirous than ever of corresponding with you.
  • But I have nevertheless a much more laudable motive--I should think
  • myself the unworthiest of creatures, could I be brought to slight a
  • dear friend, and such a meritorious one, in her distress. I would die
  • first--And so I told my mother. And I have desired her not to watch me
  • in my retired hours; nor to insist upon my lying with her constantly,
  • which she now does more earnestly than ever. 'Twere better, I told her,
  • that the Harlowe-Betty were borrowed to be set over me.
  • Mr. Hickman, who so greatly honours you, has, unknown to me, interposed
  • so warmly in your favour with my mother, that it makes for him no small
  • merit with me.
  • I cannot, at present, write to every particular, unless I would be in
  • set defiance. Tease, tease, tease, for ever! The same thing, though
  • answered fifty times over, in every hour to be repeated--Lord bless
  • me! what a life must my poor father--But let me remember to whom I am
  • writing.
  • If this ever-active, ever-mischievous monkey of a man, this Lovelace,
  • contrived as you suspect--But here comes my mother again--Ay, stay a
  • little longer, my Mamma, if you please--I can but be suspected! I can
  • but be chidden for making you wait; and chidden I am sure to be, whether
  • I do or not, in the way you, my good Mamma, are Antony'd into.
  • Bless me! how impatient she is! How she thunders at the door! This
  • moment, Madam! How came I to double-lock myself if! What have I done
  • with the key! Duce take the key! Dear Madam! You flutter one so!
  • *****
  • You may believe, my dear, that I took care of my papers before I opened
  • the door. We have had a charming dialogue--She flung from me in a
  • passion--
  • So--What's now to be done? Sent for down in a very peremptory manner,
  • I assure you. What an incoherent letter will you have, when I get it
  • to you! But now I know where to send it, Mr. Hickman shall find me a
  • messenger. Yet, if he be detected, poor soul, he will be Harlowed-off,
  • as well as his meek mistress.
  • THURSDAY, APRIL 13.
  • I have this moment your continuation-letter. And am favoured, at
  • present, with the absence of my Argus-eyes mother.--
  • Dear creature! I can account for all your difficulties. A young lady of
  • your delicacy!--And with such a man!--I must be brief----
  • The man's a fool, my dear, with all his pride, and with all his
  • complaisance, and affected regards to your injunctions. Yet his ready
  • inventions----
  • Sometimes I think you should go to Lady Betty's. I know not what to
  • advise you to do.--I should, if you were not so intent upon reconciling
  • yourself to your relations. Yet they are implacable. You can have no
  • hopes of them. Your uncle's errand to my mother may convince you of
  • that; and if you have an answer to your letter to your sister, that will
  • confirm you, I dare say.
  • You need not to have been afraid of asking me, Whether upon reading your
  • narrative, I thought any extenuation could lie for what you have done! I
  • have, as above, before I had your question, told you my mind as to that.
  • And I repeat, I think, your provocations and inducements considered,
  • that ever young creature was who took such a step.
  • But you took it not--You were driven on one side, and, possibly, tricked
  • on the other.--If any woman on earth shall be circumstanced as you were,
  • and shall hold out so long as you did, against her persecutors on one
  • hand, and her seducer on the other, I will forgive her for all the rest
  • of her conduct, be it what it will.
  • All your acquaintance, you may suppose, talk of nobody but you. Some
  • indeed bring your admirable character for a plea against you: but nobody
  • does, or can, acquit your father and uncles.
  • Every body seems apprized of your brother's and sister's motives. Your
  • flight is, no doubt, the very thing they aimed to drive you to, by the
  • various attacks they made upon you; unhoping (as they must do all the
  • time) the success of their schemes in Solmes's behalf. They knew, that
  • if once you were restored to favour, the suspended love of your father
  • and uncles, like a river breaking down a temporary obstruction, would
  • return with double force; and that then you would expose, and triumph
  • over all their arts.--And now, I hear they enjoy their successful
  • malice.
  • Your father is all rage and violence. He ought, I am sure, to turn his
  • rage inward. All your family accuse you of acting with deep art; and are
  • put upon supposing that you are actually every hour exulting over them,
  • with your man, in the success of it.
  • They all pretend now, that your trial of Wednesday was to be the last.
  • Advantage would indeed, my mother owns, have been taken of your
  • yielding, if you had yielded. But had you not been prevailed upon, they
  • would have given up their scheme, and taken your promise for renouncing
  • Lovelace--Believe them who will!
  • They own, however, that a minister was to be present--Mr. Solmes was
  • to be at hand--And your father was previously to try his authority over
  • you, in order to make you sign the settlements--All of it a romantic
  • contrivance of your wild-headed foolish brother, I make no doubt. Is
  • it likely that he and Bell would have given way to your restoration to
  • favour, supposing it in their power to hinder it, on any other terms
  • than those their hearts had been so long set upon?
  • How they took your flight, when they found it out, may be better
  • supposed than described.
  • Your aunt Hervey, it seems, was the first that went down to the ivy
  • summer-house, in order to acquaint you that their search was over.
  • Betty followed her; and they not finding you there, went on towards the
  • cascade, according to a hint of yours.
  • Returning by the garden-door, they met a servant [they don't say, it was
  • Joseph Leman; but it is very likely that it was he] running, as he said,
  • from pursuing Mr. Lovelace (a great hedge-stake in his hand, and out of
  • breath) to alarm the family.
  • If it were this fellow, and if he were employed in the double agency of
  • cheating them, and cheating you, what shall we think of the wretch you
  • are with? Run away from him, my dear, if so--no matter to whom--or marry
  • him, if you cannot.
  • Your aunt and all your family were accordingly alarmed by this
  • fellow--evidently when too late for pursuit. They got together, and when
  • a posse, ran to the place of interview; and some of them as far as to
  • the tracks of the chariot wheels, without stopping. And having heard the
  • man's tale upon the spot, a general lamentation, a mutual upbraiding,
  • and rage, and grief, were echoed from the different persons, according
  • to their different tempers and conceptions. And they returned like fools
  • as they went.
  • Your brother, at first, ordered horses and armed men to be got ready for
  • a pursuit. Solmes and your uncle Tony were to be of the party. But your
  • mother and your aunt Hervey dissuaded them from it, for fear of adding
  • evil to evil; not doubting but Lovelace had taken measures to support
  • himself in what he had done; and especially when the servant declared,
  • that he saw you run with him as fast as you could set foot to the
  • ground; and that there were several armed men on horseback at a small
  • distance off.
  • *****
  • My mother's absence was owing to her suspicion, that the Knolly's were
  • to assist in our correspondence. She made them a visit upon it. She does
  • every thing at once. And they have promised, that no more letters shall
  • be left there, without her knowledge.
  • But Mr. Hickman has engaged one Filmer, a husbandman in the lane we call
  • Finch-lane, near us, to receive them. Thither you will be pleased to
  • direct yours, under cover, to Mr. John Soberton; and Mr. Hickman himself
  • will call for them there; and there shall leave mine. It goes against me
  • too, to make him so useful to me. He looks already so proud upon it!
  • I shall have him [Who knows?] give himself airs--He had best consider,
  • that the favour he has been long aiming at, may put him into a
  • very dangerous, a very ticklish situation. He that can oblige, may
  • disoblige--Happy for some people not to have it in their power to
  • offend!
  • I will have patience, if I can, for a while, to see if these bustlings
  • in my mother will subside--but upon my word, I will not long bear this
  • usage.
  • Sometimes I am ready to think, that my mother carries it thus on purpose
  • to tire me out, and to make me the sooner marry. If I find it to be so,
  • and that Hickman, in order to make a merit with me, is in the low plot,
  • I will never bear him in my sight.
  • Plotting wretch, as I doubt your man is, I wish to heaven that you
  • were married, that you might brave them all, and not be forced to hide
  • yourself, and be hurried from one inconvenient place to another. I
  • charge you, omit not to lay hold on any handsome opportunity that may
  • offer for that purpose.
  • Here again comes my mother--
  • *****
  • We look mighty glum upon each other, I can tell you. She had not best
  • Harlowe me at this rate--I won't bear it.
  • I have a vast deal to write. I know not what to write first. Yet my mind
  • is full, and ready to run over.
  • I am got into a private corner of the garden, to be out of her
  • way.--Lord help these mothers!--Do they think they can prevent a
  • daughter's writing, or doing any thing she has a mind to do, by
  • suspicion, watchfulness, and scolding?--They had better place a
  • confidence in one by half--A generous mind scorns to abuse a generous
  • confidence.
  • You have a nice, a very nice part to act with this wretch--who yet has,
  • I think, but one plain path before him. I pity you--but you must
  • make the best of the lot you have been forced to draw. Yet I see your
  • difficulties.--But, if he do not offer to abuse your confidence, I would
  • have you seem at least to place some in him.
  • If you think not of marrying soon, I approve of your resolution to fix
  • somewhere out of his reach. And if he know not where to find you, so
  • much the better. Yet I verily believe, they would force you back, could
  • they but come at you, if they were not afraid of him.
  • I think, by all means, you should demand of both your trustees to be put
  • in possession of your own estate. Mean time I have sixty guineas at your
  • service. I beg you will command them. Before they are gone, I'll take
  • care you shall be further supplied. I don't think you'll have a shilling
  • or a shilling's worth of your own from your relations, unless you extort
  • it from them.
  • As they believe you went away by your own consent, they are, it seems,
  • equally surprised and glad that you have left your jewels and money
  • behind you, and have contrived for clothes so ill. Very little
  • likelihood this shews of their answering your requests.
  • Indeed every one who knows not what I now know, must be at a loss to
  • account for your flight, as they will call it. And how, my dear, can
  • one report it with any tolerable advantage to you?--To say, you did not
  • intend it when you met him, who will believe it?--To say, that a person
  • of your known steadiness and punctilio was over-persuaded when you gave
  • him the meeting, how will that sound?--To say, you were tricked out of
  • yourself, and people were given credit to it, how disreputable!--And
  • while unmarried, and yet with him, the man a man of such a character,
  • what would it not lead a censuring world to think?
  • I want to see how you put it in your letter for your clothes.
  • As you may depend upon all the little spiteful things they can offer,
  • instead of sending what you write for, pray accept the sum that I
  • tender. What will seven guineas do?--And I will find a way to send you
  • also any of my clothes and linen for present supply. I beg, my dear
  • Clarissa, that you will not put your Anna Howe upon a footing with
  • Lovelace, in refusing to accept of my offer. If you do not oblige me, I
  • shall be apt to think you rather incline to be obliged to him, than to
  • favour me. And if I find this, I shall not know how to reconcile it with
  • your delicacy in other respects.
  • Pray inform me of every thing that passes between you and him. My cares
  • for you (however needless, from your own prudence) make me wish you to
  • continue to be every minute. If any thing occur that you would tell me
  • of if I were present, fail not to put it down in writing, although
  • from your natural diffidence, it should not appear to you altogether so
  • worthy of your pen, or my knowing. A stander-by may see more of the game
  • than one that plays. Great consequences, like great folks, generally owe
  • their greatness to small causes, and little incidents.
  • Upon the whole, I do not now think it is in your power to dismiss him
  • when you please. I apprized you beforehand, that it would not. I
  • repeat, therefore, that were I you, I would at least seem to place
  • some confidence in him. So long as he is decent, you may. Very visibly
  • observable, to such delicacy as yours, must be that behaviour in him,
  • which will make him unworthy of some confidence.
  • Your relations, according to what old Antony says to my mother, and she
  • to me, (by way of threatening, that you will not gain your supposed ends
  • upon them by your flight,) seem to expect that you will throw yourself
  • into Lady Betty's protection; and that she will offer to mediate
  • for you. And they vow, that they will never hearken to any terms of
  • accommodation that shall come from that quarter; for I dare aver, that
  • your brother and sister will not let them cool--at least, till their
  • uncles have made such dispositions, and perhaps your father too, as they
  • would have them make.
  • As this letter will apprize you of an alteration in the place to which
  • you must direct your next, I send it by a friend of Mr. Hickman, who may
  • be depended upon. He has business in the neighbourhood of Mrs. Sorlings;
  • and he knows her. He will return to Mr. Hickman this night; and bring
  • back any letter you shall have ready to send, or can get ready. It is
  • moon-light. He'll not mind waiting for you. I choose not to send by any
  • of Mr. Hickman's servants--at present, however. Every hour is now,
  • or may be, important; and may make an alteration in your resolutions
  • necessary.
  • I hear at this instant, my mother calling about her, and putting every
  • body into motion. She will soon, I suppose, make me and my employment
  • the subjects of her inquiry.
  • Adieu, my dear. May heaven preserve you, and restore you with honour as
  • unsullied as your mind to
  • Your ever affectionate ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER IX
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE THURSDAY AFTERNOON, APRIL 13.
  • I am infinitely concerned, my ever dear and ever kind friend, that I am
  • the sad occasion of the displeasure between your mother and you.--How
  • many persons have I made unhappy.
  • Had I not to console myself, that my error is not owing to wicked
  • precipitation, I should be the most miserable of all creatures. As it
  • is, I am enough punished in the loss of my character, more valuable
  • to me than my life; and in the cruel doubts and perplexities which,
  • conflicting with my hopes, and each getting the victory by turns, harrow
  • up my soul between them.
  • I think, however, that you should obey your mother, and decline a
  • correspondence with me; at least for the present. Take care how you
  • fall into my error; for that begun with carrying on a prohibited
  • correspondence; a correspondence which I thought it in my power to
  • discontinue at pleasure. My talent is scribbling; and I the readier fell
  • into this freedom, as I found delight in writing; having motives too,
  • which I thought laudable; and, at one time, the permission of all my
  • friends; to write to him.*
  • * See Vol. I. Letter III.
  • Yet, as to this correspondence, What hurt could arise from it, if your
  • mother could be prevailed upon to permit it to be continued?--So much
  • prudence and discretion as you have; and you, in writing to me, lying
  • under no temptation of following so bad an example as I have set--my
  • letters too occasionally filled with self-accusation.
  • I thank you, my dear, most cordially I thank you, for your kind offers.
  • You may be assured, that I will sooner be beholden to you, than to any
  • body living. To Mr. Lovelace the last. Do not therefore think, that
  • by declining your favours, I have an intention to lay myself under
  • obligations to him.
  • I am willing to hope (notwithstanding what you write) that my friends
  • will send me my little money, together with my clothes. They are too
  • considerate, some of them at least, to permit that I should be put to
  • such low difficulties. Perhaps, they will not be in haste to oblige me.
  • But, if not, I cannot yet want. I believe you think, I must not dispute
  • with Mr. Lovelace the expenses of the road and lodgings, till I can get
  • a fixed abode. But I hope soon to put an end even to those small sort of
  • obligations.
  • Small hopes indeed of a reconciliation from your account of my uncle's
  • visit to your mother, in order to set her against an almost friendless
  • creature whom once he loved! But is it not my duty to try for it?
  • Ought I to widen my error by obstinacy and resentment, because of their
  • resentment; which must appear reasonable to them, as they suppose my
  • flight premeditated; and as they are made to believe, that I am capable
  • of triumphing in it, and over them, with the man they hate? When I have
  • done all in my power to restore myself to their favour, I shall have the
  • less to reproach myself with.
  • These considerations make me waver about following your advice, in
  • relation to marriage; and the rather, as he is so full of complaisance
  • with regard to my former conditions, which he calls my injunctions.
  • Nor can I now, that my friends, as you inform me, have so strenuously
  • declared against accepting of the mediation of the ladies of Mr.
  • Lovelace's family, put myself into their protection, unless I am
  • resolved to give up all hopes of a reconciliation with my own.
  • Yet if any happy introduction could be thought of to effect this
  • desirable purpose, how shall terms be proposed to my father, while
  • this man is with me, or near me? On the other hand, should they in his
  • absence get me back by force, (and this, you are of opinion, they would
  • attempt to do, but in fear of him,) how will their severest acts of
  • compulsion be justified by my flight from them!--Mean while, to what
  • censures, as you remind me, do I expose myself, while he and I are
  • together and unmarried!--Yet [can I with patience ask the question?] Is
  • it in my power?--O my dear Miss Howe! And am I so reduced, as that, to
  • save the poor remains of my reputation in the world's eye, I must watch
  • the gracious motion from this man's lips?
  • Were my cousin Morden in England, all might still perhaps be determined
  • happily.
  • If no other mediation than this can be procured to set on foot the
  • wished-for reconciliation, and if my situation with Mr. Lovelace alter
  • not in the interim, I must endeavour to keep myself in a state of
  • independence till he arrive, that I may be at liberty to govern myself
  • by his advice and direction.
  • I will acquaint you, as you desire, with all that passes between
  • Mr. Lovelace and me. Hitherto I have not discovered any thing in his
  • behaviour that is very exceptionable. Yet I cannot say, that I think
  • the respect he shews me, an easy, unrestrained, and natural respect,
  • although I can hardly tell where the fault is.
  • But he has doubtless an arrogant and encroaching spirit. Nor is he
  • so polite as his education, and other advantages, might have made one
  • expect him to be. He seems, in short, to be one, who has always had too
  • much of his own will to study to accommodate himself to that of others.
  • As to the placing of some confidence in him, I shall be as ready to take
  • your advice in this particular, as in all others, and as he will be
  • to deserve it. But tricked away as I was by him, not only against my
  • judgment, but my inclination, can he, or any body, expect, that I should
  • immediately treat him with complaisance, as if I acknowledged obligation
  • to him for carrying me away?--If I did, must he not either think me a
  • vile dissembler before he gained that point, or afterwards?
  • Indeed, indeed, my dear, I could tear my hair, on reconsidering what you
  • write (as to the probability that the dreaded Wednesday was more dreaded
  • than it needed to be) to think, that I should be thus tricked by this
  • man; and that, in all likelihood, through his vile agent Joseph Leman.
  • So premeditated and elaborate a wickedness as it must be!--Must I
  • not, with such a man, be wanting to myself, if I were not jealous and
  • vigilant?--Yet what a life to live for a spirit so open, and naturally
  • so unsuspicious, as mine?
  • I am obliged to Mr. Hickman for the assistance he is so kindly ready to
  • give to our correspondence. He is so little likely to make to himself an
  • additional merit with the daughter upon it, that I shall be very sorry,
  • if he risk any thing with the mother by it.
  • I am now in a state of obligation: so must rest satisfied with whatever
  • I cannot help. Whom have I the power, once so precious to me, of
  • obliging?--What I mean, my dear, is, that I ought, perhaps, to
  • expect, that my influences over you are weakened by my indiscretion.
  • Nevertheless, I will not, if I can help it, desert myself, nor give up
  • the privilege you used to allow me, of telling you what I think of such
  • parts of your conduct as I may not approve.
  • You must permit me therefore, severe as your mother is against an
  • undesigning offender, to say that I think your liveliness to her
  • inexcusable--to pass over, for this time, what nevertheless concerns me
  • not a little, the free treatment you almost indiscriminately give to my
  • relations.
  • If you will not, for your duty's sake, forbear your tauntings and
  • impatience, let me beseech you, that you will for mine.--Since
  • otherwise, your mother may apprehend that my example, like a leaven, is
  • working itself into the mind of her beloved daughter. And may not such
  • an apprehension give her an irreconcilable displeasure against me?
  • I enclose the copy of my letter to my sister, which you are desirous to
  • see. You will observe, that although I have not demanded my estate in
  • form, and of my trustees, yet that I have hinted at leave to retire to
  • it. How joyfully would I keep my word, if they would accept of the offer
  • I renew!--It was not proper, I believe you will think, on many accounts,
  • to own that I was carried off against my inclination. I am, my dearest
  • friend,
  • Your ever obliged and affectionate, CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER X
  • TO MISS ARABELLA HARLOWE [ENCLOSED TO MISS HOWE IN THE PRECEDING.] ST.
  • ALBAN'S, APR. 11.
  • MY DEAR SISTER,
  • I have, I confess, been guilty of an action which carries with it a rash
  • and undutiful appearance. And I should have thought it an inexcusable
  • one, had I been used with less severity than I have been of late; and
  • had I not had too great reason to apprehend, that I was to be made a
  • sacrifice to a man I could not bear to think of. But what is done, is
  • done--perhaps I could wish it had not; and that I had trusted to the
  • relenting of my dear and honourable parents.--Yet this from no other
  • motives but those of duty to them.--To whom I am ready to return (if
  • I may not be permitted to retire to The Grove) on conditions which I
  • before offered to comply with.
  • Nor shall I be in any sort of dependence upon the person by whose means
  • I have taken this truly-reluctant step, inconsistent with any reasonable
  • engagement I shall enter into, if I am not further precipitated. Let me
  • not have it to say, now at this important crisis! that I have a sister,
  • but not a friend in that sister. My reputation, dearer to me than life,
  • (whatever you may imagine from the step I have taken,) is suffering. A
  • little lenity will, even yet, in a great measure, restore it, and make
  • that pass for a temporary misunderstanding only, which otherwise will be
  • a stain as durable as life, upon a creature who has already been treated
  • with great unkindness, to use no harsher a word.
  • For your own sake therefore, for my brother's sake, by whom (I must say)
  • I have been thus precipitated, and for all the family's sake, aggravate
  • not my fault, if, on recollecting every thing, you think it one; nor by
  • widening the unhappy difference, expose a sister for ever--prays
  • Your affectionate CL. HARLOWE.
  • I shall take it for a very great favour to have my clothes directly sent
  • me, together with fifty guineas, which you will find in my escritoire
  • (of which I enclose the key); as also of the divinity and miscellany
  • classes of my little library; and, if it be thought fit, my
  • jewels--directed for me, to be left till called for, at Mr. Osgood's,
  • near Soho-square.
  • LETTER XI
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ.
  • Mr. Lovelace, in continuation of his last letter, (No. VII.)
  • gives an account to his friend (pretty much to the same
  • effect with the lady's) of all that passed between them at
  • the inns, in the journey, and till their fixing at Mrs.
  • Sorling's; to avoid repetition, those passages in his
  • narrative are extracted, which will serve to embellish
  • her's; to open his views; or to display the humourous talent
  • he was noted for.
  • At their alighting at the inn at St. Alban's on Monday
  • night, thus he writes:
  • The people who came about us, as we alighted, seemed by their jaw-fallen
  • faces, and goggling eyes, to wonder at beholding a charming young lady,
  • majesty in her air and aspect, so composedly dressed, yet with features
  • so discomposed, come off a journey which made the cattle smoke, and the
  • servants sweat. I read their curiosity in their faces, and my beloved's
  • uneasiness in her's. She cast a conscious glance, as she alighted, upon
  • her habit, which was no habit; and repulsively, as I may say, quitting
  • my assisting hand, hurried into the house.*****
  • Ovid was not a greater master of metamorphoses than thy friend. To the
  • mistress of the house I instantly changed her into a sister, brought off
  • by surprise from a near relation's, (where she had wintered,) to prevent
  • her marrying a confounded rake, [I love always to go as near the truth
  • as I can,] whom her father and mother, her elder sister, and all her
  • loving uncles, aunts, and cousins abhorred. This accounted for my
  • charmer's expected sullens; for her displeasure when she was to join me
  • again, were it to hold; for her unsuitable dress upon the road; and,
  • at the same time, gave her a proper and seasonable assurance of my
  • honourable views.
  • Upon the debate between the lady and him, and particularly upon that
  • part where she upbraids him with putting a young creature upon making a
  • sacrifice of her duty and conscience, he write:
  • All these, and still more mortifying things, she said.
  • I heard her in silence. But when it came to my turn, I pleaded, I
  • argued, I answered her, as well as I could.--And when humility would
  • not do, I raised my voice, and suffered my eyes to sparkle with anger;
  • hoping to take advantage of that sweet cowardice which is so amiable in
  • the sex, and to which my victory over this proud beauty is principally
  • owing.
  • She was not intimidated, however, and was going to rise upon me in her
  • temper; and would have broken in upon my defence. But when a man talks
  • to a woman upon such subjects, let her be ever so much in alt, 'tis
  • strange, if he cannot throw out a tub to the whale;--that is to say, if
  • he cannot divert her from resenting one bold thing, by uttering two or
  • three full as bold; but for which more favourable interpretations will
  • lie.
  • To that part, where she tells him of the difficulty she made
  • to correspond with him at first, thus he writes:
  • Very true, my precious!--And innumerable have been the difficulties
  • thou hast made me struggle with. But one day thou mayest wish, that thou
  • hadst spared this boast; as well as those other pretty haughtinesses,
  • 'That thou didst not reject Solmes for my sake: that my glory, if I
  • valued myself upon carrying thee off, was thy shame: that I have more
  • merit with myself than with thee, or any body else: [what a coxcomb she
  • makes me, Jack!] that thou wishest thyself in thy father's house again,
  • whatever were to be the consequence.'--If I forgive thee, charmer,
  • for these hints, for these reflections, for these wishes, for these
  • contempts, I am not the Lovelace I have been reputed to be; and that thy
  • treatment of me shews that thou thinkest I am.
  • In short, her whole air throughout this debate expressed a majestic kind
  • of indignation, which implied a believed superiority of talents over the
  • person to whom she spoke.
  • Thou hast heard me often expatiate upon the pitiful figure a man must
  • make, whose wife has, or believes she has, more sense than himself. A
  • thousand reasons could I give why I ought not to think of marrying Miss
  • Clarissa Harlowe; at least till I can be sure, that she loves me with
  • the preference I must expect from a wife.
  • I begin to stagger in my resolutions. Ever averse as I was to the
  • hymeneal shackles, how easily will prejudices recur! Heaven give me the
  • heart to be honest to my Clarissa!--There's a prayer, Jack! If I should
  • not be heard, what a sad thing would that be, for the most admirable of
  • women!--Yet, as I do no often trouble Heaven with my prayers, who knows
  • but this may be granted?
  • But there lie before me such charming difficulties, such scenery for
  • intrigue, for stratagem, for enterprize. What a horrible thing, that my
  • talents point all that way!--When I know what is honourable and just;
  • and would almost wish to be honest?--Almost, I say; for such a varlet am
  • I, that I cannot altogether wish it, for the soul of me!--Such a triumph
  • over the whole sex, if I can subdue this lady! My maiden vow, as I may
  • call it!--For did not the sex begin with me? And does this lady spare
  • me? Thinkest thou, Jack, that I should have spared my Rosebud, had I
  • been set at defiance thus?--Her grandmother besought me, at first, to
  • spare her Rosebud: and when a girl is put, or puts herself into a
  • man's power, what can he wish for further? while I always considered
  • opposition and resistance as a challenge to do my worst.*
  • * See Vol. I. Letter XXXIV.
  • Why, why, will the dear creature take such pains to appear all ice to
  • me?--Why will she, by her pride, awaken mine?--Hast thou not seen, in
  • the above, how contemptibly she treats me?--What have I not suffered
  • for her, and even from her!--Ought I to bear being told, that she will
  • despise me, if I value myself above that odious Solmes?
  • Then she cuts me short in all my ardours. To vow fidelity, is by a
  • cursed turn upon me, to shew, that there is reason, in my own opinion,
  • for doubt of it. The very same reflection upon me once before.*
  • * See Vol. II. Letter XIII.
  • In my power, or out of my power, all one to this lady.--So, Belford, my
  • poor vows are crammed down my throat, before they can well rise to my
  • lips. And what can a lover say to his mistress, if she will neither let
  • him lie nor swear?
  • One little piece of artifice I had recourse to: When she pushed so hard
  • for me to leave her, I made a request to her, upon a condition she could
  • not refuse; and pretended as much gratitude upon her granting it, as if
  • it were a favour of the last consequence.
  • And what was this? but to promise what she had before promised, 'Never
  • to marry any other man, while I am living, and single, unless I should
  • give her cause for high disgust against me.' This, you know, was
  • promising nothing, because she could be offended at any time, and was to
  • be the sole judge of the offence. But it shewed her how reasonable and
  • just my expectations were; and that I was no encroacher.
  • She consented; and asked what security I expected? Her word only.
  • She gave me her word: but I besought her excuse for sealing it: and in
  • the same moment (since to have waited for consent would have been asking
  • for a denial) saluted her. And, believe me, or not, but, as I hope to
  • live, it was the first time I had the courage to touch her charming lips
  • with mine. And this I tell thee, Belford, that that single pressure (as
  • modestly put too, as if I were as much a virgin as herself, that she
  • might not be afraid of me another time) delighted me more than ever I
  • was delighted by the ultimatum with any other woman.--So precious do
  • awe, reverence, and apprehended prohibition, make a favour!
  • And now, Belford, I am only afraid that I shall be too cunning; for she
  • does not at present talk enough for me. I hardly know what to make of
  • the dear creature yet.
  • I topt the brother's part on Monday night before the landlady at St.
  • Alban's; asking my sister's pardon for carrying her off so unprepared
  • for a journey; prated of the joy my father and mother, and all
  • our friends, would have in receiving her; and this with so many
  • circumstances, that I perceived, by a look she gave me, that went
  • through my very veins, that I had gone too far. I apologized for it
  • indeed when alone; but could not penetrate for the soul of me, whether I
  • made the matter better or worse by it.
  • But I am of too frank a nature: my success, and the joy I have because
  • of the jewel I am half in possession of, has not only unlocked my bosom,
  • but left the door quite open.
  • This is a confounded sly sex. Would she but speak out, as I do--but I
  • must learn reserves of her.
  • She must needs be unprovided of money: but has too much pride to accept
  • of any from me. I would have had her go to town [to town, if possible,
  • must I get her to consent to go] in order to provide herself with
  • the richest of silks which that can afford. But neither is this to be
  • assented to. And yet, as my intelligencer acquaints me, her implacable
  • relations are resolved to distress her all they can.
  • These wretches have been most gloriously raving, ever since her flight;
  • and still, thank Heaven, continue to rave; and will, I hope, for a
  • twelvemonth to come. Now, at last, it is my day!
  • Bitterly do they regret, that they permitted her poultry-visits, and
  • garden-walks, which gave her the opportunity to effect an escape which
  • they suppose preconcerted. For, as to her dining in the ivy-bower, they
  • had a cunning design to answer upon her in that permission, as Betty
  • told Joseph her lover.*
  • * Vol. II. Letter XLVII. paragr. 37, 38.
  • They lost, they say, and excellent pretence for confining her more
  • closely on my threatening to rescue her, if they offered to carry her
  • against her will to old Antony's moated house.* For this, as I told thee
  • at the Hart, and as I once hinted to the dear creature herself,** they
  • had it in deliberation to do; apprehending, that I might attempt to
  • carry her off, either with or without her consent, on some one of those
  • connived-at excursions.
  • * Ibid. Let. XXXVI. and Let. XXXIX. par. I.
  • ** Ibid. Let. XXXVI. par. 4. See also Let. XV. par. 3.
  • But here my honest Joseph, who gave me the information, was of admirable
  • service to me. I had taught him to make the Harlowes believe, that I was
  • as communicative to my servants, as their stupid James was to Joseph:*
  • Joseph, as they supposed, by tampering with Will,** got all my secrets,
  • and was acquainted with all my motions: and having also undertaken to
  • watch all those of his young lady,***** the wise family were secure; and
  • so was my beloved; and so was I.
  • * Ibid. Letter XLVII. par. 6, and 39.
  • ** This will be farther explained in Letter XXI. of this volume. *****
  • See Vol. I. Letters XXXI. and XXXIV.
  • I once had it in my head (and I hinted it to thee* in a former) in case
  • such a step should be necessary, to attempt to carry her off by surprise
  • from the wood-house; as it is remote from the dwelling-house. This,
  • had I attempted, I should have certainly effected, by the help of the
  • confraternity: and it would have been an action worthy of us all.--But
  • Joseph's conscience, as he called it, stood in my way; for he thought it
  • must have been known to be done by his connivance. I could, I dare say,
  • have overcome this scruple, as easily as I did many of the others, had
  • I not depended at one time upon her meeting me at midnight or late hour
  • [and, if she had, she never would have gone back]; at other times,
  • upon the cunning family's doing my work for me, equally against their
  • knowledge or their wills.
  • * See Vol. I. Letter XXXV.
  • For well I knew, that James and Arabella were determined never to leave
  • off their foolish trials and provocations, till, by tiring her out, they
  • had either made her Solmes's wife, or guilty of some such rashness as
  • should throw her for ever out of the favour of both her uncles; though
  • they had too much malice in their heads to intend service to me by their
  • persecutions of her.
  • LETTER XII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • I obliged the dear creature highly, I could perceive, by bringing Mrs.
  • Greme to attend her, and to suffer that good woman's recommendation of
  • lodgings to take place, on her refusal to go to The Lawn.
  • She must believe all my views to be honourable, when I had provided for
  • her no particular lodgings, leaving it to her choice, whether she would
  • go to M. Hall, to The Lawn, to London, or to either of the dowagers of
  • my family.
  • She was visibly pleased with my motion of putting Mrs. Greme into the
  • chaise with her, and riding on horseback myself.
  • Some people would have been apprehensive of what might pass between
  • her and Mrs. Greme. But as all my relations either know or believe the
  • justice of my intentions by her, I was in no pain on that account;
  • and the less, as I have always been above hypocrisy, or wishing to be
  • thought better than I am. And indeed, what occasion has a man to be an
  • hypocrite, who has hitherto found his views upon the sex better answered
  • for his being known to be a rake? Why, even my beloved here denied not
  • to correspond with me, though her friends had taught her to think me a
  • libertine--Who then would be trying a new and worse character?
  • And then Mrs. Greme is a pious matron, and would not have been biased
  • against truth on any consideration. She used formerly, while there were
  • any hopes of my reformation, to pray for me. She hardly continues the
  • good custom, I doubt; for her worthy lord makes no scruple occasionally
  • to rave against me to man, woman, and child, as they come in his way.
  • He is very undutiful, as thou knowest. Surely, I may say so; since all
  • duties are reciprocal. But for Mrs. Greme, poor woman! when my lord
  • has the gout, and is at The Lawn, and the chaplain not to be found, she
  • prays by him, or reads a chapter to him in the Bible, or some other good
  • book.
  • Was it not therefore right to introduce such a good sort of woman to
  • the dear creature; and to leave them, without reserve, to their own
  • talk!--And very busy in talk I saw they were, as they rode; and felt it
  • too; for most charmingly glowed my cheeks.
  • I hope I shall be honest, I once more say: but as we frail mortals are
  • not our own masters at all times, I must endeavour to keep the dear
  • creature unapprehensive, until I can get her to our acquaintance's in
  • London, or to some other safe place there. Should I, in the interim,
  • give her the least room for suspicion; or offer to restrain her; she
  • can make her appeals to strangers, and call the country in upon me; and,
  • perhaps, throw herself upon her relations on their own terms. And were I
  • now to lose her, how unworthy should I be to be the prince and leader
  • of such a confraternity as ours!--How unable to look up among men! or to
  • shew my face among women!
  • As things at present stand, she dare not own that she went off against
  • her own consent; and I have taken care to make all the implacables
  • believe, that she escaped with it.
  • She has received an answer from Miss Howe, to the letter written to her
  • from St. Alban's.*
  • * See Vol. II. Letter XLVIII.
  • Whatever are the contents, I know not; but she was drowned in tears on
  • the perusal of it. And I am the sufferer.
  • Miss Howe is a charming creature too; but confoundedly smart and
  • spiritful. I am a good deal afraid of her. Her mother can hardly keep
  • her in. I must continue to play off old Antony, by my honest Joseph,
  • upon that mother, in order to manage that daughter, and oblige my
  • beloved to an absolute dependence upon myself.*
  • * See Vol. I. Letter XXXI.
  • Mrs. Howe is impatient of contradiction. So is Miss. A young lady who is
  • sensible that she has all the materials requisites herself, to be under
  • maternal controul;--fine ground for a man of intrigue to build upon!--A
  • mother over-notable; a daughter over-sensible; and their Hickman, who
  • is--over-neither: but merely a passive--
  • Only that I have an object still more desirable--!
  • Yet how unhappy, that these two young ladies lived so near each other,
  • and are so well acquainted! Else how charmingly might I have managed
  • them both!
  • But one man cannot have every woman worth having--Pity though--when the
  • man is such a VERY clever fellow!
  • LETTER XIII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • Never was there such a pair of scribbling lovers as we;--yet perhaps
  • whom it so much concerns to keep from each other what each writes. She
  • won't have any thing else to do. I would, if she'd let me. I am not
  • reformed enough for a husband.--Patience is a virtue, Lord M. says. Slow
  • and sure, is another of his sentences. If I had not a great deal of that
  • virtue, I should not have waited the Harlowes own time of ripening into
  • execution my plots upon themselves and upon their goddess daughter.
  • My beloved has been writing to her saucy friend, I believe, all that has
  • befallen her, and what has passed between us hitherto. She will possibly
  • have fine subjects for her pen, if she be as minute as I am.
  • I would not be so barbarous as to permit old Antony to set Mrs. Howe
  • against her, did I not dread the consequences of the correspondence
  • between the two young ladies. So lively the one, so vigilant, so prudent
  • both, who would not wish to outwit such girls, and to be able to twirl
  • them round his finger?
  • My charmer has written to her sister for her clothes, for some gold, and
  • for some of her books. What books can tell her more than she knows? But
  • I can. So she had better study me.
  • She may write. She must be obliged to me at last, with all her pride.
  • Miss Howe indeed will be ready enough to supply her; but I question,
  • whether she can do it without her mother, who is as covetous as the
  • grave. And my agent's agent, old Antony, has already given the mother a
  • hint which will make her jealous of pecuniaries.
  • Besides, if Miss Howe has money by her, I can put her mother upon
  • borrowing it of her: nor blame me, Jack, for contrivances that have
  • their foundation in generosity. Thou knowest my spirit; and that I
  • should be proud to lay an obligation upon my charmer to the amount of
  • half, nay, to the whole of my estate. Lord M. has more for me than I
  • can ever wish for. My predominant passion is girl, not gold; nor value I
  • this, but as it helps me to that, and gives me independence.
  • I was forced to put it into the sweet novice's head, as well for my sake
  • as for hers (lest we should be traceable by her direction) whither to
  • direct the sending of her clothes, if they incline to do her that small
  • piece of justice.
  • If they do I shall begin to dread a reconciliation; and must be forced
  • to muse for a contrivance or two to prevent it, and to avoid mischief.
  • For that (as I have told honest Joseph Leman) is a great point with me.
  • Thou wilt think me a sad fellow, I doubt. But are not all rakes sad
  • fellows?--And art not thou, to thy little power, as bad as any? If thou
  • dost all that's in thy head and in thy heart to do, thou art worse than
  • I; for I do not, I assure you.
  • I proposed, and she consented, that her clothes, or whatever else her
  • relations should think fit to send her, should be directed to thy cousin
  • Osgood's. Let a special messenger, at my charge, bring me any letter, or
  • portable parcel, that shall come. If not portable, give me notice of it.
  • But thou'lt have no trouble of this sort from her relations, I dare be
  • sworn. And in this assurance, I will leave them, I think, to act upon
  • their own heads. A man would have no more to answer for than needs must.
  • But one thing, while I think of it; which is of great importance to be
  • attended to--You must hereafter write to me in character, as I shall do
  • to you. It would be a confounded thing to be blown up by a train of
  • my own laying. And who knows what opportunities a man in love may have
  • against himself? In changing a coat or waistcoat, something might be
  • forgotten. I once suffered that way. Then for the sex's curiosity, it
  • is but remembering, in order to guard against it, that the name of their
  • common mother was Eve.
  • Another thing remember; I have changed my name: changed it without an
  • act of parliament. 'Robert Huntingford' it is now. Continue Esquire.
  • It is a respectable addition, although every sorry fellow assumes it,
  • almost to the banishment of the usual traveling one of Captain. 'To be
  • left till called for, at the post-house at Hertford.'
  • Upon naming thee, she asked thy character. I gave thee a better than
  • thou deservest, in order to do credit to myself. Yet I told her, that
  • thou wert an awkward fellow; and this to do credit to thee, that she may
  • not, if ever she be to see thee, expect a cleverer man than she'll find.
  • Yet thy apparent awkwardness befriends thee not a little: for wert thou
  • a sightly mortal, people would discover nothing extraordinary in
  • thee, when they conversed with thee: whereas, seeing a bear, they are
  • surprised to find in thee any thing that is like a man. Felicitate
  • thyself then upon thy defects; which are evidently thy principal
  • perfections; and which occasion thee a distinction which otherwise thou
  • wouldst never have.
  • The lodgings we are in at present are not convenient. I was so delicate
  • as to find fault with them, as communicating with each other, because
  • I knew she would; and told her, that were I sure she was safe from
  • pursuit, I would leave her in them, (since such was her earnest desire
  • and expectation,) and go to London.
  • She must be an infidel against all reason and appearances, if I do not
  • banish even the shadow of mistrust from her heart.
  • Here are two young likely girls, daughters of the widow Sorlings; that's
  • the name of our landlady.
  • I have only, at present, admired them in their dairy-works. How greedily
  • do the sex swallow praise!--Did I not once, in the streets of London,
  • see a well-dressed, handsome girl laugh, bridle, and visibly enjoy the
  • praises of a sooty dog, a chimney-sweeper; who, with his empty sack
  • across his shoulder, after giving her the way, stopt, and held up his
  • brush and shovel in admiration of her?--Egad, girl, thought I, I
  • despise thee as Lovelace: but were I the chimney-sweeper, and could only
  • contrive to get into thy presence, my life to thy virtue, I would have
  • thee.
  • So pleased was I with the young Sorlings, for the elegance of her works,
  • that I kissed her, and she made me a courtesy for my condescension; and
  • blushed, and seemed sensible all over: encouraging, yet innocently, she
  • adjusted her handkerchief, and looked towards the door, as much as to
  • say, she would not tell, were I to kiss her again.
  • Her eldest sister popt upon her. The conscious girl blushed again, and
  • looked so confounded, that I made an excuse for her, which gratified
  • both. Mrs. Betty, said I, I have been so much pleased with the neatness
  • of your dairy-works, that I could not help saluting your sister: you
  • have your share of merit in them, I am sure--Give me leave----
  • Good souls!--I like them both--she courtesied too!--How I love a
  • grateful temper! O that my Clarissa were but half so acknowledging!
  • I think I must get one of them to attend my charmer when she
  • removes--the mother seems to be a notable woman. She had not best,
  • however, be too notable: since, were she by suspicion to give me a face
  • of difficulty to the matter, it would prepare me for a trial with one or
  • both the daughters.
  • Allow me a little rhodamantade, Jack--but really and truly my heart is
  • fixed. I can think of no creature breathing of the sex, but my Gloriana.
  • LETTER XIV
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • This is Wednesday; the day that I was to have lost my charmer for ever
  • to the hideous Solmes! With what high satisfaction and heart's-ease can
  • I now sit down, and triumph over my men in straw at Harlowe-place! Yet
  • 'tis perhaps best for them, that she got off as she did. Who knows what
  • consequences might have followed upon my attending her in; or (if she
  • had not met me) upon my projected visit, followed by my myrmidons?
  • But had I even gone in with her unaccompanied, I think I had but little
  • reason for apprehension: for well thou knowest, that the tame spirits
  • which value themselves upon reputation, and are held within the skirts
  • of the law by political considerations only, may be compared to an
  • infectious spider; which will run into his hole the moment one of his
  • threads is touched by a finger that can crush him, leaving all his toils
  • defenceless, and to be brushed down at the will of the potent invader.
  • While a silly fly, that has neither courage nor strength to resist,
  • no sooner gives notice, by its buz and its struggles, of its being
  • entangled, but out steps the self-circumscribed tyrant, winds round and
  • round the poor insect, till he covers it with his bowel-spun toils; and
  • when so fully secured, that it can neither move leg nor wing, suspends
  • it, as if for a spectacle to be exulted over: then stalking to the door
  • of his cell, turns about, glotes over it at a distance; and, sometimes
  • advancing, sometimes retiring, preys at leisure upon its vitals.
  • But now I think of it, will not this comparison do as well for
  • the entangled girls, as for the tame spirits?--Better o' my
  • conscience!--'Tis but comparing the spider to us brave fellows, and it
  • quadrates.
  • Whatever our hearts are in, our heads will follow. Begin with spiders,
  • with flies, with what we will, girl is the centre of gravity, and we all
  • naturally tend to it.
  • Nevertheless, to recur; I cannot but observe, that these tame spirits
  • stand a poor chance in a fairly offensive war with such of us mad
  • fellows as are above all law, and scorn to sculk behind the hypocritical
  • screen of reputation.
  • Thou knowest that I never scruple to throw myself amongst numbers of
  • adversaries; the more the safer: one or two, no fear, will take the part
  • of a single adventurer, if not intentionally, in fact; holding him in,
  • while others hold in the principal antagonist, to the augmentation of
  • their mutual prowess, till both are prevailed upon to compromise, or
  • one to be absent: so that, upon the whole, the law-breakers have the
  • advantage of the law-keepers, all the world over; at least for a time,
  • and till they have run to the end of their race. Add to this, in the
  • question between me and the Harlowes, that the whole family of them must
  • know that they have injured me--must therefore be afraid of me. Did they
  • not, at their own church, cluster together like bees, when they saw me
  • enter it? Nor knew they which should venture out first, when the service
  • was over.
  • James, indeed, was not there. If he had, he would perhaps have
  • endeavoured to look valiant. But there is a sort of valour in the face,
  • which shews fear in the heart: just such a face would James Harlowe's
  • have been, had I made them a visit.
  • When I have had such a face and such a heart as I have described to deal
  • with, I have been all calm and serene, and left it to the friends of the
  • blusterer (as I have done to the Harlowes) to do my work for me.
  • I am about mustering up in my memory, all that I have ever done, that
  • has been thought praise-worthy, or but barely tolerable. I am afraid
  • thou canst not help me to many remembrances of this sort; because I
  • never was so bad as since I have known thee.
  • Have I not had it in my heart to do some good that thou canst not remind
  • me of? Study for me, Jack. I have recollected some instances which I
  • think will tell in--but see if thou canst not help me to some which I
  • may have forgot.
  • This I may venture to say, that the principal blot in my escutcheon is
  • owing to these girls, these confounded girls. But for them, I could go
  • to church with a good conscience: but when I do, there they are. Every
  • where does Satan spread his snares for me! But, how I think of it, what
  • if our governor should appoint churches for the women only, and others
  • for the men?--Full as proper, I think, for the promoting of true
  • piety in both, [much better than the synagogue-lattices,] as separate
  • boarding-schools for their education.
  • There are already male and female dedications of churches.
  • St. Swithin's, St. Stephen's, St. Thomas's, St. George's, and so forth,
  • might be appropriated to the men; and Santa Catharina's, Santa Anna's,
  • Santa Maria's, Santa Margaretta's, for the women.
  • Yet were it so, and life to be the forfeiture of being found at the
  • female churches, I believe that I, like a second Clodius, should change
  • my dress, to come at my Portia or Pompeia, though one the daughter of a
  • Cato, the other the wife of a Caesar.
  • But how I excurse!--Yet thou usedst to say, thou likedst my excursions.
  • If thou dost, thou'lt have enow of them: for I never had a subject I
  • so much adored; and with which I shall probably be compelled to have so
  • much patience before I strike the blow; if the blow I do strike.
  • But let me call myself back to my recordation-subject--Thou needest
  • not remind me of my Rosebud. I have her in my head; and moreover have
  • contrived to give my fair-one an hint of that affair, by the agency of
  • honest Joseph Leman;* although I have not reaped the hoped-for credit of
  • her acknowledgement.
  • * See Vol. II. Letter XXVII.
  • That's the devil; and it was always my hard fate--every thing I do that
  • is good, is but as I ought!--Every thing of a contrary nature is brought
  • into the most glaring light against me--Is this fair? Ought not a
  • balance to be struck; and the credit carried to my account?--Yet I must
  • own too, that I half grudge Johnny this blooming maiden? for, in truth,
  • I think a fine woman too rich a jewel to hang about a poor man's neck.
  • Surely, Jack, if I am guilty of a fault in my universal adorations of
  • the sex, the women in general ought to love me the better for it.
  • And so they do; I thank them heartily; except here and there a covetous
  • little rogue comes cross me, who, under the pretence of loving virtue
  • for its own sake, wants to have me all to herself.
  • I have rambled enough.
  • Adieu, for the present.
  • LETTER XV
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE THURSDAY NIGHT, APRIL 13.
  • I always loved writing, and my unhappy situation gives me now enough of
  • it; and you, I fear, too much. I have had another very warm debate with
  • Mr. Lovelace. It brought on the subject which you advised me not to
  • decline, when it was handsomely offered. And I want to have either your
  • acquittal or blame for having suffered it to go off without effect.
  • The impatient wretch sent up to me several times, while I was writing my
  • last to you, to desire my company: yet his business nothing particular;
  • only to hear him talk. The man seems pleased with his own volubility;
  • and, whenever he has collected together abundance of smooth things, he
  • wants me to find an ear for them! Yet he need not; for I don't often
  • gratify him either with giving him the praise for his verboseness, or
  • shewing the pleasure in it that he would be fond of.
  • When I had finished the letter, and given it to Mr. Hickman's friend, I
  • was going up again, and had got up half a dozen stairs; when he besought
  • be to stop, and hear what he had to say.
  • Nothing, as I said, to any new purpose had he to offer; but
  • complainings; and those in a manner, and with an air, as I thought, that
  • bordered upon insolence. He could not live, he told me, unless he had
  • more of my company, and of my indulgence too, that I had yet given him.
  • Hereupon I stept down, and into the parlour, not a little out of humour
  • with him; and the more, as he has very quietly taken up his quarters
  • here, without talking of removing, as he had promised.
  • We began instantly our angry conference. He provoked me; and I repeated
  • several of the plainest things I had said in our former conversations;
  • and particularly told him, that I was every hour more and more
  • dissatisfied with myself, and with him: that he was not a man, who, in
  • my opinion, improved upon acquaintance: and that I should not be easy
  • till he had left me to myself.
  • He might be surprised at my warmth, perhaps: but really the man looked
  • so like a simpleton, hesitating, and having nothing to say for himself,
  • or that should excuse the peremptoriness of his demand upon me, (when he
  • knew I had been writing a letter which a gentleman waited for,) that I
  • flung from him, declaring, that I would be mistress of my own time, and
  • of my own actions, and not to be called to account for either.
  • He was very uneasy till he could again be admitted into my company, and
  • when I was obliged to see him, which was sooner than I liked, never did
  • the man put on a more humble and respectful demeanor.
  • He told me, that he had, upon this occasion, been entering into
  • himself, and had found a great deal of reason to blame himself for an
  • impertinency and inconsideration which, although he meant nothing by
  • it, must be very disagreeable to one of my delicacy. That having always
  • aimed at a manly sincerity and openness of heart, he had not till now
  • discovered, that both were very consistent with that true politeness,
  • which he feared he had too much disregarded, while he sought to avoid
  • the contrary extreme; knowing, that in me he had to deal with a lady,
  • who despised an hypocrite, and who was above all flattery. But from this
  • time forth, I should find such an alteration in his whole behaviour, as
  • might be expected from a man who knew himself to be honoured with the
  • presence and conversation of a person, who had the most delicate mind in
  • the world--that was his flourish.
  • I said, that he might perhaps expect congratulation upon the discovery
  • he had just now made, to wit, that true politeness and sincerity were
  • reconcilable: but that I, who had, by a perverse fate, been thrown into
  • his company, had abundant reason to regret that he had not sooner found
  • this out.--Since, I believed, very few men of birth and education were
  • strangers to it.
  • He knew not, neither, he said, that he had so badly behaved himself, as
  • to deserve so very severe a rebuke.
  • Perhaps not, I replied: but he might, if so, make another discovery from
  • what I had said; which might be to my own disadvantage: since, if he
  • had so much reason to be satisfied with himself, he would see what an
  • ungenerous person he spoke to, who, when he seemed to give himself airs
  • of humility, which, perhaps he thought beneath him to assume, had not
  • the civility to make him a compliment upon them; but was ready to take
  • him at his word.
  • He had long, with infinite pleasure, the pretended flattery-hater said,
  • admired my superior talents, and a wisdom in so young a lady, perfectly
  • suprising.
  • Let me, Madam, said he, stand ever so low in your opinion, I shall
  • believe all you say to be just; and that I have nothing to do but to
  • govern myself for the future by your example, and by the standard you
  • shall be pleased to give me.
  • I know better, Sir, replied I, than to value myself upon your volubility
  • of speech. As you pretend to pay so preferable a regard to sincerity,
  • you shall confine yourself to the strict rules of truth, when you speak
  • of me, to myself: and then, although you shall be so kind as to imagine
  • that you have reason to make me a compliment, you will have much more
  • to pride yourself in those arts which have made so extraordinary a young
  • creature so great a fool.
  • Really, my dear, the man deserves not politer treatment.--And then has
  • he not made a fool, an egregious fool of me?--I am afraid he himself
  • thinks he has.
  • I am surprised! I am amazed, Madam, returned he, at so strange a turn
  • upon me!--I am very unhappy, that nothing I can do or say will give
  • you a good opinion of me!--Would to heaven that I knew what I can do to
  • obtain the honour of your confidence!
  • I told him, that I desired his absence, of all things. I saw not,
  • I said, that my friends thought it worth their while to give me
  • disturbance: therefore, if he would set out for London, or Berkshire, or
  • whither he pleased, it would be most agreeable to me, and most reputable
  • too.
  • He would do so, he said, he intended to do so, the moment I was in a
  • place to my liking--in a place convenient for me.
  • This, Sir, will be so, said I, when you are not here to break in upon
  • me, and make the apartments inconvenient.
  • He did not think this place safe, he replied; and as I intended not to
  • stay here, he had not been so solicitous, as otherwise he should have
  • been, to enjoin privacy to his servants, nor to Mrs. Greme at her
  • leaving me; that there were two or three gentlemen at the neighbourhood,
  • he said, with whose servants his gossiping fellows had scraped
  • acquaintance: so that he could not think of leaving me here unguarded
  • and unattended.--But fix upon any place in England where I could be
  • out of danger, and he would go to the furthermost part of the king's
  • dominions, if by doing so he could make me easy.
  • I told him plainly that I should never be in humour with myself for
  • meeting him; nor with him, for seducing me away: that my regrets
  • increased, instead of diminished: that my reputation was wounded: that
  • nothing I could do would now retrieve it: and that he must not wonder,
  • if I every hour grew more and more uneasy both with myself and him: that
  • upon the whole, I was willing to take care of myself; and when he had
  • left me, I should best know what to resolve upon, and whither to go.
  • He wished, he said, he were at liberty, without giving me offence, or
  • being thought to intend to infringe the articles I had stipulated and
  • insisted upon, to make one humble proposal to me. But the sacred regard
  • he was determined to pay to all my injunctions (reluctantly as I had on
  • Monday last put it into his power to serve me) would not permit him to
  • make it, unless I would promise to excuse him, if I did not approve of
  • it.
  • I asked, in some confusion, what he would say?
  • He prefaced and paraded on; and then out came, with great diffidence,
  • and many apologies, and a bashfulness which sat very awkwardly upon him,
  • a proposal of speedy solemnization: which, he said, would put all right;
  • and make my first three or four months (which otherwise must be passed
  • in obscurity and apprehension) a round of visits and visitings to and
  • from all his relations; to Miss Howe; to whom I pleased: and would pave
  • the way to the reconciliation I had so much at heart.
  • Your advice had great weight with me just then, as well as his reasons,
  • and the consideration of my unhappy situation: But what could I say? I
  • wanted somebody to speak for me.
  • The man saw I was not angry at his motion. I only blushed; and that I am
  • sure I did up to the ears; and looked silly, and like a fool.
  • He wants not courage. Would he have had me catch at his first, at his
  • very first word?--I was silent too--and do not the bold sex take silence
  • for a mark of a favour!--Then, so lately in my father's house! Having
  • also declared to him in my letters, before I had your advice, that
  • I would not think of marriage till he had passed through a state of
  • probation, as I may call it--How was it possible I could encourage, with
  • very ready signs of approbation, such an early proposal? especially so
  • soon after the free treatment he had provoked from me. If I were to die,
  • I could not.
  • He looked at me with great confidence; as if (notwithstanding his
  • contradictory bashfulness) he would look me through; while my eye
  • but now-and-then could glance at him.--He begged my pardon with great
  • humility: he was afraid I would think he deserved no other answer, but
  • that of a contemptuous silence. True love was fearful of offending.
  • [Take care, Mr. Lovelace, thought I, how your's is tried by that
  • rule]. Indeed so sacred a regard [foolish man!] would he have to all my
  • declarations made before I honoured him--
  • I would hear him no further; but withdrew in a confusion too visible,
  • and left him to make his nonsensical flourishes to himself.
  • I will only add, that, if he really wishes for a speedy solemnization,
  • he never could have had a luckier time to press for my consent to it.
  • But he let it go off; and indignation has taken place of it. And now it
  • shall be a point with me, to get him at a distance from me.
  • I am, my dearest friend, Your ever faithful and obliged CL. H.
  • LETTER XVI
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. TUESDAY, APR. 13.
  • Why, Jack, thou needest not make such a wonderment, as the girls say, if
  • I should have taken large strides already towards reformation: for dost
  • thou not see, that while I have been so assiduously, night and day,
  • pursuing this single charmer, I have infinitely less to answer for,
  • than otherwise I should have had? Let me see, how many days and
  • nights?--Forty, I believe, after open trenches, spent in the sap only,
  • and never a mine sprung yet!
  • By a moderate computation, a dozen kites might have fallen, while I have
  • been only trying to ensnare this single lark. Nor yet do I see when
  • I shall be able to bring her to my lure: more innocent days yet,
  • therefore!--But reformation for my stalking-horse, I hope, will be a
  • sure, though a slow method to effect all my purposes.
  • Then, Jack, thou wilt have a merit too in engaging my pen, since thy
  • time would be otherwise worse employed: and, after all, who knows but by
  • creating new habits, at the expense of the old, a real reformation may
  • be brought about? I have promised it; and I believe there is a pleasure
  • to be found in being good, reversing that of Nat. Lee's madman,
  • --Which none but good men know.
  • By all this, seest thou not how greatly preferable it is, on twenty
  • accounts, to pursue a difficult rather than an easy chace? I have a
  • desire to inculcate this pleasure upon thee, and to teach thee to fly at
  • nobler game than daws, crows, and widgeons: I have a mind to shew thee
  • from time to time, in the course of the correspondence thou hast so
  • earnestly wished me to begin on this illustrious occasion, that these
  • exalted ladies may be abased, and to obviate one of the objections that
  • thou madest to me, when we were last together, that the pleasure which
  • attends these nobler aims, remunerates not the pains they bring with
  • them; since, like a paltry fellow as thou wert, thou assertedst that all
  • women are alike.
  • Thou knowest nothing, Jack, of the delicacies of intrigue: nothing of
  • the glory of outwitting the witty and the watchful: of the joys that
  • fill the mind of the inventive or contriving genius, ruminating which
  • to use of the different webs that offer to him for the entanglement of a
  • haughty charmer, who in her day has given him unnumbered torments. Thou,
  • Jack, who, like a dog at his ease, contentest thyself to growl over
  • a bone thrown out to thee, dost not know the joys of a chace, and in
  • pursuing a winding game: these I will endeavour to rouse thee to,
  • and then thou wilt have reason doubly and trebly to thank me, as well
  • because of thy present delight, as with regard to thy prospect beyond
  • the moon.
  • To this place I had written, purely to amuse myself, before I was
  • admitted to my charmer. But now I have to tell thee, that I was quite
  • right in my conjecture, that she would set up for herself, and dismiss
  • me: for she has declared in so many words that such was her resolution:
  • And why? Because, to be plain with me, the more she saw of me, and of my
  • ways, the less she liked of either.
  • This cut me to the heart! I did not cry, indeed! Had I been a woman,
  • I should though, and that most plentifully: but I pulled out a white
  • cambrick handkerchief: that I could command, but not my tears.
  • She finds fault with my protestations, with my professions, with my
  • vows: I cannot curse a servant, the only privilege a master is known by,
  • but I am supposed to be a trooper*--I must not say, By my soul! nor,
  • As I hope to be saved! Why, Jack, how particular this is! Would she not
  • have me think I have a precious soul, as well as she? If she thinks my
  • salvation hopeless, what a devil [another exceptionable word!] does she
  • propose to reform me for? So I have not an ardent expression left me.
  • * See Letter VI. of this volume.
  • *****
  • What can be done with a woman who is above flattery, and despises all
  • praise but that which flows from the approbation of her own heart?
  • Well, Jack, thou seest it is high time to change my measures. I must run
  • into the pious a little faster than I had designed.
  • What a sad thing it would be, were I, after all, to lose her person,
  • as well as her opinion! the only time that further acquaintance, and no
  • blow struck, nor suspicion given, ever lessened me in a lady's favour!
  • A cursed mortification!--'Tis certain I can have no pretence for holding
  • her, if she will go. No such thing as force to be used, or so much as
  • hinted at: Lord send us safe at London!--That's all I have for it now:
  • and yet it must be the least part of my speech.
  • But why will this admirable creature urge her destiny? Why will she defy
  • the power she is absolutely dependent upon? Why will she still wish to
  • my face that she had never left her father's house? Why will she deny me
  • her company, till she makes me lose my patience, and lay myself open
  • to her resentment? And why, when she is offended, does she carry her
  • indignation to the utmost length that a scornful beauty, in the very
  • height of her power and pride, can go?
  • Is it prudent, thinkest thou, in her circumstances, to tell me,
  • repeatedly to tell me, 'That she is every hour more and more
  • dissatisfied with herself and me? That I am not one who improve upon her
  • in my conversation and address?' [Couldst thou, Jack, bear this from
  • a captive!] 'That she shall not be easy while she is with me? That she
  • knows better than to value herself upon my volubility? That if I think
  • she deserves the compliments I make her, I may pride myself in those
  • arts, by which I have made a fool of so extraordinary a person? That
  • she shall never forgive herself for meeting me, nor me for seducing her
  • away?' [Her very words.] 'That her regrets increase instead of diminish?
  • That she will take care of herself; and, since her friends thing it
  • not worth while to pursue her, she will be left to her own care? That I
  • shall make Mrs. Sorlings's house more agreeable by my absence?--And go
  • to Berks, to town, or wherever I will,' [to the devil, I suppose,] 'with
  • all her heart?'
  • The impolitic charmer!--To a temper so vindictive as she thins mine! To
  • a free-liver, as she believes me to be, who has her in his power! I
  • was before, as thou knowest, balancing; now this scale, now that, the
  • heaviest. I only waited to see how her will would work, how mine would
  • lead me on. Thou seest what bias here takes--And wilt thou doubt
  • that mine will be determined by it? Were not her faults, before this,
  • numerous enough? Why will she put me upon looking back?
  • I will sit down to argue with myself by-and-by, and thou shalt be
  • acquainted with the result.
  • If thou didst but know, if thou hadst but beheld, what an abject slave
  • she made me look like!--I had given myself high airs, as she called
  • them: but they were airs that shewed my love for her: that shewed
  • I could not live out of her company. But she took me down with a
  • vengeance! She made me look about me. So much advantage had she over me;
  • such severe turns upon me; by my soul, Jack, I had hardly a word to say
  • for myself. I am ashamed to tell thee what a poor creature she made me
  • look like! But I could have told her something that would have humbled
  • her pretty pride at the instant, had she been in a proper place, and
  • proper company about her.
  • To such a place then--and where she cannot fly me--And then to see
  • how my will works, and what can be done with the amorous see-saw; now
  • humble, now proud; now expecting, or demanding; now submitting, or
  • acquiescing--till I have tried resistance.
  • But these hints are at present enough. I may further explain myself as
  • I go along; and as I confirm or recede in my future motions. If she
  • will revive past disobligations! If she will--But no more, no more, as I
  • said, at present, of threatenings.
  • LETTER XVII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • And do I not see that I shall need nothing but patience, in order to
  • have all power with me? For what shall we say, if all these complaints
  • of a character wounded; these declarations of increasing regrets for
  • meeting me; of resentments never to be got over for my seducing her
  • away; these angry commands to leaver her:--What shall we say, if all
  • were to mean nothing but MATRIMONY? And what if my forbearing to enter
  • upon that subject come out to be the true cause of their petulance and
  • uneasiness!
  • I had once before played about the skirts of the irrevocable obligation;
  • but thought myself obliged to speak in clouds, and to run away from the
  • subject, as soon as she took my meaning, lest she should imagine it to
  • be ungenerously urged, now she was in some sort in my power, as she
  • had forbid me beforehand, to touch upon it, till I were in a state of
  • visible reformation, and till a reconciliation with her friends were
  • probable. But now, out-argued, out-talented, and pushed so vehemently to
  • leave one of whom I had no good pretence to hold, if she would go; and
  • who could so easily, if I had given her cause to doubt, have thrown
  • herself into other protection, or have returned to Harlowe-place and
  • Solmes; I spoke out upon the subject, and offered reasons, although
  • with infinite doubt and hesitation, [lest she should be offended at
  • me, Belford!] why she should assent to the legal tie, and make me the
  • happiest of men. And O how the mantle cheek, the downcast eye, the
  • silent yet trembling lip, and the heaving bosom, a sweet collection
  • of heightened beauties, gave evidence that the tender was not mortally
  • offensive!
  • Charming creature! thought I, [but I charge thee, that thou let not
  • any of the sex know my exultation,*] Is it so soon come to this? Am
  • I already lord of the destiny of a Clarissa Harlowe? Am I already
  • the reformed man thou resolvest I should be, before I had the least
  • encouragement given me? Is it thus, that the more thou knowest me, the
  • less thou seest reason to approve of me?--And can art and design
  • enter into a breast so celestial? To banish me from thee, to insist so
  • rigorously upon my absence, in order to bring me closer to thee, and
  • make the blessing dear? Well do thy arts justify mine; and encourage me
  • to let loose my plotting genius upon thee.
  • * Mr. Lovelace might have spared this caution on this occasion, since
  • many of the sex [we mention it with regret] who on the first publication
  • had read thus far, and even to the lady's first escape, have been
  • readier to censure her for over-niceness, as we have observed in a
  • former note, page 42, than him for artifices and exultations not less
  • cruel and ungrateful, than ungenerous and unmanly.
  • But let me tell thee, charming maid, if thy wishes are at all to be
  • answered, that thou hast yet to account to me for thy reluctance to go
  • off with me, at a crisis when thy going off was necessary to avoid being
  • forced into the nuptial fetters with a wretch, that, were he not thy
  • aversion, thou wert no more honest to thy own merit than to me.
  • I am accustomed to be preferred, let me tell thee, by thy equals in rank
  • too, though thy inferiors in merit: But who is not so? And shall I marry
  • a woman, who has given me reason to doubt the preference she has for me?
  • No, my dearest love, I have too sacred a regard for thy injunctions, to
  • let them be broken through, even by thyself. Nor will I take in thy full
  • meaning by blushing silence only. Nor shalt thou give me room to doubt,
  • whether it be necessity or love, that inspires this condescending
  • impulse.
  • Upon these principles, what had I to do but to construe her silence into
  • contemptuous displeasure? And I begged her pardon for making a motion
  • which I had so much reason to fear would offend her: for the future I
  • would pay a sacred regard to her previous injunctions, and prove to
  • her by all my conduct the truth of that observation, That true love is
  • always fearful of offending.
  • And what could the lady say to this? methinks thou askest.
  • Say!--Why she looked vexed, disconcerted, teased; was at a loss, as I
  • thought, whether to be more angry with herself, or with me. She turned
  • about, however, as if to hide a starting tear; and drew a sigh into
  • two or three but just audible quavers, trying to suppress it, and
  • withdrew--leaving me master of the field.
  • Tell me not of politeness; tell me not of generosity; tell me not of
  • compassion--Is she not a match for me? More than a match? Does she not
  • outdo me at every fair weapon? Has she not made me doubt her love? Has
  • she not taken officious pains to declare that she was not averse to
  • Solmes for any respect she had to me? and her sorrow for putting herself
  • out of his reach, that is to say, for meeting me?
  • Then, what a triumph would it be to the Harlowe pride, were I now to
  • marry this lady? A family beneath my own! No one in it worthy of an
  • alliance with but her! My own estate not contemptible! Living within the
  • bounds of it, to avoid dependence upon their betters, and obliged to no
  • man living! My expectations still so much more considerable! My person,
  • my talents--not to be despised, surely--yet rejected by them with scorn.
  • Obliged to carry on an underhand address to their daughter, when two of
  • the most considerable families in the kingdom have made overtures, which
  • I have declined, partly for her sake, and partly because I never will
  • marry; if she be not the person. To be forced to steal her away, not
  • only from them, but from herself! And must I be brought to implore
  • forgiveness and reconciliation from the Harlowes?--Beg to be
  • acknowledged as the son of a gloomy tyrant, whose only boast is his
  • riches? As a brother to a wretch, who has conceived immortal hatred to
  • me; and to a sister who was beneath my attempts, or I would have had her
  • in my own way, and that with a tenth part of the trouble and pains that
  • her sister has cost me; and, finally, as a nephew to uncles, who value
  • themselves upon their acquired fortunes, would insult me as creeping
  • to them on that account?--Forbid it in the blood of the Lovelaces, that
  • your last, and, let me say, not the meanest of your stock, should thus
  • creep, thus fawn, thus lick the dust, for a WIFE--!
  • Proceed anon.
  • LETTER XVIII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • But is it not the divine CLARISSA [Harlowe let me not say; my soul
  • spurns them all but her] whom I am thus by application threatening?--If
  • virtue be the true nobility, how is she ennobled, and how shall an
  • alliance with her ennoble, were not contempt due to the family from whom
  • she sprang and prefers to me!
  • But again, let me stop.--Is there not something wrong, has there
  • not been something wrong, in this divine creature? And will not the
  • reflections upon that wrong (what though it may be construed in my
  • favour?*) make me unhappy, when novelty has lost its charms, and when,
  • mind and person, she is all my own? Libertines are nicer, if at all
  • nice, than other men. They seldom meet with the stand of virtue in
  • the women whom they attempt. And, by the frailty of those they have
  • triumphed over, they judge of all the rest. 'Importunity and opportunity
  • no woman is proof against, especially from the persevering lover, who
  • knows how to suit temptations to inclinations:' This, thou knowest, is a
  • prime article of the rake's creed.
  • * The particular attention of such of the fair sex, as are more apt to
  • read for the same of amusement than instruction, is requested to this
  • letter of Mr. Lovelace.
  • And what! (methinks thou askest with surprise) Dost thou question this
  • most admirable of women?--The virtue of a CLARISSA dost thou question?
  • I do not, I dare not question it. My reverence for her will not let me
  • directly question it. But let me, in my turn, ask thee--Is not, may not
  • her virtue be founded rather in pride than in principle? Whose daughter
  • is she?--And is she not a daughter? If impeccable, how came she by her
  • impeccability? The pride of setting an example to her sex has run away
  • with her hitherto, and may have made her till now invincible. But is not
  • that pride abated? What may not both men and women be brought to do in a
  • mortified state? What mind is superior to calamity? Pride is perhaps the
  • principal bulwark of female virtue. Humble a woman, and may she not be
  • effectually humbled?
  • Then who says Miss Clarissa Harlowe is the paragon of virtue?--Is virtue
  • itself?
  • All who know her, and have heard of her, it will be answered.
  • Common bruit!--Is virtue to be established by common bruit only?--Has
  • her virtue ever been proved?--Who has dared to try her virtue?
  • I told thee, I would sit down to argue with myself; and I have drawn
  • myself into argumentation before I was aware.
  • Let me enter into a strict discussion of this subject.
  • I know how ungenerous an appearance what I have said, and what I have
  • further to say, on this topic, will have from me: But am I not bringing
  • virtue to the touchstone, with a view to exalt it, if it come out to be
  • proof?--'Avaunt then, for one moment, all consideration that may arise
  • from a weakness which some would miscall gratitude; and is oftentimes
  • the corrupter of a heart most ignoble!'
  • To the test then--and I will bring this charming creature to the
  • strictest test, 'that all the sex, who may be shewn any passages in my
  • letters,' [and I know thou cheerest the hearts of all thy acquaintance
  • with such detached parts of mine as tend not to dishonour characters
  • or reveal names: and this gives me an appetite to oblige thee by
  • interlardment,] 'that all the sex, I say, may see what they ought to be;
  • what is expected from them; and if they have to deal with a person of
  • reflection and punctilio, [of pride, if thou wilt,] how careful they
  • ought to be, by a regular and uniform conduct, not to give him cause to
  • think lightly of them for favours granted, which may be interpreted into
  • natural weakness. For is not a wife the keeper of a man's honour? And
  • do not her faults bring more disgrace upon a husband than even upon
  • herself?'
  • It is not for nothing, Jack, that I have disliked the life of shackles.
  • To the test then, as I said, since now I have the question brought home
  • to me, Whether I am to have a wife? And whether she be to be a wife at
  • the first or at the second hand?
  • I will proceed fairly. I do the dear creature not only strict but
  • generous justice; for I will try her by her own judgment, as well as by
  • our principles.
  • She blames herself for having corresponded with me, a man of free
  • character; and one indeed whose first view it was to draw her into this
  • correspondence; and who succeeded in it by means unknown to herself.
  • 'Now, what were her inducements to this correspondence?' If not what her
  • niceness makes her think blameworthy, why does she blame herself?
  • Has she been capable of error? Of persisting in that error?
  • Whoever was the tempter, that is not the thing; nor what the temptation.
  • The fact, the error, is now before us.
  • Did she persist in it against parental prohibition?
  • She owns she did.
  • Was a daughter ever known who had higher notions of the filial duty, of
  • the parental authority?
  • Never.
  • 'What must be the inducements, how strong, that were too strong for
  • duty, in a daughter so dutiful?--What must my thoughts have been of
  • these inducements, what my hopes built upon them at the time, taken in
  • this light?'
  • Well, but it will be said, That her principal view was to prevent
  • mischief between her brother and her other friends, and the man vilely
  • insulted by them all.
  • But why should she be more concerned for the safety of others than they
  • were for their own? And had not the rencounter then happened? 'Was a
  • person of virtue to be prevailed upon to break through her apparent, her
  • acknowledged duty, upon any consideration?' And, if not, was she to be
  • so prevailed upon to prevent an apprehended evil only?
  • Thou, Lovelace, the tempter (thou wilt again break out and say) to be
  • the accuser!
  • But I am not the accuser. I am the arguer only, and, in my heart,
  • all the time acquit and worship the divine creature. 'But let me,
  • nevertheless, examine, whether the acquital be owing to her merit, or to
  • my weakness--Weakness the true name of love!'
  • But shall we suppose another motive?--And that is LOVE; a motive which
  • all the world will excuse her for. 'But let me tell all the world that
  • do, not because they ought, but because all the world is apt to be
  • misled by it.'
  • Let LOVE then be the motive:--Love of whom?
  • A Lovelace, is the answer.
  • 'Is there but one Lovelace in the world? May not more Lovelaces be
  • attracted by so fine a figure? By such exalted qualities? It was her
  • character that drew me to her: and it was her beauty and good sense that
  • rivetted my chains: and now all together make me think her a subject
  • worthy of my attempts, worthy of my ambition.'
  • But has she had the candour, the openness, to acknowledge that love?
  • She has not.
  • 'Well then, if love be at the bottom, is there not another fault lurking
  • beneath the shadow of that love?--Has she not affectation?--Or is it
  • pride of heart?'
  • And what results?--'Is then the divine Clarissa capable of loving a man
  • whom she ought not to love? And is she capable of affectation? And is
  • her virtue founded in pride?--And, if the answer to these questions be
  • affirmative, must she not then be a woman?'
  • And can she keep this love at bay? Can she make him, who has been
  • accustomed to triumph over other women, tremble? Can she conduct
  • herself, as to make him, at times, question whether she loves him or
  • any man; 'yet not have the requisite command over the passion itself in
  • steps of the highest consequence to her honour, as she thinks,' [I
  • am trying her, Jack, by her own thoughts,] 'but suffer herself to be
  • provoked to promise to abandon her father's house, and go off with
  • him, knowing his character; and even conditioning not to marry till
  • improbably and remote contingencies were to come to pass? What though
  • the provocations were such as would justify any other woman; yet was
  • a CLARISSA to be susceptible to provocations which she thinks herself
  • highly censurable for being so much moved by?'
  • But let us see the dear creature resolved to revoke her promise, yet
  • meeting her lover; a bold and intrepid man, who was more than once
  • before disappointed by her; and who comes, as she knows, prepared to
  • expect the fruits of her appointment, and resolved to carry her off.
  • And let us see him actually carrying her off, and having her at
  • his mercy--'May there not be, I repeat, other Lovelaces; other like
  • intrepid, persevering enterprizers; although they may not go to work in
  • the same way?
  • 'And has then a CLARISSA (herself her judge) failed?--In such great
  • points failed?--And may she not further fail?--Fail in the greatest
  • point, to which all the other points, in which she has failed, have but
  • a natural tendency?'
  • Nor say thou, that virtue, in the eye of Heaven, is as much a manly as
  • a womanly grace. By virtue in this place I mean chastity, and to be
  • superior to temptation; my Clarissa out of the question. Nor ask thou,
  • shall the man be guilty, yet expect the woman to be guiltless, and even
  • unsuspectible? Urge thou not these arguments, I say, since the wife, by
  • a failure, may do much more injury to the husband, than the husband can
  • do to the wife, and not only to her husband, but to all his family, by
  • obtruding another man's children into his possessions, perhaps to the
  • exclusion of (at least to a participation with) his own; he believing
  • them all the time to be his. In the eye of Heaven, therefore, the sin
  • cannot be equal. Besides I have read in some places that the woman was
  • made for the man, not the man for the woman. Virtue then is less to be
  • dispensed with in the woman than in the man.
  • Thou, Lovelace, (methinks some better man than thyself will say,) to
  • expect such perfection in a woman!
  • Yes, I, may I answer. Was not the great Caesar a great rake as to
  • women? Was he not called, by his very soldiers, on one of his triumphant
  • entries into Rome, the bald-pated lecher? and warning given of him to
  • the wives, as well as to the daughter of his fellow-citizens? Yet did
  • not Caesar repudiate his wife for being only in company with Clodius, or
  • rather because Clodius, though by surprise upon her, was found in hers?
  • And what was the reason he gave for it?--It was this, (though a rake
  • himself, as I have said,) and only this--The wife of Caesar must not be
  • suspected!--
  • Caesar was not a prouder man than Lovelace.
  • Go to then, Jack; nor say, nor let any body say, in thy hearing, that
  • Lovelace, a man valuing himself upon his ancestry, is singular in his
  • expectations of a wife's purity, though not pure himself.
  • As to my CLARISSA, I own that I hardly think there ever was such an
  • angel of a woman. But has she not, as above, already taken steps, which
  • she herself condemns? Steps, which the world and her own family did
  • not think her capable of taking? And for which her own family will not
  • forgive her?
  • Nor think it strange, that I refuse to hear any thing pleaded in behalf
  • of a standard virtue from high provocations. 'Are not provocations and
  • temptations the tests of virtue? A standard virtue must not be allowed
  • to be provoked to destroy or annihilate itself.
  • 'May not then the success of him, who could carry her thus far, be
  • allowed to be an encouragement for him to try to carry her farther?'
  • 'Tis but to try. Who will be afraid of a trail for this divine creature?
  • 'Thou knowest, that I have more than once, twice, or thrice, put to the
  • fiery trial young women of name and character; and never yet met
  • with one who held out a month; nor indeed so long as could puzzle my
  • invention. I have concluded against the whole sex upon it.' And now, if
  • I have not found a virtue that cannot be corrupted, I will swear that
  • there is not one such in the whole sex. Is not then the whole sex
  • concerned that this trial should be made? And who is it that knows this
  • lady, that would not stake upon her head the honour of the whole?--Let
  • her who would refuse it come forth, and desire to stand in her place.
  • I must assure thee, that I have a prodigious high opinion of virtue; as
  • I have of all those graces and excellencies which I have not been
  • able to attain myself. Every free-liver would not say this, nor think
  • thus--every argument he uses, condemnatory of his own actions, as some
  • would think. But ingenuousness was ever a signal part of my character.
  • Satan, whom thou mayest, if thou wilt, in this case, call my instigator,
  • put the good man of old upon the severest trial. 'To his behaviour under
  • these trials that good man owed his honour and his future rewards.'
  • An innocent person, if doubted, must wish to be brought to a fair and
  • candid trial.
  • Rinaldo, indeed, in Ariosto, put the Mantua Knight's cup of trial from
  • him, which was to be the proof of his wife's chastity*--This was his
  • argument for forbearing the experiment: 'Why should I seek a think I
  • should be loth to find? My wife is a woman. The sex is frail. I cannot
  • believe better of her than I do. It will be to my own loss, if I find
  • reason to think worse.' But Rinaldo would not have refused the trial of
  • the lady, before she became his wife, and when he might have found his
  • account in detecting her.
  • * The story tells us, that whoever drank of this cup, if his wife were
  • chaste, could drink without spilling; if otherwise, the contrary.
  • For my part, I would not have put the cup from me, though married, had
  • it been but in hope of finding reason to confirm my good opinion of my
  • wife's honour; and that I might know whether I had a snake or a dove in
  • my bosom.
  • To my point--'What must that virtue be which will not stand a
  • trial?--What that woman who would wish to shun it?'
  • Well, then, a trial seems necessary for the furthest establishment of
  • the honour of so excellent a creature.
  • And who shall put her to this trial? Who, but the man who has, as she
  • thinks, already induced her in lesser points to swerve?--And this for
  • her own sake in a double sense--not only, as he has been able to make
  • some impression, but as she regrets the impression made; and so may be
  • presumed to be guarded against his further attempts.
  • The situation she is at present in, it must be confessed is a
  • disadvantageous one to her: but, if she overcome, that will redound to
  • her honour.
  • Shun not, therefore, my dear soul, further trials, nor hate me for
  • making them.--'For what woman can be said to be virtuous till she has
  • been tried?
  • 'Nor is one effort, one trial, to be sufficient. Why? Because a woman's
  • heart may at one time be adamant, at another wax'--as I have often
  • experienced. And so, no doubt, hast thou.
  • A fine time of it, methinks, thou sayest, would the woman have, if they
  • were all to be tried--!
  • But, Jack, I am not for that neither. Though I am a rake, I am not a
  • rake's friend; except thine and company's.
  • And be this one of the morals of my tedious discussion--'Let the little
  • rogues who would not be put to the question, as I may call it, choose
  • accordingly. Let them prefer to their favour good honest sober fellows,
  • who have not been used to play dog's tricks: who will be willing to
  • take them as they offer; and, who being tolerable themselves, are not
  • suspicious of others.'
  • But what, methinks thou askest, is to become of the lady if she fail?
  • What?--Why will she not, 'if once subdued, be always subdued?'
  • Another of our libertine maxims. And what an immense pleasure to a
  • marriage-hater, what rapture to thought, to be able to prevail upon such
  • a woman as Miss Clarissa Harlowe to live with him, without real change
  • of name!
  • But if she resist--if nobly she stand her trial?--
  • Why then I will marry her; and bless my starts for such an angel of a
  • wife.
  • But will she not hate thee?--will she not refuse--
  • No, no, Jack!--Circumstanced and situated as we are, I am not afraid of
  • that. And hate me! Why should she hate the man who loves her upon proof?
  • And then for a little hint at reprisal--am I not justified in my
  • resolutions of trying her virtue, who is resolved, as I may say, to try
  • mine? Who has declared that she will not marry me, till she has hopes of
  • my reformation?
  • And now, to put an end to this sober argumentation, Wilt thou not
  • thyself (whom I have supposed an advocate for the lady, because I know
  • that Lord M. has put thee upon using the interest he thinks thou hast in
  • me, to persuade me to enter the pale; wilt thou not thyself) allow me to
  • try if I cannot awaken the woman in her?--To try if she, with all that
  • glowing symmetry of parts, and that full bloom of vernal graces, by
  • which she attracts every eye, be really inflexible as to the grand
  • article?
  • Let me begin then, as opportunity presents--I will; and watch her
  • every step to find one sliding one; her every moment to find the
  • moment critical. And the rather, as she spares me not, but takes every
  • advantage that offers to puzzle and plague me; nor expect nor thinks me
  • to be a good man.
  • If she be a woman, and love me, I shall surely catch her once tripping:
  • for love was ever a traitor to its harbourer: and love within, and I
  • without, she will be more than woman, as the poet says, or I less than
  • man, if I succeed not.
  • Now, Belford, all is out. The lady is mine; shall be more mine.
  • Marriage, I see, is in my power, now she is so. Else perhaps it had not.
  • If I can have her without marriage, who can blame me for trying? If not,
  • great will be her glory, and my future confidence. And well will she
  • merit the sacrifice I shall make her of my liberty; and from all her sex
  • honours next to divine, for giving a proof, 'that there was once a woman
  • whose virtue no trials, no stratagems, no temptations, even from the man
  • she hated not, could overpower.'
  • Now wilt thou see all my circulation: as in a glass wilt thou see
  • it.--CABALA, however, is the word;* nor let the secret escape thee even
  • in thy dreams.
  • * This word, whenever used by any of these gentlemen, was agreed to imply
  • an inviolable secret.
  • Nobody doubts that she is to be my wife. Let her pass for such when I
  • give the word. 'Mean time reformation shall be my stalking-horse; some
  • one of the women in London, if I can get her hither, my bird.' And so
  • much for this time.
  • LETTER XIX
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN ANSWER TO LETTERS IX. XV.]
  • Do not be so much concerned, my dearest friend, at the bickerings
  • between my mother and me. We love one another dearly notwithstanding.
  • If my mother had not me to find fault with, she must find fault with
  • somebody else. And as to me, I am a very saucy girl; and were not this
  • occasion, there would be some other, to shew it.
  • You have heard me say, that this was always the case between us.
  • You could not otherwise have known it. For when you was with us, you
  • harmonized us both; and, indeed, I was always more afraid of you than of
  • my mother. But then that awe is accompanied with love. Your reproofs,
  • as I have always found, are so charmingly mild and instructive; so
  • evidently calculated to improve, and not to provoke; that a generous
  • temper must be amended by them. But hear now, mind my good mamma, when
  • you are not with us--You shall, I tell you, Nancy. I will have it so.
  • Don't I know best, I won't be disobeyed. How can a daughter of spirits
  • bear such language; such looks too with the language; and not have a
  • longing mind to disobey?
  • Don't advise me, my dear, to subscribe to my mother's prohibition of
  • correspondence with you. She has no reason for it. Nor would she of her
  • own judgment have prohibited it. That odd old ambling soul your uncle,
  • (whose visits are frequenter than ever,) instigated by your malicious
  • and selfish brother and sister in the occasion. And they have only
  • borrowed my mother's lips, at the distance they are from you, for a sort
  • of speaking trumpet for them. The prohibition, once more I say, cannot
  • come from her heart: But if it did, is so much danger to be apprehended
  • from my continuing to write to one of my own sex, as if I wrote to one
  • of the other? Don't let dejection and disappointment, and the course
  • of oppression which you have run through, weaken your mind, my dearest
  • creature, and make you see inconveniencies where there possibly cannot
  • be any. If your talent is scribbling, as you call it; so is mine--and
  • I will scribble on, at all opportunities; and to you; let them say what
  • they will. Nor let your letters be filled with the self-accusations you
  • mention: there is no cause for them. I wish that your Anna Howe, who
  • continues in her mother's house, were but half so good as Miss Clarissa
  • Harlowe, who has been driven out of her father's.
  • I will say nothing upon your letter to your sister till I see the effect
  • it will have. You hope, you tell me, that you shall have your money and
  • clothes sent you, notwithstanding my opinion to the contrary--I am sorry
  • to have it to acquaint you, that I have just now heard, that they have
  • sat in council upon your letter; and that your mother was the only
  • person who was for sending you your things, and was overruled. I
  • charge you therefore to accept of my offer, as by my last: and give
  • me particular directions for what you want, that I can supply you with
  • besides.
  • Don't set your thought so much upon a reconciliation as to prevent your
  • laying hold of any handsome opportunity to give yourself a protector;
  • such a one as the man will be, who, I imagine, husband-like, will let
  • nobody insult you but himself.
  • What could he mean by letting slip such a one as that you mention? I
  • don't know how to blame you; for how you go beyond silence and blushes,
  • when the foolish fellow came with his observances of the restrictions
  • which you laid him under when in another situation? But, as I told you
  • above, you really strike people into awe. And, upon my word, you did not
  • spare him.
  • I repeat what I said in my last, that you have a very nice part to act:
  • and I will add, that you have a mind that is much too delicate for your
  • part. But when the lover is exalted, the lady must be humbled. He is
  • naturally proud and saucy. I doubt you must engage his pride, which he
  • calls his honour: and that you must throw off a little more of the veil.
  • And I would have you restrain your wishes before him, that you had not
  • met him, and the like. What signifies wishing, my dear? He will not bear
  • it. You can hardly expect that he will.
  • Nevertheless, it vexed me to the very bottom of my pride, that any
  • wretch of that sex should be able to triumph over Clarissa.
  • I cannot, however, but say, that I am charmed with your spirit. So much
  • sweetness, where sweetness is requisite; so much spirit, where spirit is
  • called for--what a true magnanimity!
  • But I doubt, in your present circumstances, you must endeavour after a
  • little more of the reserve, in cases where you are displeased with him,
  • and palliate a little. That humility which he puts on when you rise upon
  • him, is not natural to him.
  • Methinks I see the man hesitating, and looking like the fool you paint
  • him, under your corrective superiority!--But he is not a fool. Don't put
  • him upon mingling resentment with his love.
  • You are very serious, my dear, in the first of the two letters before
  • me, in relation to Mr. Hickman and me; and in relation to my mother and
  • me. But as to the latter, you must not be too grave. If we are not well
  • together at one time, we are not ill together at another. And while I am
  • able to make her smile in the midst of the most angry fit she ever fell
  • into on the present occasion, (though sometimes she would not if she
  • could help it,) it is a very good sign; a sign that displeasure can
  • never go deep, or be lasting. And then a kind word, or kind look, to
  • her favourite Hickman, sets the one into raptures, and the other in
  • tolerable humour, at any time.
  • But your case pains me at heart; and with all my levity, both the good
  • folks most sometimes partake of that pain; nor will it be over, as long
  • as you are in a state of uncertainty; and especially as I was not able
  • to prevail for that protection for you which would have prevented the
  • unhappy step, the necessity for which we both, with so much reason,
  • deplore.
  • I have only to add (and yet it is needless to tell you) that I am, and
  • will ever be,
  • Your affectionate friend and servant, ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER XX
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE
  • You tell me, my dear, that my clothes and the little sum of money I left
  • behind me, will not be sent me.--But I will still hope. It is yet early
  • days. When their passions subside, they will better consider of the
  • matter; and especially as I have my ever dear and excellent mother for
  • my friend in this request! O the sweet indulgence! How has my heart
  • bled, and how does it still bleed for her!
  • You advise me not to depend upon a reconciliation. I do not, I cannot
  • depend upon it. But nevertheless, it is the wish next my heart. And as
  • to this man, what can I do? You see, that marriage is not absolutely in
  • my own power, if I were inclined to prefer it to the trial which I think
  • I ought to have principally in view to make for a reconciliation.
  • You say, he is proud and insolent--indeed he is. But can it be your
  • opinion, that he intends to humble me down to the level of his mean
  • pride?
  • And what mean you, my dear friend, when you say, that I must throw off
  • a little more of the veil?--Indeed I never knew that I wore one. Let
  • me assure you, that if I never see any thing in Mr. Lovelace that looks
  • like a design to humble me, his insolence shall never make me discover a
  • weakness unworthy of a person distinguished by your friendship; that is
  • to say, unworthy either of my sex, or of my former self.
  • But I hope, as I am out of all other protection, that he is not capable
  • of mean or low resentments. If he has had any extraordinary trouble on
  • my account, may he not thank himself for it? He may; and lay it, if he
  • pleases, to his character; which, as I have told him, gave at least a
  • pretence to my brother against him. And then, did I ever make him any
  • promises? Did I ever profess a love for him? Did I ever wish for the
  • continuance of his address? Had not my brother's violence precipitated
  • matters, would not my indifference to him in all likelihood (as I
  • designed it should) have tired out his proud spirit,* and make him set
  • out for London, where he used chiefly to reside? And if he had, would
  • not there have been an end of all his pretensions and hopes? For no
  • encouragement had I given him; nor did I then correspond with him.
  • Nor, believe me, should I have begun to do so--the fatal rencounter
  • not having then happened; which drew me in afterwards for others' sakes
  • (fool that I was!) and not for my own. And can you think, or can he,
  • that even this but temporarily-intended correspondence (which, by the
  • way, my mother* connived at) would have ended thus, had I not been
  • driven on one hand, and teased on the other, to continue it, the
  • occasion which had at first induced it continuing? What pretence then
  • has he, were I to be absolutely in his power, to avenge himself on me
  • for the faults of others, and through which I have suffered more than
  • he? It cannot, cannot be, that I should have cause to apprehend him to
  • be so ungenerous, so bad a man.
  • * See Vol.I. Letter IV.
  • You bid me not to be concerned at the bickerings between your mother and
  • you. Can I avoid concern, when those bickerings are on my account? That
  • they are raised (instigated shall I say?) by my uncle, and my other
  • relations, surely must add to my concern.
  • But I must observe, perhaps too critically for the state my mind is in
  • at present, that the very sentences you give from your mother, as in so
  • many imperatives, which you take amiss, are very severe reflections upon
  • yourself. For instance--You shall, I tell you, Nancy, implies that you
  • had disputed her will--and so of the rest.
  • And further let me observe, with respect to what you say, that there
  • cannot be the same reason for a prohibition of correspondence with me,
  • as there was of mine with Mr. Lovelace; that I thought as little of bad
  • consequences from my correspondence with him at the time, as you can do
  • from yours with me now. But, if obedience be a duty, the breach of it is
  • a fault, however circumstances may differ. Surely there is no merit in
  • setting up our own judgment against the judgments of our parents. And
  • if it is punishable so to do, I have been severely punished; and that is
  • what I warned you of from my own dear experience.
  • Yet, God forgive me! I advise thus against myself with very great
  • reluctance: and, to say truth, have not strength of mind, at present, to
  • decline it myself. But, if my occasion go not off, I will take it into
  • further consideration.
  • You give me very good advice in relation to this man; and I thank you
  • for it. When you bid me be more upon the reserve with him in expressing
  • my displeasure, perhaps I may try for it: but to palliate, as you call
  • it, that, my dearest Miss Howe, cannot be done, by
  • Your own, CLARISSA HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXI
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE
  • You may believe, my dear Miss Howe, that the circumstances of the noise
  • and outcry within the garden-door, on Monday last, gave me no small
  • uneasiness, to think that I was in the hands of a man, who could, by
  • such vile premeditation, lay a snare to trick me out of myself, as I
  • have so frequently called it.
  • Whenever he came in my sight, the thought of this gave me an indignation
  • that made his presence disgustful to me; and the more, as I fancied
  • I beheld in his face a triumph which reproached my weakness on that
  • account; although perhaps it was only the same vivacity and placidness
  • that generally sit upon his features.
  • I was resolved to task him upon this subject, the first time I could
  • have patience to enter upon it with him. For, besides that it piqued me
  • excessively from the nature of the artifice, I expected shuffling and
  • evasion, if he were guilty, that would have incensed me: and, if not
  • confessedly guilty, such unsatisfactory declarations as still would have
  • kept my mind doubtful and uneasy; and would, upon every new offence that
  • he might give me, sharpen my disgust to me.
  • I have had the opportunity I waited for; and will lay before you the
  • result.
  • He was making his court to my good opinion in very polite terms, and
  • with great seriousness lamenting that he had lost it; declaring, that he
  • knew not how he had deserved to do so; attributing to me an indifference
  • to him, that seemed, to his infinite concern, hourly to increase, And
  • he besought me to let him know my whole mind, that he might have an
  • opportunity either to confess his faults and amend them, or clear his
  • conduct to my satisfaction, and thereby entitle himself to a greater
  • share of my confidence.
  • I answered him with quickness--Then, Mr. Lovelace, I will tell you one
  • thing with a frankness, that is, perhaps, more suitable to my character
  • than to yours, [He hoped not, he said,] which gives me a very bad
  • opinion of you, as a designing, artful man.
  • I am all attention, Madam.
  • I never can think tolerably of you, while the noise and voice I heard at
  • the garden-door, which put me into the terror you took so much advantage
  • of, remains unaccounted for. Tell me fairly, tell me candidly, the
  • whole of that circumstance; and of your dealings with that wicked Joseph
  • Leman; and, according to your explicitness in this particular, I shall
  • form a judgment of your future professions.
  • I will, without reserve, my dearest life, said he, tell you the whole;
  • and hope that my sincerity in the relation will atone for any thing you
  • may think wrong in the fact.
  • 'I knew nothing, said he, of this man, this Leman, and should have
  • scorned a resort to so low a method as bribing the servant of any family
  • to let me into the secrets of that family, if I had not detected him
  • in attempting to corrupt a servant of mine, to inform him of all my
  • motions, of all my supposed intrigues, and, in short, of every action
  • of my private life, as well as of my circumstances and engagements; and
  • this for motives too obvious to be dwelt upon.
  • 'My servant told me of his offers, and I ordered him, unknown to the
  • fellow, to let me hear a conversation that was to pass between them.
  • 'In the midst of it, and just as he had made an offer of money for a
  • particular piece of intelligence, promising more when procured, I broke
  • in upon them, and by bluster, calling for a knife to cut off his ears
  • (one of which I took hold of) in order to make a present of it, as I
  • said, to his employers, I obliged him to tell me who they were.
  • 'Your brother, Madam, and your uncle Antony, he named.
  • 'It was not difficult, when I had given him my pardon on naming them,
  • (after I had set before him the enormity of the task he had undertaken,
  • and the honourableness of my intentions to your dear self,) to prevail
  • upon him, by a larger reward, to serve me; since, at the same time, he
  • might preserve the favour of your uncle and brother, as I desired to
  • know nothing but what related to myself and to you, in order to guard us
  • both against the effects of an ill-will, which all his fellow-servants,
  • as well as himself, as he acknowledged, thought undeserved.
  • 'By this means, I own to you, Madam, I frequently turned his principals
  • about upon a pivot of my own, unknown to themselves: and the fellow, who
  • is always calling himself a plain man, and boasting of his conscience,
  • was the easier, as I condescended frequently to assure him of
  • my honourable views; and as he knew that the use I made of his
  • intelligence, in all likelihood, prevented fatal mischiefs.
  • 'I was the more pleased with his services, as (let me acknowledge
  • to you, Madam) they procured to you, unknown to yourself, a safe and
  • uninterrupted egress (which perhaps would not otherwise have been
  • continued to you so long as it was) to the garden and wood-house: for he
  • undertook, to them, to watch all your motions: and the more cheerfully,
  • (for the fellow loves you,) as it kept off the curiosity of others.'*
  • * See Vol.II. Letter XXXVI.
  • So, my dear, it comes out, that I myself was obliged to this deep
  • contriver.
  • I sat in silent astonishment; and thus he went on.
  • 'As to the circumstance, for which you think so hardly of me, I do
  • freely confess, that having a suspicion that you would revoke your
  • intention of getting away, and in that case apprehending that we should
  • not have the time together that was necessary for that purpose; I had
  • ordered him to keep off every body he could keep off, and to be himself
  • within a view of the garden-door; for I was determined, if possible, to
  • induce you to adhere to your resolution.'--
  • But pray, Sir, interrupting him, how came you to apprehend that I should
  • revoke my intention? I had indeed deposited a letter to that purpose;
  • but you had it not: and how, as I had reserved to myself the privilege
  • of a revocation, did you know, but I might have prevailed upon my
  • friends, and so have revoked upon good grounds?
  • 'I will be very ingenuous, Madam--You had made me hope that if you
  • changed your mind, you would give me a meeting to apprize me of the
  • reasons for it. I went to the loose bricks, and I saw the letter there:
  • and as I knew your friends were immovably fixed in their schemes, I
  • doubted not but the letter was to revoke or suspend your resolution; and
  • probably to serve instead of a meeting too. I therefore let it lie, that
  • if you did revoke, you might be under the necessity of meeting me for
  • the sake of the expectation you had given me: and as I came prepared, I
  • was resolved, pardon me, Madam, whatever were your intentions, that you
  • should not go back. Had I taken your letter I must have been determined
  • by the contents of it, for the present at least: but not having
  • received it, and you having reason to think I wanted not resolution in
  • a situation so desperate, to make your friends a personal visit, I
  • depended upon the interview you had bid me hope for.'
  • Wicked wretch, said I; it is my grief, that I gave you opportunity to
  • take so exact a measure of my weakness!--But would you have presumed to
  • visit the family, had I not met you?
  • Indeed I would. I had some friends in readiness, who were to have
  • accompanied me to them. And had your father refused to give me audience,
  • I would have taken my friends with me to Solmes.
  • And what did you intend to do to Mr. Solmes?
  • Not the least hurt, had the man been passive.
  • But had he not been passive, as you call it, what would you have done to
  • Mr. Solmes?
  • He was loth, he said to tell me--yet not the least hurt to his person.
  • I repeated my question.
  • If he must tell me, he only proposed to carry off the poor fellow, and
  • to hide him for a month or two. And this he would have done, let what
  • would have been the consequence.
  • Was ever such a wretch heard of!--I sighed from the bottom of my heart;
  • but bid him proceed from the part I had interrupted him at.
  • 'I ordered the fellow, as I told you, Madam, said he, to keep within
  • view of the garden-door: and if he found any parley between us, and any
  • body coming (before you could retreat undiscovered) whose coming might
  • be attended with violent effects, he should cry out; and this not only
  • in order to save himself from their suspicions of him, but to give me
  • warning to make off, and, if possible, to induce you (I own it, Madam)
  • to go off with me, according to your own appointment. And I hope all
  • circumstances considered, and the danger I was in of losing you for
  • ever, that the acknowledgement of that contrivance, or if you had not
  • met me, that upon Solmes, will not procure me your hatred: for, had they
  • come as I expected as well as you, what a despicable wretch had I been,
  • could I have left you to the insults of a brother and other of your
  • family, whose mercy was cruelty when they had not the pretence with
  • which this detected interview would have furnished them!'
  • What a wretch! said I.--But if, Sir, taking your own account of this
  • strange matter to be fact, any body were coming, how happened it, that I
  • saw only that man Leman (I thought it was he) out at the door, and at a
  • distance, look after us?
  • Very lucky! said he, putting his hand first in one pocket, then in
  • another--I hope I have not thrown it away--it is, perhaps, in the coat
  • I had on yesterday--little did I think it would be necessary to be
  • produced--but I love to come to a demonstration whenever I can--I may
  • be giddy--I may be heedless. I am indeed--but no man, as to you, Madam,
  • ever had a sincerer heart.
  • He then stepping to the parlour-door, called his servant to bring him
  • the coat he had on yesterday.
  • The servant did. And in the pocket, rumpled up as a paper he regarded
  • not, he pulled out a letter, written by that Joseph, dated Monday night;
  • in which 'he begs pardon for crying out so soon--says, That his fears of
  • being discovered to act on both sides, had made him take the rushing of
  • a little dog (that always follows him) through the phyllirea-hedge, for
  • Betty's being at hand, or some of his masters: and that when he found
  • his mistake, he opened the door by his own key (which the contriving
  • wretch confessed he had furnished him with) and inconsiderately ran out
  • in a hurry, to have apprized him that his crying out was owing to his
  • fright only:' and he added, 'that they were upon the hunt for me, by the
  • time he returned.*
  • * See his Letter to Joseph Leman, Vol.III. No.III. towards the end, where
  • he tells him, he would contrive for him a letter of this nature to copy.
  • I shook my head--Deep! deep! deep! said I, at the best!--O Mr. Lovelace!
  • God forgive and reform you!--But you are, I see plainly, (upon the whole
  • of your own account,) a very artful, a very designing man.
  • Love, my dearest life, is ingenious. Night and day have I racked my
  • stupid brain [O Sir, thought I, not stupid! 'Twere well perhaps if it
  • were] to contrive methods to prevent the sacrifice designed to be made
  • of you, and the mischief that must have ensued upon it: so little hold
  • in your affections: such undeserved antipathy from your friends: so much
  • danger of losing you for ever from both causes. I have not had for the
  • whole fortnight before last Monday, half an hour's rest at a time. And
  • I own to you, Madam, that I should never have forgiven myself, had I
  • omitted any contrivance or forethought that would have prevented your
  • return without me.
  • Again I blamed myself for meeting him: and justly; for there were
  • many chances to one, that I had not met him. And if I had not, all his
  • fortnight's contrivances, as to me, would have come to nothing; and,
  • perhaps, I might nevertheless have escaped Solmes.
  • Yet, had he resolved to come to Harlowe-place with his friends, and been
  • insulted, as he certainly would have been, what mischiefs might have
  • followed!
  • But his resolutions to run away with and to hide the poor Solmes for
  • a month or so, O my dear! what a wretch have I let run away with me,
  • instead of Solmes!
  • I asked him, if he thought such enormities as these, such defiances of
  • the laws of society, would have passed unpunished?
  • He had the assurance to say, with one of his usual gay airs, That he
  • should by this means have disappointed his enemies, and saved me from a
  • forced marriage. He had no pleasure in such desperate pushes. Solmes
  • he would not have personally hurt. He must have fled his country, for a
  • time at least: and, truly, if he had been obliged to do so, (as all
  • his hopes of my favour must have been at an end,) he would have had a
  • fellow-traveller of his own sex out of our family, whom I little thought
  • of.
  • Was ever such a wretch!--To be sure he meant my brother!
  • And such, Sir, said I, in high resentment, are the uses you make of your
  • corrupt intelligencer--
  • My corrupt intelligencer, Madam! interrupted he, He is to this hour your
  • brother's as well as mine. By what I have ingenuously told you, you may
  • see who began this corruption. Let me assure you, Madam, that there are
  • many free things which I have been guilty of as reprisals, in which I
  • would not have been the aggressor.
  • All that I shall further say on this head, Mr. Lovelace, is this: that
  • as this vile double-faced wretch has probably been the cause of great
  • mischief on both sides, and still continues, as you own, his wicked
  • practices, I think it would be but just, to have my friends apprized
  • what a creature he is whom some of them encourage.
  • What you please, Madam, as to that--my service, as well as your
  • brother's is now almost over for him. The fellow has made a good hand of
  • it. He does not intend to stay long in his place. He is now actually in
  • treaty for an inn, which will do his business for life. I can tell
  • you further, that he makes love to your sister's Betty: and that by my
  • advice. They will be married when he is established. An innkeeper's
  • wife is every man's mistress; and I have a scheme in my head to set some
  • engines at work to make her repent her saucy behaviour to you to the
  • last day of her life.
  • What a wicked schemer you are, Sir!--Who shall avenge upon you the still
  • greater evils which you have been guilty of? I forgive Betty with all
  • my heart. She was not my servant; and but too probably, in what she did,
  • obeyed the commands of her to whom she owed duty, better than I obeyed
  • those to whom I owed more.
  • No matter for that, the wretch said [To be sure, my dear, he must
  • design to make me afraid of him]: The decree was gone out--Betty must
  • smart--smart too by an act of her own choice. He loved, he said, to
  • make bad people their own punishers.--Nay, Madam, excuse me; but if the
  • fellow, if this Joseph, in your opinion, deserves punishment, mine is
  • a complicated scheme; a man and his wife cannot well suffer separately,
  • and it may come home to him too.
  • I had no patience with him. I told him so. I see, Sir, said I, I see,
  • what a man I am with. Your rattle warns me of the snake.--And away I
  • flung: leaving him seemingly vexed, and in confusion.
  • LETTER XXII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE
  • My plain-dealing with Mr. Lovelace, on seeing him again, and the free
  • dislike I expressed to his ways, his manners, and his contrivances, as
  • well as to his speeches, have obliged him to recollect himself a little.
  • He will have it, that the menaces which he threw out just now against my
  • brother and Mr. Solmes, are only the effect of an unmeaning pleasantry.
  • He has too great a stake in his country, he says, to be guilty of such
  • enterprises as should lay him under a necessity of quitting it for ever.
  • Twenty things, particularly, he says, he has suffered Joseph Leman to
  • tell him of, that were not, and could not be true, in order to make
  • himself formidable in some people's eyes, and this purely with a view
  • to prevent mischief. He is unhappy, as far as he knows, in a quick
  • invention; in hitting readily upon expedients; and many things are
  • reported of him which he never said, and many which he never did, and
  • others which he has only talked of, (as just now,) and which he has
  • forgot as soon as the words have passed his lips.
  • This may be so, in part, my dear. No one man so young could be so
  • wicked as he has been reported to be. But such a man at the head of
  • such wretches as he is said to have at his beck, all men of fortune and
  • fearlessness, and capable of such enterprises as I have unhappily found
  • him capable of, what is not to be apprehended from him!
  • His carelessness about his character is one of his excuses: a very
  • bad one. What hope can a woman have of a man who values not his own
  • reputation?--These gay wretches may, in mixed conversation, divert for
  • an hour, or so: but the man of probity, the man of virtue, is the man
  • that is to be the partner for life. What woman, who could help it, would
  • submit it to the courtesy of a wretch, who avows a disregard to all
  • moral sanctions, whether he will perform his part of the matrimonial
  • obligation, and treat her with tolerable politeness?
  • With these notions, and with these reflections, to be thrown upon such a
  • man myself!--Would to Heaven--But what avail wishes now?--To whom can I
  • fly, if I would fly from him?
  • LETTER XXIII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. FRIDAY, APRIL 14.
  • Never did I hear of such a parcel of foolish toads as these
  • Harlowes!--Why, Belford, the lady must fall, if every hair of her head
  • were a guardian angel, unless they were to make a visible appearance for
  • her, or, snatching her from me at unawares, would draw her after them
  • into the starry regions.
  • All I had to apprehend, was, that a daughter, so reluctantly carried
  • off, would offer terms to her father, and would be accepted upon a
  • mutual concedence; they to give up Solmes; she to give up me. And so I
  • was contriving to do all I could to guard against the latter. But they
  • seem resolved to perfect the work they have begun.
  • What stupid creatures are there in the world! This foolish brother not
  • to know, that he who would be bribed to undertake a base thing by one,
  • would be over-bribed to retort the baseness; especially when he could be
  • put into the way to serve himself by both!--Thou, Jack, wilt never know
  • one half of my contrivances.
  • He here relates the conversation between him and the Lady (upon the
  • subject of the noise and exclamations his agent made at the garden-
  • door) to the same effect as in the Lady's Letter, No. XXI. and
  • proceeds exulting:
  • What a capacity for glorious mischief has thy friend!--Yet how near the
  • truth all of it! The only derivation, my asserting that the fellow
  • made the noises by mistake, and through fright, and not by previous
  • direction: had she known the precise truth, her anger, to be so taken
  • in, would never have let her forgive me.
  • Had I been a military hero, I should have made gunpowder useless; for
  • I should have blown up all my adversaries by dint of stratagem, turning
  • their own devices upon them.
  • But these fathers and mothers--Lord help 'em!--Were not the powers of
  • nature stronger than those of discretion, and were not that busy dea
  • bona to afford her genial aids, till tardy prudence qualified parents to
  • manage their future offspring, how few people would have children!
  • James and Arabella may have their motives; but what can be said for a
  • father acting as this father has acted? What for a mother? What for
  • an aunt? What for uncles?--Who can have patience with such fellows and
  • fellowesses?
  • Soon will the fair one hear how high their foolish resentments run
  • against her: and then will she, it is to be hoped, have a little more
  • confidence in me. Then will I be jealous that she loves me not with the
  • preference my heart builds upon: then will I bring her to confessions
  • of grateful love: and then will I kiss her when I please; and not stand
  • trembling, as now, like a hungry hound, who sees a delicious morsel
  • within his reach, (the froth hanging upon his vermilion jaws,) yet dares
  • not leap at it for his life.
  • But I was originally a bashful mortal. Indeed I am bashful still with
  • regard to this lady--Bashful, yet know the sex so well!--But that indeed
  • is the reason that I know it so well:--For, Jack, I have had abundant
  • cause, when I have looked into myself, by way of comparison with the
  • other sex, to conclude that a bashful man has a good deal of the soul of
  • a woman; and so, like Tiresias, can tell what they think, and what they
  • drive at, as well as themselves.
  • The modest ones and I, particularly, are pretty much upon a par. The
  • difference between us is only, what they think, I act. But the immodest
  • ones out-do the worst of us by a bar's length, both in thinking and
  • acting.
  • One argument let me plead in proof of my assertion; That even we rakes
  • love modesty in a woman; while the modest woman, as they are accounted,
  • (that is to say, the slyest,) love, and generally prefer, an impudent
  • man. Whence can this be, but from a likeness in nature? And this made
  • the poet say, That ever woman is a rake in her heart. It concerns them,
  • by their actions, to prove the contrary, if they can.
  • Thus have I read in some of the philosophers, That no wickedness is
  • comparable to the wickedness of a woman.* Canst thou tell me, Jack, who
  • says this? Was it Socrates? for he had the devil of a wife--Or who? Or
  • is it Solomon?--King Solomon--Thou remembrest to have read of such a
  • king, dost thou not? SOL-O-MON, I learned, in my infant state [my mother
  • was a good woman] to answer, when asked, Who was the wisest man?--But my
  • indulgent questioner never asked me how he came by the uninspired part
  • of his wisdom.
  • * Mr. Lovelace is as much out in his conjecture of Solomon, as of
  • Socrates. The passage is in Ecclesiasticus, chap. xxv.
  • Come, come, Jack, you and I are not so very bad, could we but stop where
  • we are.
  • He then gives the particulars of what passed between him and the Lady on
  • his menaces relating to her brother and Mr. Solmes, and of his design
  • to punish Betty Barnes and Joseph Leman.
  • LETTER XXIV
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE FRIDAY, APR. 14.
  • I will now give you the particulars of a conversation that has just
  • passed between Mr. Lovelace and me, which I must call agreeable.
  • It began with his telling me, that he had just received intelligence
  • that my friends were on a sudden come to a resolution to lay aside all
  • thoughts of pursuing me, or of getting me back: and that therefore he
  • attended me to know of my pleasure; and what I would do, or have him do?
  • I told him, that I would have him leave me directly; and that, when it
  • was known to every body that I was absolutely independent of him, it
  • would pass, that I had left my father's house because of my brother's
  • ill usage of me: which was a plea that I might make with justice, and to
  • the excuse of my father, as well as of myself.
  • He mildly replied, that if we could be certain that my relations would
  • adhere to this their new resolution, he could have no objection, since
  • such was my pleasure; but, as he was well assured that they had taken it
  • only from apprehensions, that a more active one might involve my brother
  • (who had breathed nothing but revenge) in some fatal misfortune, there
  • was too much reason to believe that they would resume their former
  • purpose the moment they should think they safely might.
  • This, Madam, said he, is a risque I cannot run. You would think it
  • strange if I could. And yet, as soon as I knew they had so given out, I
  • thought it proper to apprize you of it, and take your commands upon it.
  • Let me hear, said I, (willing to try if he had any particular view,)
  • what you think most advisable?
  • 'Tis very easy to say that, if I durst--if I might not offend you--if it
  • were not to break conditions that shall be inviolable with me.
  • Say then, Sir, what you would say. I can approve or disapprove, as I
  • think fit.
  • Had not the man a fine opportunity here to speak out?--He had. And thus
  • he used it.
  • To wave, Madam, what I would say till I have more courage to speak
  • out [More courage,--Mr. Lovelace more courage, my dear!]--I will only
  • propose what I think will be most agreeable to you--suppose, if you
  • choose not to go to Lady Betty's, that you take a turn cross the country
  • to Windsor?
  • Why to Windsor?
  • Because it is a pleasant place: because it lies in the way either to
  • Berkshire, to Oxford, or to London: Berkshire, where Lord M. is at
  • present: Oxford, in the neighbourhood of which lives Lady Betty: London,
  • whither you may retire at your pleasure: or, if you will have it so,
  • whither I may go, you staying at Windsor; and yet be within an easy
  • distance of you, if any thing should happen, or if your friends should
  • change their new-taken resolution.
  • This proposal, however, displeased me not. But I said, my only objection
  • was, the distance of Windsor from Miss Howe, of whom I should be glad to
  • be always within two or three hours reach of by messenger, if possible.
  • If I had thoughts of any other place than Windsor, or nearer to
  • Miss Howe, he wanted but my commands, and would seek for proper
  • accommodations: but, fix as I pleased, farther or nearer, he had
  • servants, and they had nothing else to do but to obey me.
  • A grateful thing then he named to me--To send for my Hannah, as soon as
  • I shall be fixed;* unless I would choose one of the young gentlewomen
  • here to attend me; both of whom, as I had acknowledged, were very
  • obliging; and he knew I had generosity enough to make it worth their
  • while.
  • * See his reasons for proposing Windsor, Letter XXV.--and her Hannah,
  • Letter XXVI.
  • This of Hannah, he might see, I took very well. I said I had thoughts
  • of sending for her, as soon as I got to more convenient lodgings. As to
  • these young gentlewomen, it were pity to break in upon that usefulness
  • which the whole family were of to each other; each having her proper
  • part, and performing it with an agreeable alacrity: insomuch, that I
  • liked them all so well, that I could even pass my days among them, were
  • he to leave me; by which means the lodgings would be more convenient to
  • me than now they were.
  • He need not repeat his objections to this place, he said: but as to
  • going to Windsor, or wherever else I thought fit, or as to his personal
  • attendance, or leaving me, he would assure me (he very agreeably said)
  • that I could propose nothing in which I thought my reputation, and even
  • my punctilio, concerned, that he would not cheerfully come into. And
  • since I was so much taken up with my pen, he would instantly order his
  • horse to be got ready, and would set out.
  • Not to be off my caution. Have you any acquaintance at Windsor? said
  • I.--Know you of any convenient lodgings there?
  • Except the forest, replied he, where I have often hunted, I know the
  • least of Windsor of any place so noted and so pleasant. Indeed I have
  • not a single acquaintance there.
  • Upon the whole, I told him, that I thought his proposal of Windsor, not
  • amiss; and that I would remove thither, if I could get a lodging only
  • for myself, and an upper chamber for Hannah; for that my stock of money
  • was but small, as was easy to be conceived and I should be very loth to
  • be obliged to any body. I added, that the sooner I removed the better;
  • for that then he could have no objection to go to London, or Berkshire,
  • as he pleased: and I should let every body know my independence.
  • He again proposed himself, in very polite terms, for my banker. But I,
  • as civilly, declined his offer.
  • This conversation was to be, all of it, in the main, agreeable. He asked
  • whether I would choose to lodge in the town of Windsor, or out of it?
  • As near the castle, I said, as possible, for the convenience of going
  • constantly to the public worship; an opportunity I had been very long
  • deprived of.
  • He should be very glad, he told me, if he could procure me
  • accommodations in any one of the canon's houses; which he imagined would
  • be more agreeable to me than any other, on many accounts. And as he
  • could depend upon my promise, Never to have any other man but himself,
  • on the condition to which he had so cheerfully subscribed, he should be
  • easy; since it was now his part, in earnest, to set about recommending
  • himself to my favour, by the only way he knew it would be done. Adding,
  • with a very serious air--I am but a young man, Madam; but I have run a
  • long course: let not your purity of mind incline you to despise me for
  • the acknowledgement. It is high time to be weary of it, and to reform;
  • since, like Solomon, I can say, There is nothing new under the sun: but
  • that it is my belief, that a life of virtue can afford such pleasures,
  • on reflection, as will be for ever blooming, for ever new!
  • I was agreeably surprised. I looked at him, I believe, as if I doubted
  • my ears and my eyes. His aspect however became his words.
  • I expressed my satisfaction in terms so agreeable to him, that he said,
  • he found a delight in this early dawning of a better day to him, and in
  • my approbation, which he had never received from the success of the most
  • favoured of his pursuits.
  • Surely, my dear, the man must be in earnest. He could not have said
  • this; he could not have thought it, had he not. What followed made me
  • still readier to believe him.
  • In the midst of my wild vagaries, said he, I have ever preserved a
  • reverence for religion, and for religious men. I always called another
  • cause, when any of my libertine companions, in pursuance of Lord
  • Shaftesbury's test (which is a part of the rake's creed, and what I
  • may call the whetstone of infidelity,) endeavoured to turn the sacred
  • subject into ridicule. On this very account I have been called by good
  • men of the clergy, who nevertheless would have it that I was a practical
  • rake, the decent rake: and indeed I had too much pride in my shame, to
  • disown the name of rake.
  • This, Madam, I am the readier to confess, as it may give you hope, that
  • the generous task of my reformation, which I flatter myself you will
  • have the goodness to undertake, will not be so difficult a one as you
  • may have imagined; for it has afforded me some pleasure in my retired
  • hours, when a temporary remorse has struck me for any thing I have done
  • amiss, that I should one day delight in another course of life: for,
  • unless we can, I dare say, no durable good is to be expected from the
  • endeavour. Your example, Madam, must do all, must confirm all.*
  • * That he proposes one day to reform, and that he has sometimes good
  • motions, see Vol.I. Letter XXXIV.
  • The divine grace, or favour, Mr. Lovelace, must do all, and confirm
  • all. You know not how much you please me, that I can talk to you in this
  • dialect.
  • And I then thought of his generosity to his pretty rustic; and of his
  • kindness to his tenants.
  • Yet, Madam, be pleased to remember one thing; reformation cannot be a
  • sudden work. I have infinite vivacity: it is that which runs away with
  • me. Judge, dearest Madam, by what I am going to confess, that I have
  • a prodigious way to journey on, before a good person will think me
  • tolerable; since though I have read in some of our perfectionists enough
  • to make a better man than myself either run into madness or despair
  • about the grace you mention, yet I cannot enter into the meaning of the
  • word, nor into the modus of its operation. Let me not then be checked,
  • when I mention your example for my visible reliance; and instead of
  • using such words, till I can better understand them, suppose all the
  • rest included in the profession of that reliance.
  • I told him, that, although I was somewhat concerned at his expression,
  • and surprised at so much darkness, as (for want of another word) I would
  • call it, in a man of his talents and learning, yet I was pleased with
  • his ingenuousness. I wished him to encourage this way of thinking. I
  • told him, that his observation, that no durable good was to be expected
  • from any new course, where there was not a delight taken in it, was just;
  • but that the delight would follow by use.
  • And twenty things of this sort I even preached to him; taking care,
  • however, not to be tedious, nor to let my expanded heart give him a
  • contracted or impatient blow. And, indeed, he took visible pleasure in
  • what I said, and even hung upon the subject, when I, to try him, once
  • or twice, seemed ready to drop it: and proceeded to give me a most
  • agreeable instance, that he could at times think both deeply and
  • seriously.--Thus it was.
  • He was once, he said, dangerously wounded in a duel, in the left arm,
  • baring it, to shew me the scar: that this (notwithstanding a great
  • effusion of blood, it being upon an artery) was followed by a violent
  • fever, which at last fixed upon his spirits; and that so obstinately,
  • that neither did he desire life, nor his friends expect it: that, for a
  • month together, his heart, as he thought, was so totally changed, that
  • he despised his former courses, and particularly that rashness which had
  • brought him to the state he was in, and his antagonist (who, however,
  • was the aggressor) into a much worse: that in this space he had thought
  • which at times still gave him pleasure to reflect upon: and although
  • these promising prospects changed, as he recovered health and spirits,
  • yet he parted with them with so much reluctance, that he could not help
  • shewing it in a copy of verses, truly blank ones, he said; some of which
  • he repeated, and (advantaged by the grace which he gives to every thing
  • he repeats) I thought them very tolerable ones; the sentiments, however,
  • much graver than I expected from him.
  • He has promised me a copy of the lines; and then I shall judge better
  • of their merit; and so shall you. The tendency of them was, 'That, since
  • sickness only gave him a proper train of thinking, and that his restored
  • health brought with it a return to his evil habits, he was ready to
  • renounce those gifts of nature for those of contemplation.'
  • He farther declared, that although these good motions went off (as
  • he had owned) on his recovery, yet he had better hopes now, from
  • the influence of my example, and from the reward before him, if he
  • persevered: and that he was the more hopeful that he should, as his
  • present resolution was made in a full tide of health and spirits; and
  • when he had nothing to wish for but perseverance, to entitle himself to
  • my favour.
  • I will not throw cold water, Mr. Lovelace, said I, on a rising flame:
  • but look to it! for I shall endeavour to keep you up to this spirit. I
  • shall measure your value of me by this test: and I would have you bear
  • those charming lines of Mr. Rowe for ever in your mind; you, who have,
  • by your own confession, so much to repent of; and as the scar, indeed,
  • you shewed me, will, in one instance, remind you to your dying day.
  • The lines, my dear, are from the poet's Ulysses; you have heard me often
  • admire them; and I repeated them to him:
  • Habitual evils change not on a sudden:
  • But many days must pass, and many sorrows;
  • Conscious remorse and anguish must be felt,
  • To curb desire, to break the stubborn will,
  • And work a second nature in the soul,
  • Ere Virtue can resume the place she lost:
  • 'Tis else dissimulation--
  • He had often read these lines, he said; but never tasted them
  • before.--By his soul, (the unmortified creature swore,) and as he hoped
  • to be saved, he was now in earnest in his good resolutions. He had said,
  • before I repeated those lines from Rowe, that habitual evils could
  • not be changed on a sudden: but he hoped he should not be thought a
  • dissembler, if he were not enabled to hold his good purposes; since
  • ingratitude and dissimulation were vices that of all others he abhorred.
  • May you ever abhor them, said I. They are the most odious of all vices.
  • I hope, my dear Miss Howe, I shall not have occasion, in my future
  • letters, to contradict these promising appearances. Should I have
  • nothing on his side to combat with, I shall be very far from being
  • happy, from the sense of my fault, and the indignation of all my
  • relations. So shall not fail of condign punishment for it, from my
  • inward remorse on account of my forfeited character. But the least ray
  • of hope could not dart in upon me, without my being willing to lay hold
  • of the very first opportunity to communicate it to you, who take so
  • generous a share in all my concerns.
  • Nevertheless, you may depend upon it, my dear, that these agreeable
  • assurances, and hopes of his begun reformation, shall not make me forget
  • my caution. Not that I think, at worst, any more than you, that he dare
  • to harbour a thought injurious to my honour: but he is very various,
  • and there is an apparent, and even an acknowledged unfixedness in his
  • temper, which at times gives me uneasiness. I am resolved therefore to
  • keep him at a distance from my person and my thoughts, as much as I can:
  • for whether all men are or are not encroachers, I am sure Mr. Lovelace
  • is one.
  • Hence it is that I have always cast about, and will continue to cast
  • about, what ends he may have in view from this proposal, or from that
  • report. In a word, though hopeful of the best, I will always be fearful
  • of the worst, in every thing that admits of doubt. For it is better, in
  • such a situation as mine, to apprehend without cause, than to subject
  • myself to surprise for want of forethought.
  • Mr. Lovelace is gone to Windsor, having left two servants to attend me.
  • He purposes to be back to-morrow.
  • I have written to my aunt Hervey, to supplicate her interest in my
  • behalf, for my clothes, books, and money; signifying to her, 'That, if I
  • may be restored to the favour of my family, and allowed a negative only,
  • as to any man who may be proposed to me, and be used like a daughter,
  • a niece, and a sister, I will stand by my offer to live single,
  • and submit, as I ought, to a negative from my father.' Intimating,
  • nevertheless, 'That it were perhaps better, after the usage I have
  • received from my brother and sister, that I may be allowed to be distant
  • from them, as well for their sakes as for my own,' (meaning, as I
  • suppose it will be taken, at my Dairy-house)--offering, 'to take my
  • father's directions as to the manner I shall live in, the servants I
  • shall have, and in every thing that shall shew the dutiful subordination
  • to which I am willing to conform.'
  • My aunt will know by my letter to my sister how to direct to me, if she
  • be permitted to favour me with a line.
  • I am equally earnest with her in this letter, as I was with my sister
  • in that I wrote to her, to obtain for me a speedy reconciliation, that I
  • not be further precipitated; intimating, 'That, by a timely lenity, all
  • may pass for a misunderstanding only, which, otherwise, will be thought
  • equally disgraceful to them, and to me; appealing to her for the
  • necessity I was under to do what I did.'--
  • Had I owned that I was overreached, and forced away against my
  • intention, might they not, as a proof of the truth of my assertion, have
  • insisted upon my immediate return to them? And, if I did not return,
  • would they not have reason to suppose, that I had now altered my mind
  • (if such were my mind) or had not the power to return?--Then were I
  • to have gone back, must it not have been upon their own terms? No
  • conditioning with a father! is a maxim with my father, and with my
  • uncles. If I would have gone, Mr. Lovelace would have opposed it. So I
  • must have been under his controul, or have run away from him, as it is
  • supposed I did to him, from Harlowe-place. In what a giddy light would
  • this have made me appear!--Had he constrained me, could I have
  • appealed to my friends for their protection, without risking the very
  • consequences, to prevent which (setting up myself presumptuously, as a
  • middle person between flaming spirits,) I have run into such terrible
  • inconveniencies.
  • But, after all, must it not give me great anguish of mind, to be forced
  • to sanctify, as I may say, by my seeming after-approbation, a measure
  • I was so artfully tricked into, and which I was so much resolved not to
  • take?
  • How one evil brings on another, is sorrowfully witnessed to by
  • Your ever-obliged and affectionate, CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXV
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. FRIDAY, APR. 14.
  • Thou hast often reproached me, Jack, with my vanity, without
  • distinguishing the humourous turn that accompanies it; and for which, at
  • the same time that thou robbest me of the merit of it thou admirest
  • me highly. Envy gives thee the indistinction: Nature inspires the
  • admiration: unknown to thyself it inspires it. But thou art too clumsy
  • and too short-sighted a mortal, to know how to account even for the
  • impulses by which thou thyself art moved.
  • Well, but this acquits thee not of my charge of vanity, Lovelace,
  • methinks thou sayest.
  • And true thou sayest: for I have indeed a confounded parcel of it. But,
  • if men of parts may not be allowed to be in vain, who should! and yet,
  • upon second thoughts, men of parts have the least occasion of any to be
  • vain; since the world (so few of them are there in it) are ready to find
  • them out, and extol them. If a fool can be made sensible that there is
  • a man who has more understanding than himself, he is ready enough to
  • conclude, that such a man must be a very extraordinary creature.
  • And what, at this rate, is the general conclusion to be drawn from the
  • premises?--Is it not, That no man ought to be vain? But what if a man
  • can't help it!--This, perhaps, may be my case. But there is nothing upon
  • which I value myself so much as upon my inventions. And for the soul of
  • me, I cannot help letting it be seen, that I do. Yet this vanity may be
  • a mean, perhaps, to overthrow me with this sagacious lady.
  • She is very apprehensive of me I see. I have studied before her and Miss
  • Howe, as often as I have been with them, to pass for a giddy thoughtless
  • creature. What a folly then to be so expatiatingly sincere, in my answer
  • to her home put, upon the noises within the garden?--But such success
  • having attended that contrivance [success, Jack, has blown many a man
  • up!] my cursed vanity got uppermost, and kept down my caution. The
  • menace to have secreted Solmes, and that other, that I had thoughts to
  • run away with her foolish brother, and of my project to revenge her upon
  • the two servants, so much terrified the dear creature, that I was forced
  • to sit down to muse after means to put myself right in her opinion.
  • Some favourable incidents, at the time, tumbled in from my agent in
  • her family; at least such as I was determined to make favourable: and
  • therefore I desired admittance; and this before she could resolve any
  • thing against me; that is to say, while her admiration of my intrepidity
  • kept resolution in suspense.
  • Accordingly, I prepared myself to be all gentleness, all obligingness,
  • all serenity; and as I have now and then, and always had, more or less,
  • good motions pop up in my mind, I encouraged and collected every thing
  • of this sort that I had ever had from novicehood to maturity, [not long
  • in recollecting, Jack,] in order to bring the dear creature into
  • good humour with me:* And who knows, thought I, if I can hold it, and
  • proceed, but I may be able to lay a foundation fit to build my grand
  • scheme upon!--LOVE, thought I, is not naturally a doubter: FEAR is,
  • I will try to banish the latter: nothing then but love will remain.
  • CREDULITY is the God of Love's prime minister, and they never are
  • asunder.
  • * He had said, Letter XVIII. that he would make reformation
  • his stalking-horse, &c.
  • He then acquaints his friend with what passed between him
  • and the Lady, in relation to his advices from Harlowe-
  • place, and to his proposal about lodgings, pretty much to
  • the same purpose as in her preceding Letter.
  • When he cones to mention his proposal of the Windsor
  • lodgings, thus heexpresses himself:
  • Now, Belford, can it enter into thy leaden head, what I meant by this
  • proposal!--I know it cannot. And so I'll tell thee.
  • To leave her for a day or two, with a view to serve her by my absence,
  • would, as I thought, look like a confiding in her favour. I could not
  • think of leaving her, thou knowest, while I had reason to believe her
  • friends would pursue us; and I began to apprehend that she would suspect
  • that I made a pretence of that intentional pursuit to keep about her and
  • with her. But now that they had declared against it, and that they would
  • not receive her if she went back, (a declaration she had better hear
  • first from me, than from Miss Howe, or any other,) what should hinder me
  • from giving her this mark of my obedience; especially as I could leave
  • Will, who is a clever fellow, and can do any thing but write and spell,
  • and Lord M.'s Jonas (not as guards, to be sure, but as attendants only);
  • the latter to be dispatched to me occasionally by the former, whom I
  • could acquaint with my motions?
  • Then I wanted to inform myself, why I had not congratulatory letters
  • from Lady Sarah and Lady Betty, and from my cousins Montague, to whom I
  • had written, glorying in my beloved's escape; which letters, if properly
  • worded, might be made necessary to shew her as matters proceed.
  • As to Windsor, I had no design to carry her particularly thither: but
  • somewhere it was proper to name, as she condescended to ask my advice
  • about it. London, I durst not; but very cautiously; and so as to make it
  • her own option: for I must tell thee, that there is such a perverseness
  • in the sex, that when they ask your advice, they do it only to know your
  • opinion, that they may oppose it; though, had not the thing in question
  • been your choice, perhaps it had been theirs.
  • I could easily give reasons against Windsor, after I had pretended to
  • be there; and this would have looked the better, as it was a place of
  • my own nomination; and shewn her that I had no fixed scheme. Never was
  • there in woman such a sagacious, such an all-alive apprehension, as in
  • this. Yet it is a grievous thing to an honest man to be suspected.
  • Then, in my going or return, I can call upon Mrs. Greme. She and my
  • beloved had a great deal of talk together. If I knew what it was about;
  • and that either, upon their first acquaintance, was for benefiting
  • herself by the other; I might contrive to serve them both, without
  • hurting myself: for these are the most prudent ways of doing
  • friendships, and what are not followed by regrets, though the served
  • should prove ingrateful. Then Mrs. Greme corresponds by pen-and-ink with
  • her farmer-sister where we are: something may possibly arise that way,
  • either of a convenient nature, which I may pursue; or of an inconvenient
  • nature, which I may avoid.
  • Always be careful of back doors, is a maxim with me in all my exploits.
  • Whoever knows me, knows that I am no proud man. I can talk as familiarly
  • to servants as to principals, when I have a mind to make it worth their
  • while to oblige me in any thing. Then servants are but as the common
  • soldiers in an army, they do all the mischief frequently without malice,
  • and merely, good souls! for mischief-sake.
  • I am most apprehensive about Miss Howe. She has a confounded deal of
  • wit, and wants only a subject, to shew as much roguery: and should I
  • be outwitted with all my sententious boasting of conceit of my own
  • nostrum-mongership--[I love to plague thee, who art a pretender to
  • accuracy, and a surface-skimmer in learning, with out-of-the-way words
  • and phrases] I should certainly hang, drown, or shoot myself.
  • Poor Hickman! I pity him for the prospect he has with such a virago! But
  • the fellow's a fool, God wot! And now I think of it, it is absolutely
  • necessary for complete happiness in the married state, that one should
  • be a fool [an argument I once held with this very Miss Howe.] But then
  • the fool should know the other's superiority; otherwise the obstinate
  • one will disappoint the wise one.
  • But my agent Joseph has helped me to secure this quarter, as I have
  • hinted to thee more than once.
  • LETTER XXVI
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • But is it not a confounded thing that I cannot fasten an obligation upon
  • this proud beauty? I have two motives in endeavouring to prevail upon
  • her to accept of money and raiment from me: one; the real pleasure I
  • should have in the accommodating of the haughty maid; and to think there
  • was something near her, and upon her, that I could call mine: the other,
  • in order to abate her severity and humble her a little.
  • Nothing more effectually brings down a proud spirit, than a sense of
  • lying under pecuniary obligations. This has always made me solicitous
  • to avoid laying myself under any such: yet, sometimes, formerly, have
  • I been put to it, and cursed the tardy resolution of the quarterly
  • periods. And yet I ever made shift to avoid anticipation: I never would
  • eat the calf in the cow's belly, as Lord M.'s phrase is: for what is
  • that, but to hold our lands upon tenant-courtesy, the vilest of all
  • tenures? To be denied a fox-chace, for breaking down a fence upon my own
  • grounds? To be clamoured at for repairs studied for, rather than really
  • wanted? To be prated to by a bumpkin with his hat on, and his arms
  • folded, as if he defied your expectations of that sort; his foot firmly
  • fixed, as if upon his own ground, and you forced to take his arch leers,
  • and stupid gybes; he intimating, by the whole of his conduct, that he
  • had had it in his power to oblige you, and, if you behave civilly, may
  • oblige you again? I, who think I have a right to break every man's head
  • I pass by, if I like not his looks, to bear this!--No more could I do
  • it, then I could borrow of an insolent uncle, or inquisitive aunt, who
  • would thence think themselves entitled to have an account of all my life
  • and actions laid before them for their review and censure.
  • My charmer, I see, has a pride like my own: but she has no distinction
  • in her pride: nor knows the pretty fool that there is nothing nobler,
  • nothing more delightful, than for loves to be conferring and receiving
  • obligations from each other. In this very farm-yard, to give thee a
  • familiar instance, I have more than once seen this remark illustrated. A
  • strutting rascal of a cock have I beheld chuck, chuck, chuck, chuck-ing
  • his mistress to him, when he has found a single barley-corn, taking it
  • up with his bill, and letting it drop five or six times, still repeating
  • his chucking invitation: and when two or three of his feathered ladies
  • strive who shall be the first for it [O Jack! a cock is a grand signor
  • of a bird!] he directs the bill of the foremost to it; and when she has
  • got the dirty pearl, he struts over her with an erected crest, cling
  • round her with dropt wings, sweeping the dust in humble courtship: while
  • the obliged she, half-shy, half-willing, by her cowering tail, prepared
  • wings, yet seemingly affrighted eyes, and contracted neck, lets one see
  • that she knows the barley-corn was not all he called her for.
  • When he comes to that part of his narrative, where he
  • mentions of the proposing of the Lady's maid Hannah, or one
  • of the young Sorlings, to attend her, thus he writes:
  • Now, Belford, canst thou imagine what I meant by proposing Hannah, or
  • one of the girls here, for her attendant? I'll give thee a month to
  • guess.
  • Thou wilt not pretend to guess, thou say'st.
  • Well, then I'll tell thee.
  • Believing she would certainly propose to have that favourite wench about
  • her, as soon as she was a little settled, I had caused the girl to be
  • inquired after, with an intent to make interest, some how or other, that
  • a month's warning should be insisted on by her master or mistress, or by
  • some other means, which I had not determined upon, to prevent her coming
  • to her. But fortune fights for me. The wench is luckily ill; a violent
  • rheumatic disorder, which has obliged her to leave her place, confines
  • her to her chamber. Poor Hannah! How I pity the girl! These things are
  • very hard upon industrious servants!--I intend to make the poor wench a
  • small present on the occasion--I know it will oblige my charmer.
  • And so, Jack, pretending not to know any thing of the matter, I pressed
  • her to send for Hannah. She knew I had always a regard for this servant,
  • because of her honest love to her lady: but now I have greater regard
  • for her than ever. Calamity, though a poor servant's calamity, will
  • rather increase than diminish good will, with a truly generous master or
  • mistress.
  • As to one of the young Sorling's attendance, there was nothing at all
  • in proposing that; for if either of them had been chosen by her, and
  • permitted by the mother [two chances in that!] it would have been only
  • till I had fixed upon another. And, if afterwards they had been loth to
  • part, I could easily have given my beloved to a jealousy, which would
  • have done the business; or to the girl, who would have quitted her
  • country dairy, such a relish for a London one, and as would have made
  • it very convenient for her to fall in love with Will; or perhaps I could
  • have done still better for her with Lord M.'s chaplain, who is very
  • desirous of standing well with his lord's presumptive heir.
  • A blessing on thy honest heart, Lovelace! thou'lt say; for thou art for
  • providing for every body!
  • He gives an account of the serious part of their
  • conversation, with no great variation from the Lady's
  • account of it: and when he comes to that part of it, where
  • he bids her remember, that reformation cannot be a sudden
  • thing, he asks his friend:
  • Is not this fair play? Is it not dealing ingenuously? Then the
  • observation, I will be bold to say, is founded in truth and nature. But
  • there was a little touch of policy in it besides; that the lady, if I
  • should fly out again, should not think me too gross an hypocrite: for,
  • as I plainly told her, I was afraid, that my fits of reformation were
  • but fits and sallies; but I hoped her example would fix them into
  • habits. But it is so discouraging a thing to have my monitress so
  • very good!--I protest I know not how to look up at her! Now, as I am
  • thinking, if I could pull her down a little nearer to my own level;
  • that is to say, could prevail upon her to do something that would
  • argue imperfection, something to repent of; we should jog on much
  • more equally, and be better able to comprehend one another: and so the
  • comfort would be mutual, and the remorse not all on one side.
  • He acknowledges that he was greatly affected and pleased
  • with the Lady's serious arguments at the time: but even then
  • was apprehensive that his temper would not hold. Thus he
  • writes:
  • This lady says serious things in so agreeable a manner (and then her
  • voice is all harmony when she touches a subject she is pleased with)
  • that I could have listened to her for half a day together. But yet I am
  • afraid, if she falls, as they call it, she will lose a good deal of that
  • pathos, of that noble self-confidence, which gives a good person, as I
  • now see, a visible superiority over one not so good.
  • But, after all, Belford, I would fain know why people call such
  • free-livers as you and me hypocrites.--That's a word I hate; and should
  • take it very ill to be called by it. For myself, I have as good motions,
  • and, perhaps, have them as frequently as any body: all the business is,
  • they don't hold; or, to speak more in character, I don't take the care
  • some do to conceal my lapses.
  • LETTER XXVII
  • MISS HOWE, TO MIS CLARISSA HARLOWE SATURDAY, APRIL 15.
  • Though pretty much pressed in time, and oppressed by my mother's
  • watchfulness, I will write a few lines upon the new light that has
  • broken in upon your gentleman; and send it by a particular hand.
  • I know not what to think of him upon it. He talks well; but judge him
  • by Rowe's lines, he is certainly a dissembler, odious as the sin of
  • hypocrisy, and, as he says, that other of ingratitude, are to him.
  • And, pray, my dear, let me ask, could he have triumphed, as it is said
  • he has done, over so many of our sex, had he not been egregiously guilty
  • of both sins?
  • His ingenuousness is the thing that staggers me: yet is he cunning
  • enough to know, that whoever accuses him first, blunts the edge of an
  • adversary's accusation.
  • He is certainly a man of sense: there is more hope of such a one than a
  • fool: and there must be a beginning to a reformation. These I will allow
  • in his favour.
  • But this, that follows, I think, is the only way to judge of his
  • specious confessions and self-accusations--Does he confess any thing
  • that you knew not before, or that you are not likely to find out from
  • others?--If nothing else, what does he confess to his own disadvantage?
  • You have heard of his duels: you have heard of his seductions.--All
  • the world has. He owns, therefore, what it would be to no purpose to
  • conceal; and his ingenuousness is a salvo--'Why, this, Madam, is no more
  • than Mr. Lovelace himself acknowledges.'
  • Well, but what is now to be done?--You must make the best of your
  • situation: and as you say, so he has proposed to you of Windsor, and his
  • canon's house. His readiness to leave you, and go himself in quest of
  • a lodging, likewise looks well. And I think there is nothing can be so
  • properly done, as (whether you get to a canon's house or not) that the
  • canon should join you together in wedlock as soon as possible.
  • I much approve, however, of all your cautions, of all your vigilance,
  • and of every thing you have done, but of your meeting him. Yet, in my
  • disapprobation of that, I judge by that event only: for who would have
  • divined it would have been concluded as it did? But he is the devil by
  • his own account: and had he run away with the wretched Solmes, and your
  • more wretched brother, and himself been transported for life, he should
  • have had my free consent for all three.
  • What use does he make of that Joseph Leman!--His ingenuousness, I must
  • more than once say, confounds me; but if, my dear, you can forgive
  • your brother for the part he put that fellow upon acting, I don't know
  • whether you ought to be angry at Lovelace. Yet I have wished fifty
  • times, since Lovelace got you away, that you were rid of him, whether it
  • were by a burning fever, by hanging, by drowning, or by a broken
  • neck; provided it were before he laid you under a necessity to go into
  • mourning for him.
  • I repeat my hitherto rejected offer. May I send it safely by your old
  • man? I have reasons for not sending it by Hickman's servant; unless I
  • had a bank note. Inquiring for such may cause distrust. My mother is so
  • busy, so inquisitive--I don't love suspicious tempers.
  • And here she is continually in and out--I must break off.
  • *****
  • Mr. Hickman begs his most respectful compliments to you, with offer of
  • his services. I told him I would oblige him, because minds in trouble
  • take kindly any body's civilities: but that he was not to imagine that
  • he particularly obliged me by this; since I should think the man or
  • woman either blind or stupid who admired not a person of your exalted
  • merit for your own sake, and wished not to serve you without view to
  • other reward than the honour of serving you.
  • To be sure, that was his principal motive, with great daintiness he said
  • it: but with a kiss of his hand, and a bow to my feet, he hoped, that a
  • fine lady's being my friend did not lessen the merit of the reverence he
  • really had for her.
  • Believe me ever, what you, my dear, shall ever find me,
  • Your faithful and affectionate, ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER XXVIII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE SAT. AFTERNOON.
  • I detain your messenger while I write an answer to yours; the poor old
  • man not being very well.
  • You dishearten me a good deal about Mr. Lovelace. I may be too willing
  • from my sad circumstances to think the best of him. If his pretences
  • to reformation are but pretences, what must be his intent? But can the
  • heart of man be so very vile? Can he, dare he, mock the Almighty? But
  • I may not, from one very sad reflection, think better of him; that I am
  • thrown too much into his power, to make it necessary for him (except
  • he were to intend the very utmost villany by me) to be such a shocking
  • hypocrite? He must, at least be in earnest at the time he gives the
  • better hopes. Surely he must. You yourself must join with me in this
  • hope, or you could not wish me to be so dreadfully yoked.
  • But after all, I had rather, much rather, be independent of him, and of
  • his family, although I have an high opinion of them; at least till I see
  • what my own may be brought to.--Otherwise, I think, it were best for me,
  • at once, to cast myself into Lady Betty's protection. All would then be
  • conducted with decency, and perhaps many mortifications would be spared
  • me. But then I must be his, at all adventures, and be thought to defy my
  • own family. And shall I not first see the issue of one application? And
  • yet I cannot make this, till I am settled somewhere, and at a distance
  • from him.
  • Mrs. Sorlings shewed me a letter this morning, which she had received
  • from her sister Greme last night; in which Mrs. Greme (hoping I would
  • forgive her forward zeal if her sister thinks fit to shew her letter to
  • me) 'wishes (and that for all the noble family's sake, and she hopes she
  • may say for my own) that I will be pleased to yield to make his honour,
  • as she calls him, happy.' She grounds her officiousness, as she calls
  • it, upon what he was so condescending [her word also] to say to her
  • yesterday, in his way to Windsor, on her presuming to ask, if she might
  • soon give him joy? 'That no man ever loved a woman as he loves me: that
  • no woman ever so well deserved to be beloved: that he loves me with such
  • a purity as he had never believed himself capable of, or that a mortal
  • creature could have inspired him with; looking upon me as all soul; as
  • an angel sent down to save his;' and a great deal more of this sort:
  • 'but that he apprehends my consent to make him happy is at a greater
  • distance than he wishes; and complained of too severe restrictions I
  • had laid upon him before I honoured him with my confidence: which
  • restrictions must be as sacred to him, as if they were parts of the
  • marriage contract,' &c.
  • What, my dear, shall I say to this? How shall I take it? Mrs. Greme is
  • a good woman. Mrs. Sorlings is a good woman. And this letter agrees with
  • the conversation between Mr. Lovelace and me, which I thought, and
  • still think, so agreeable.* Yet what means the man by foregoing the
  • opportunities he has had to declare himself?--What mean his complaints
  • of my restrictions to Mrs. Greme? He is not a bashful man.--But you say,
  • I inspire people with an awe of me.--An awe, my dear!--As how?
  • * This letter Mrs. Greme (with no bad design on her part) was put upon
  • writing by Mr. Lovelace himself, as will be seen in Letter XXXV.
  • I am quite petulant, fretful, and peevish, with myself, at times, to
  • find that I am bound to see the workings of the subtle, or this giddy
  • spirit, which shall I call it?
  • How am I punished, as I frequently think, for my vanity, in hoping to
  • be an example to young persons of my sex! Let me be but a warning, and I
  • will now be contented. For, be my destiny what it may, I shall never
  • be able to hold up my head again among my best friends and worthiest
  • companions.
  • It is one of the cruelest circumstances that attends the faults of the
  • inconsiderate, that she makes all who love her unhappy, and gives joy
  • only to her own enemies, and to the enemies of her family.
  • What an useful lesson would this afford, were it properly inculcated at
  • the time that the tempted mind was balancing upon a doubtful adventure?
  • You know not, my dear, the worth of a virtuous man; and, noble-minded as
  • you are in most particulars, you partake of the common weakness of human
  • nature, in being apt to slight what is in your own power.
  • You would not think of using Mr. Lovelace, were he your suitor, as you
  • do the much worthier Mr. Hickman--would you?--You know who says in
  • my mother's case, 'Much will bear, much shall bear, all the world
  • through.'* Mr. Hickman, I fancy, would be glad to know the lady's name,
  • who made such an observation. He would think it hardly possible, but
  • such a one should benefit by her own remark; and would be apt to wish
  • his Miss Howe acquainted with her.
  • * See Vol.I. Letter X.
  • Gentleness of heart, surely, is not despicable in a man. Why, if it be,
  • is the highest distinction a man can arrive at, that of a gentleman?--A
  • distinction which a prince may not deserve. For manners, more than
  • birth, fortune, or title, are requisite in this character. Manners are
  • indeed the essence of it. And shall it be generally said, and Miss Howe
  • not be an exception to it (as you once wrote), that our sex are best
  • dealt with by boisterous and unruly spirits?*
  • * See Vol.II. Letter III.
  • Forgive me, my dear, and love me as you used to do. For although my
  • fortunes are changed, my heart is not: Nor ever will, while it bids my
  • pen tell you, that it must cease to bear, when it is not as much yours
  • as
  • Your CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXIX
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE. SATURDAY EVENING.
  • Mr. Lovelace has seen divers apartments at Windsor; but not one, he
  • says, that he thought fit for me, and which, at the same time, answered
  • my description.
  • He has been very solicitous to keep to the letter of my instructions:
  • which looked well: and the better I like him, as, although he proposed
  • that town, he came back, dissuading me from it: for he said, that, in
  • his journey from thence, he had thought Windsor, although of his own
  • proposal, a wrong choice; because I coveted privacy, and that was a
  • place generally visited and admired.*
  • * This inference of the Lady in his favour is exactly what he had hoped
  • for. See Letter XXV. of this volume.
  • I told him, that if Mrs. Sorlings thought me not an incumbrance, I would
  • be willing to stay here a little longer; provided he would leave me, and
  • go to Lord M.'s, or to London, which ever he thought best.
  • He hoped, he said, that he might suppose me absolutely safe from the
  • insults or attempts of my brother; and, therefore, if it should make me
  • easier, he would obey, for a few days at least.
  • He again proposed to send for Hannah. I told him I designed to do
  • so, through you--And shall I beg of you, my dear, to cause the honest
  • creature to be sent to? Your faithful Robert, I think, knows where
  • she is. Perhaps she will be permitted to quit her place directly, by
  • allowing a month's wages, which I will repay her. He took notice of the
  • serious humour he found me in, and of the redness of my eyes. I had just
  • been answering your letter; and had he not approached me, on his
  • coming off his journey, in a very respectful manner; had he not made an
  • unexceptionable report of his inquiries, and been so ready to go from
  • me, at the very first word; I was prepared (notwithstanding the good
  • terms we parted upon when he set out for Windsor) to have given him a
  • very unwelcome reception: for the contents of your last letter had so
  • affected me, that the moment I saw him, I beheld with indignation the
  • seducer, who had been the cause of all the evils I suffer, and have
  • suffered.
  • He hinted to me, that he had received a letter from Lady Betty, and
  • another (as I understood him) from one of the Miss Montagues. If they
  • take notice of me in them, I wonder that he did not acquaint me with the
  • contents. I am afraid, my dear, that his relations are among those who
  • think I have taken a rash and inexcusable step. It is not to my credit
  • to let even them know how I have been frighted out of myself: and yet
  • perhaps they would hold me unworthy of their alliance, if they were to
  • think my flight a voluntary one. O my dear, how uneasy to us are our
  • reflections upon every doubtful occurrence, when we know we have been
  • prevailed upon to do a wrong thing!
  • SUNDAY MORNING.
  • Ah! this man, my dear! We have had warmer dialogues than ever yet we
  • have had. At fair argument, I find I need not fear him;* but he is such
  • a wild, such an ungovernable creature [he reformed!] that I am half
  • afraid of him.
  • * See this confirmed by Mr. Lovelace, Letter XI. of this volume.
  • He again, on my declaring myself uneasy at his stay with me here,
  • proposed that I would put myself into Lady Betty's protection; assuring
  • me that he thought he could not leave me at Mrs. Sorlings's with safety
  • to myself. And upon my declining to do that, for the reasons I gave you
  • in my last,* he urged me to make a demand of my estate.
  • * See Letter XXVIII. of this volume.
  • He knew it, I told him, to be my resolution not to litigate with my
  • father.
  • Nor would he put me upon it, he replied, but as the last thing. But
  • if my spirit would not permit me to be obliged, as I called it, to any
  • body, and yet if my relations would refuse me my own, he knew not how
  • I could keep up that spirit, without being put to inconveniences,
  • which would give him infinite concern--Unless--unless--unless, he said,
  • hesitating, as if afraid to speak out--unless I would take the only
  • method I could take, to obtain the possession of my own.
  • What is that, Sir?
  • Sure the man saw by my looks, when he came with his creeping unless's,
  • that I guessed what he meant.
  • Ah! Madam, can you be at a loss to know what that method is?--They will
  • not dispute with a man that right which they contest with you.
  • Why said he with a man, instead of with him? Yet he looked as if he
  • wanted to be encouraged to say more.
  • So, Sir, you would have me employ a lawyer, would you, notwithstanding
  • what I have ever declared as to litigating with my father?
  • No, I would not, my dearest creature, snatching my hand, and pressing it
  • with his lips--except you would make me the lawyer.
  • Had he said me at first, I should have been above the affectation of
  • mentioning a lawyer.
  • I blushed. The man pursued not the subject so ardently, but that it was
  • more easy as well as more natural to avoid it than to fall into it.
  • Would to Heaven he might, without offending!--But I so over-awed
  • him!--[over-awed him!--Your* notion, my dear!]--And so the over-awed,
  • bashful man went off from the subject, repeating his proposal, that I
  • would demand my own estate, or empower some man of the law to demand it,
  • if I would not [he put in] empower a happier man to demand it. But it
  • could not be amiss, he thought, to acquaint my two trustees, that I
  • intended to assume it.
  • * See Letter XIX. of this volume.
  • I should know better what to do, I told him, when he was at a distance
  • from me, and known to be so. I suppose, Sir, that if my father propose
  • my return, and engage never to mention Solmes to me, nor any other man,
  • but by my consent, and I agree, upon that condition, to think no more of
  • you, you will acquiesce.
  • I was willing to try whether he had the regard to all of my previous
  • declarations, which he pretended to have to some of them.
  • He was struck all of a heap.
  • What say you, Mr. Lovelace? You know, all you mean is for my good.
  • Surely I am my own mistress: surely I need not ask your leave to make
  • what terms I please for myself, so long as I break none with you?
  • He hemm'd twice or thrice--Why, Madam--why, Madam, I cannot say--then
  • pausing--and rising from his seat with petulance; I see plainly enough,
  • said he, the reason why none of my proposals can be accepted: at last I
  • am to be a sacrifice to your reconciliation with your implacable family.
  • It has always been your respectful way, Mr. Lovelace, to treat my family
  • in this free manner. But pray, Sir, when you call others implacable, see
  • that you deserve not the same censure yourself.
  • He must needs say, there was no love lost between some of my family and
  • him; but he had not deserved of them what they had of him.
  • Yourself being judge, I suppose, Sir?
  • All the world, you yourself, Madam, being judge.
  • Then, Sir, let me tell you, had you been less upon your defiances,
  • they would not have been irritated so much against you. But nobody ever
  • heard, that avowed despite to the relations of a person was a proper
  • courtship, either to that person, or to her friends.
  • Well, Madam, all that I know is, that their malice against me is such,
  • that, if you determine to sacrifice me, you may be reconciled when you
  • please.
  • And all I know, Sir, is, that if I do give my father the power of a
  • negative, and he will be contented with that, it will be but my duty to
  • give it him; and if I preserve one to myself, I shall break through no
  • obligation to you.
  • Your duty to your capricious brother, not to your father, you mean,
  • Madam.
  • If the dispute lay between my brother and me at first, surely, Sir, a
  • father may choose which party he will take.
  • He may, Madam--but that exempts him not from blame for all that, if he
  • take the wrong--
  • Different people will judge differently, Mr. Lovelace, of the right and
  • the wrong. You judge as you please. Shall not others as they please? And
  • who has a right to controul a father's judgment in his own family, and
  • in relation to his own child?
  • I know, Madam, there is no arguing with you. But, nevertheless, I had
  • hoped to have made myself some little merit with you, so as that I might
  • not have been the preliminary sacrifice to a reconciliation.
  • Your hope, Sir, had been better grounded if you had had my consent to my
  • abandoning of my father's house--
  • Always, Madam, and for ever, to be reminded of the choice you would have
  • made of that damn'd Solmes--rather than--
  • Not so hasty! not so rash, Mr. Lovelace! I am convinced that there was
  • no intention to marry me to that Solmes on Wednesday.
  • So I am told they now give out, in order to justify themselves at your
  • expense. Every body living, Madam, is obliged to you for your kind
  • thoughts but I.
  • Excuse me, good Mr. Lovelace [waving my hand, and bowing], that I am
  • willing to think the best of my father.
  • Charming creature! said he, with what a bewitching air is that
  • said!--And with a vehemence in his manner would have snatched my hand.
  • But I withdrew it, being much offended with him.
  • I think, Madam, my sufferings for your sake might have entitled me to
  • some favour.
  • My sufferings, Sir, for your impetuous temper, set against your
  • sufferings for my sake, I humbly conceive, leave me very little your
  • debtor.
  • Lord! Madam, [assuming a drawling air] What have you suffered?--Nothing
  • but what you can easily forgive. You have been only made a prisoner in
  • your father's house, by way of doing credit to your judgment!--You have
  • only had an innocent and faithful servant turned out of your service,
  • because you loved her!--You have only had your sister's confident
  • servant set over you, with leave to tease and affront you--!
  • Very well, Sir!
  • You have only had an insolent brother take upon him to treat you like a
  • slave, and as insolent a sister to undermine you in every body's favour,
  • on pretence to keep you out of hands, which, if as vile as they vilely
  • report, are not, however, half so vile and cruel as their own.
  • Go on, Sir, if you please!
  • You have only been persecuted, in order to oblige you to have a sordid
  • fellow, whom you have professed to hate, and whom every body despises!
  • The license has been only got! The parson has only been had in
  • readiness! The day, a near, a very near day, had been only fixed! And
  • you were only to be searched for your correspondencies, and still closer
  • confined till the day came, in order to deprive you of all means of
  • escaping the snare laid for you!--But all this you can forgive! You
  • can wish you had stood all this; inevitable as the compulsion must have
  • been!--And the man who, at the hazard of his life, had delivered you
  • from all these mortifications, is the only person you cannot forgive!
  • Can't you go on, Sir? You see I have patience to hear you. Can't you go
  • on, Sir?
  • I can, Madam, with my sufferings: which I confess ought not to be
  • mentioned, were I at last to be rewarded in the manner I hoped.
  • Your sufferings then, if you please, Sir?
  • Affrontingly forbidden your father's house, after encouragement given,
  • without any reasons they knew not before to justify the prohibition:
  • forced upon a rencounter I wished to avoid: the first I ever, so
  • provoked, wished to avoid. And that, because the wretch was your
  • brother!
  • Wretch, Sir!--And my brother!--This could be from no man breathing, but
  • from him before me!
  • Pardon me, Madam!--But oh! how unworthy to be your brother!--The quarrel
  • grafted upon an old one, when at college; he universally known to be the
  • aggressor; and revived for views equally sordid and injurious both to
  • yourself and me--giving life to him, who would have taken away mine!
  • Your generosity THIS, Sir; not your sufferings: a little more of your
  • sufferings, if you please!--I hope you do not repent, that you did not
  • murder my brother!
  • My private life hunted into! My morals decried! Some of the accusers not
  • unfaulty!
  • That's an aspersion, Sir!
  • Spies set upon my conduct! One hired to bribe my own servant's fidelity;
  • perhaps to have poisoned me at last, if the honest fellow had not--
  • Facts, Mr. Lovelace!--Do you want facts in the display of your
  • sufferings?--None of your perhaps's, I beseech you!
  • Menaces every day, and defiances, put into every one's mouth against me!
  • Forced to creep about in disguises--and to watch all hours--
  • And in all weathers, I suppose, Sir--That, I remember, was once your
  • grievance! In all weathers, Sir!* and all these hardships arising from
  • yourself, not imposed by me.
  • * See Letter VI. of this volume.
  • Like a thief, or an eaves-dropper, proceeded he: and yet neither by
  • birth nor alliances unworthy of their relation, whatever I may be and
  • am of their admirable daughter: of whom they, every one of them, are at
  • least as unworthy!--These, Madam, I call sufferings: justly call so; if
  • at last I am to be sacrificed to an imperfect reconciliation--imperfect,
  • I say: for, can you expect to live so much as tolerably under the same
  • roof, after all that has passed, with that brother and sister?
  • O Sir, Sir! What sufferings have yours been! And all for my sake, I
  • warrant!--I can never reward you for them!--Never think of me more I
  • beseech you--How can you have patience with me?--Nothing has been
  • owing to your own behaviour, I presume: nothing to your defiances for
  • defiances: nothing to your resolution declared more than once, that you
  • would be related to a family, which, nevertheless, you would not stoop
  • to ask a relation of: nothing, in short to courses which every body
  • blamed you for, you not thinking it worth your while to justify
  • yourself. Had I not thought you used in an ungentlemanly manner, as I
  • have heretofore told you, you had not had my notice by pen and ink.*
  • That notice gave you a supposed security, and you generously defied
  • my friends the more for it: and this brought upon me (perhaps not
  • undeservedly) my father's displeasure; without which, my brother's
  • private pique, and selfish views, would have wanted a foundation to
  • build upon: so that for all that followed of my treatment, and your
  • redundant only's, I might thank you principally, as you may yourself for
  • all your sufferings, your mighty sufferings!--And if, voluble Sir, you
  • have founded any merit upon them, be so good as to revoke it: and
  • look upon me, with my forfeited reputation, as the only sufferer--For
  • what--pray hear me out, Sir [for he was going to speak] have you
  • suffered in but your pride? Your reputation could not suffer: that
  • it was beneath you to be solicitous about. And had you not been an
  • unmanageable man, I should not have been driven to the extremity I now
  • every hour, as the hour passes, deplore--with this additional reflection
  • upon myself, that I ought not to have begun, or, having begun, not
  • continued a correspondence with one who thought it not worth his while
  • to clear his own character for my sake, or to submit to my father for
  • his own, in a point wherein every father ought to have an option--
  • * See Letter VI. of this volume.
  • Darkness, light; light, darkness; by my soul;--just as you please to
  • have it. O charmer of my heart! snatching my hand, and pressing it
  • between both of his, to his lips, in a strange wild way, take me, take
  • me to yourself: mould me as you please: I am wax in your hands; give me
  • your own impression; and seal me for ever yours--we were born for each
  • other!--You to make me happy, and save a soul--I am all error, all
  • crime. I see what I ought to have done. But do you think, Madam, I can
  • willingly consent to be sacrificed to a partial reconciliation, in
  • which I shall be so great, so irreparable a sufferer!--Any thing but
  • that--include me in your terms: prescribe to me: promise for me as you
  • please--put a halter about my neck, and lead me by it, upon condition
  • of forgiveness on that disgraceful penance, and of a prostration as
  • servile, to your father's presence (your brother absent), and I will
  • beg his consent at his feet, and bear any thing but spurning from him,
  • because he is your father. But to give you up upon cold conditions,
  • d----n me [said the shocking wretch] if I either will, or can!
  • These were his words, as near as I can remember them; for his behaviour
  • was so strangely wild and fervent, that I was perfectly frighted. I
  • thought he would have devoured my hand. I wished myself a thousand miles
  • distant from him.
  • I told him, I by no means approved of his violent temper: he was too
  • boisterous a man for my liking. I saw now, by the conversation that had
  • passed, what was his boasted regard to my injunctions; and should
  • take my measures accordingly, as he should soon find. And, with a half
  • frighted earnestness, I desired him to withdraw, and leave me to myself.
  • He obeyed; and that with extreme complaisance in his manner, but
  • with his complexion greatly heightened, and a countenance as greatly
  • dissatisfied.
  • But, on recollecting all that passed, I plainly see that he means not,
  • if he can help it, to leave me to the liberty of refusing him; which I
  • had nevertheless preserved a right to do; but looks upon me as his, by a
  • strange sort of obligation, for having run away with me against my will.
  • Yet you see he but touches upon the edges of matrimony neither. And
  • that at a time, generally, when he has either excited one's passions
  • or apprehensions; so that one cannot at once descend. But surely this
  • cannot be his design.--And yet such seemed to be his behaviour to my
  • sister,* when he provoked her to refuse him, and so tamely submitted, as
  • he did, to her refusal. But he dare not--What can one say of so various
  • a man?--I am now again out of conceit with him. I wish I were fairly out
  • of his power.
  • * See Vol.I. Letters II. and III.
  • He has sent up three times to beg admittance; in the two last with
  • unusual earnestness. But I have sent him word, I will finish what I am
  • about.
  • What to do about going from this place, I cannot tell. I could stay
  • here with all my heart, as I have said to him: the gentlewoman and her
  • daughters are desirous that I will: although not very convenient for
  • them, I believe, neither: but I see he will not leave me, while I do--so
  • I must remove somewhere.
  • I have long been sick of myself: and now I am more and more so. But
  • let me not lose your good opinion. If I do, that loss will complete the
  • misfortunes of
  • Your CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXX
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE SUNDAY NIGHT, APRIL 16.
  • I may send to you, although you are forbid to write to me; may I
  • not?--For that is not a correspondence (is it?) where letters are not
  • answered.
  • I am strangely at a loss what to think of this man. He is a perfect
  • Proteus. I can but write according to the shape he assumes at the time.
  • Don't think me the changeable person, I beseech you, if in one letter I
  • contradict what I wrote in another; nay, if I seem to contradict what
  • I said in the same letter: for he is a perfect camelion; or rather more
  • variable than the camelion; for that, it is said, cannot assume the
  • red and the white; but this man can. And though black seems to be
  • his natural colour, yet has he taken great pains to make me think him
  • nothing but white.
  • But you shall judge of him as I proceed. Only, if I any where appear
  • to you to be credulous, I beg you to set me right: for you are a
  • stander-by, as you say in a former*--Would to Heaven I were not to play!
  • for I think, after all, I am held to a desperate game.
  • * See Letter VIII. of this volume.
  • Before I could finish my last to you, he sent up twice more to beg
  • admittance. I returned for answer, that I would see him at my own time:
  • I would neither be invaded nor prescribed to.
  • Considering how we parted, and my delaying his audience, as he sometimes
  • calls it, I expected him to be in no very good humour, when I admitted
  • of his visit; and by what I wrote, you will conclude that I was not. Yet
  • mine soon changed, when I saw his extreme humility at his entrance, and
  • heard what he had to say.
  • I have a letter, Madam, said he, from Lady Betty Lawrance, and another
  • from my cousin Charlotte. But of these more by-and-by. I came now to
  • make my humble acknowledgement to you upon the arguments that passed
  • between us so lately.
  • I was silent, wondering what he was driving at.
  • I am a most unhappy creature, proceeded he: unhappy from a strange
  • impatiency of spirit, which I cannot conquer. It always brings upon me
  • deserved humiliation. But it is more laudable to acknowledge, than to
  • persevere when under the power of conviction.
  • I was still silent.
  • I have been considering what you proposed to me, Madam, that I should
  • acquiesce with such terms as you should think proper to comply with, in
  • order to a reconciliation with your friends.
  • Well, Sir.
  • And I find all just, all right, on your side; and all impatience, all
  • inconsideration on mine.
  • I stared, you may suppose. Whence this change, Sir? and so soon?
  • I am so much convinced that you must be in the right in all you think
  • fit to insist upon, that I shall for the future mistrust myself; and,
  • if it be possible, whenever I differ with you, take an hour's time for
  • recollection, before I give way to that vehemence, which an opposition,
  • to which I have not been accustomed, too often gives me.
  • All this is mighty good, Sir: But to what does it tend?
  • Why, Madam, when I came to consider what you had proposed, as to the
  • terms of reconciliation with your friends; and when I recollected that
  • you had always referred to yourself to approve or reject me, according
  • to my merits or demerits; I plainly saw, that it was rather a
  • condescension in you, that you were pleased to ask my consent to those
  • terms,than that you were imposing a new law: and I now, Madam, beg your
  • pardon for my impatience: whatever terms you think proper to come into
  • with your relations, which will enable you to honour me with the
  • conditional effect of your promise to me, to these be pleased to
  • consent: and if I lose you, insupportable as that thought is to me; yet,
  • as it must be by my own fault, I ought to thank myself for
  • it.
  • What think you, Miss Howe?--Do you believe he can have any view in
  • this?--I cannot see any he could have; and I thought it best, as he put
  • it in so right a manner, to appear not to doubt the sincerity of his
  • confession, and to accept of it as sincere.
  • He then read to me part of Lady Betty's letter; turning down the
  • beginning, which was a little too severe upon him, he said, for my eye:
  • and I believe, by the style, the remainder of it was in a corrective
  • strain.
  • It was too plain, I told him, that he must have great faults, that none
  • of his relations could write to him, but with a mingled censure for some
  • bad action.
  • And it is as plain, my dearest creature, said he, that you, who know
  • not of any such faults, but by surmise, are equally ready to condemn
  • me.--Will not charity allow you to infer, that their charges are no
  • better grounded?--And that my principal fault has been carelessness of
  • my character, and too little solicitude to clear myself, when aspersed?
  • Which, I do assure you, is the case.
  • Lady Betty, in her letter, expresses herself in the most obliging manner
  • in relation to me. 'She wishes him so to behave, as to encourage me to
  • make him soon happy. She desires her compliments to me; and expresses
  • her impatience to see, as her niece, so celebrated a lady [those are her
  • high words]. She shall take it for an honour, she says, to be put into
  • a way to oblige me. She hopes I will not too long delay the ceremony;
  • because that performed, will be to her, and to Lord M. and Lady Sarah, a
  • sure pledge of her nephew's merits and good behaviour.'
  • She says, 'she was always sorry to hear of the hardships I had met with
  • on his account: that he will be the most ungrateful of men, if he make it
  • not all up to me: and that she thinks it incumbent upon all their family
  • to supply to me the lost favour of my own: and, for her part, nothing of
  • that kind, she bids him assure me, shall be wanting.'
  • Her ladyship observes, 'That the treatment he had received from my
  • family would have been much more unaccountable than it was, with such
  • natural and accidental advantages as he had, had it not been owing
  • to his own careless manners. But she hopes that he will convince the
  • Harlowe family that they had thought worse of him than he had deserved;
  • since now it was in his power to establish his character for ever. This
  • she prays to God to enable him to do, as well for his own honour, as for
  • the honour of their house,' was the magnificent word.
  • She concludes, with 'desiring to be informed of our nuptials the moment
  • they are celebrated, that she may be with the earliest in felicitating
  • me on the happy occasion.'
  • But her Ladyship gives me no direct invitation to attend her before the
  • marriage: which I might have expected from what he had told me.
  • He then shewed me part of Miss Montague's more sprightly letter,
  • 'congratulating him upon the honour he had obtained, of the confidence
  • of so admirable a lady.' These are her words. Confidence, my dear!
  • Nobody, indeed, as you say, will believe otherwise, were they to be
  • told the truth: and you see that Miss Montague (and all his family, I
  • suppose) think that the step I have taken an extraordinary one. 'She
  • also wishes for his speedy nuptials; and to see her new cousin at M.
  • Hall: as do Lord M. she tells him, and her sister; and in general all
  • the well-wishers of their family.
  • 'Whenever this happy day shall be passed, she proposes, she says, to
  • attend me, and to make one in my train to M. Hall, if his Lordship shall
  • continue as ill of the gout as he is at present. But that, should he get
  • better, he will himself attend me, she is sure, and conduct me thither;
  • and afterwards quit either of his three seats to us, till we shall be
  • settled to our mind.'
  • This young lady says nothing in excuse for not meeting me on the road,
  • or St. Alban's, as he had made me expect she would: yet mentions her
  • having been indisposed. Mr. Lovelace had also told me, that Lord M. was
  • ill of the gout; which Miss Montague's letter confirms.
  • But why did not the man show me these letters last night? Was he afraid
  • of giving me too much pleasure?
  • LETTER XXXI
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE
  • You may believe, my dear, that these letters put me in good humour with
  • him. He saw it in my countenance, and congratulated himself upon it.
  • Yet I cannot but repeat my wonder, that I could not have the contents of
  • them communicated to me last night.*
  • * The reader will see how Miss Howe accounts for this, in Letter XXXV.
  • He then urged me to go directly to Lady Betty's, on the strength of her
  • letter.
  • But how, said I, can I do that, were I even out of all hope of a
  • reconciliation with my friends, (which yet, however unlikely to be
  • effected, is my duty to attempt,) as her Ladyship has given me no
  • particular invitation?
  • That, he was sure, was owing to her doubt that it would be
  • accepted--Else she had done it with the greatest pleasure in the world.
  • That doubt itself, I said, was enough to deter me: since her Ladyship,
  • who knew so well the boundaries to the fit and the unfit, by her not
  • expecting I would accept of the invitation, had she given it, would have
  • reason to think me very forward, if I had accepted it; and much more
  • forward to go without it. Then, said I, I thank you, Sir, I have no
  • clothes fit to go any where, or to be seen by any body.
  • O, I was fit to appear in the drawing-room, were full dress and
  • jewels to be excused; and should make the most amiable [he must mean
  • extraordinary] figure there. He was astonished at the elegance of my
  • dress. By what art he knew not, but I appeared to such advantage, as if
  • I had a different suit every day.
  • Besides, his cousins Montague would supply me with all I wanted for the
  • present; and he would write to Miss Charlotte accordingly, if I would
  • give him leave.
  • Do you think me the jay in the fable? said I. Would you have me visit
  • the owners of the borrowed dresses in their own clothes? Surely, Mr.
  • Lovelace, you think I have either a very low, or a very confident mind.
  • Would I choose to go to London (for a very few days only) in order to
  • furnish myself with clothes?
  • Not at your expense, Sir, said I, in an angry tone.
  • I could not have appeared in earnest to him, in my displeasure at his
  • artful contrivances to get me away, if I were not occasionally to shew
  • my real fretfulness upon the destitute condition to which he has reduced
  • me. When people set out wrong together, it is very difficult to avoid
  • recriminations.
  • He wished he knew but my mind--That should direct him in his proposals,
  • and it would be his delight to observe it, whatever it were.
  • My mind is, that you, Sir, should leave me out of hand--How often must I
  • tell you so?
  • If I were any where but here, he would obey me, he said, if I insisted
  • upon it. But if I would assert my right, that would be infinitely
  • preferable, in his opinion, to any other measure but one (which he durst
  • only hint at:) for then admitting his visits, or refusing them, as I
  • pleased, (Granting a correspondence by letter only) it would appear
  • to all the world, that what I had done, was but in order to do myself
  • justice.
  • How often, Mr. Lovelace, must I repeat, that I will not litigate with my
  • father? Do you think that my unhappy circumstances will alter my notions
  • of my own duty so far as I shall be enabled to perform it? How can I
  • obtain possession without litigation, and but by my trustees? One of
  • them will be against me; the other is abroad. Then the remedy proposed
  • by this measure, were I disposed to fall in with it, will require time
  • to bring it into effect; and what I want, is present independence, and
  • your immediate absence.
  • Upon his soul, the wretch swore, he did not think it safe, for the
  • reasons he had before given, to leave me here. He wished I would think
  • of some place, to which I should like to go. But he must take
  • the liberty to say, that he hoped his behaviour had not been so
  • exceptionable, as to make me so very earnest for his absence in the
  • interim: and the less, surely, as I was almost eternally shutting up
  • myself from him; although he presumed to assure me, that he never went
  • from me, but with a corrected heart, and with strengthened resolutions
  • of improving by my example.
  • “Externally shutting myself up from you! repeated I--I hope, Sir, that
  • you will not pretend to take it amiss, that I expect to be uninvaded in
  • my retirements. I hope you do not think me so weak a creature (novice as
  • you have found me in a very capital instance) as to be fond of occasions
  • to hear your fond speeches, especially as no differing circumstances
  • require your over-frequent visits; nor that I am to be addressed to, as
  • if I thought hourly professions needful to assure me of your honour.
  • He seemed a little disconcerted.
  • You know, Mr. Lovelace, proceeded I, why I am so earnest for your
  • absence. It is, that I may appear to the world independent of you; and
  • in hopes, by that means, to find it less difficult to set on foot a
  • reconciliation with my friends. And now let me add, (in order to make
  • you easier as to the terms of that hoped-for reconciliation,) that since
  • I find I have the good fortune to stand so well with your relations, I
  • will, from time to time, acquaint you, by letter, when you are absent,
  • with every step I shall take, and with every overture that shall be made
  • to me: but not with an intention to render myself accountable to you,
  • neither, as to my acceptance or non-acceptance of those overtures. They
  • know that I have a power given me by my grandfather's will, to bequeath
  • the estate he left me, with other of his bounties, in a way that may
  • affect them, though not absolutely from them. This consideration, I
  • hope, will procure me some from them, when their passion subsides, and
  • when they know I am independent of you.
  • Charming reasoning!--And let him tell me, that the assurance I had
  • given him was all he wished for. It was more than he could ask. What a
  • happiness to have a woman of honour and generosity to depend upon! Had
  • he, on his first entrance into the world, met with such a one, he had
  • never been other than a man of strict virtue.--But all, he hoped,
  • was for the best; since, in that case, he had never perhaps had the
  • happiness he now had in view; because his relations had always been
  • urging him to marry; and that before he had the honour to know me. And
  • now, as he had not been so bad as some people's malice reported him to
  • be, he hoped he should have near as much merit in his repentance, as
  • if he had never erred.--A fine rakish notion and hope! And too much
  • encouraged, I doubt, my dear, by the generality of our sex!
  • This brought on a more serious question or two. You'll see by it what a
  • creature an unmortified libertine is.
  • I asked him, if he knew what he had said, alluded to a sentence in the
  • best of books, That there was more joy in heaven--
  • He took the words out of my mouth,
  • Over one sinner that repenteth, than over ninety-and-nine just persons,
  • which need no repentance,* were his words.
  • * Luke xv. 7. The parable is concerning the Ninety-nine Sheep, not the
  • Prodigal Son, as Mr. Lovelace erroneously imagines.
  • Yes, Madam, I thought of it, as soon as I said it, but not before. I
  • have read the story of the Prodigal Son, I'll assure you; and one day,
  • when I am settled as I hope to be, will write a dramatic piece on the
  • subject. I have at times had it in my head; and you will be too ready,
  • perhaps, to allow me to be qualified fro it.
  • You so lately, Sir, stumbled at a word, with which you must be better
  • acquainted, ere you can be thoroughly master of such a subject, that I
  • am amazed you should know any thing of the Scripture, and be so ignorant
  • of that.*
  • * See Letter XXIV. of this volume.
  • O Madam, I have read the Bible, as a fine piece of ancient history--But
  • as I hope to be saved, it has for some years past made me so uneasy,
  • when I have popped upon some passages in it, that I have been forced to
  • run to music or company to divert myself.
  • Poor wretch! lifting up my hands and eyes.
  • The denunciations come so slap-dash upon one, so unceremoniously, as I
  • may say, without even the By-your-leave of a rude London chairman, that
  • they overturn one, horse and man, as St. Paul was overturned. There's
  • another Scripture allusion, Madam! The light, in short, as his was, is
  • too glaring to be borne.
  • O Sir, do you want to be complimented into repentance and salvation?
  • But pray, Mr. Lovelace, do you mean any thing at all, when you swear so
  • often as you do, By your soul, or bind an asseveration with the words,
  • As you hope to be saved?
  • O my beloved creature, shifting his seat; let us call another cause.
  • Why, Sir, don't I neither use ceremony enough with you?
  • Dearest Madam, forbear for the present: I am but in my noviciate. Your
  • foundation must be laid brick by brick: you'll hinder the progress of
  • the good work you would promote, if you tumble in a whole wagon-load at
  • once upon me.
  • Lord bless me, thought I, what a character is that of a libertine!
  • What a creature am I, who have risked what I have risked with such a
  • one!--What a task before me, if my hopes continue of reforming such a
  • wild Indian as this!--Nay, worse than a wild Indian; for a man who errs
  • with his eyes open, and against conviction, is a thousand times worse
  • for what he knows, and much harder to be reclaimed, than if he had never
  • known any thing at all.
  • I was equally shocked at him, and concerned for him; and having laid so
  • few bricks (to speak to his allusion) and those so ill-cemented, I was
  • as willing as the gay and inconsiderate to call another cause, as he
  • termed it--another cause, too, more immediately pressing upon me, from
  • my uncertain situation.
  • I said, I took it for granted that he assented to the reasoning he
  • seemed to approve, and would leave me. And then I asked him, what he
  • really, and in his most deliberate mind, would advise me to, in my
  • present situation? He must needs see, I said, that I was at a great loss
  • what to resolve upon; entirely a stranger to London, having no adviser,
  • no protector, at present: himself, he must give me leave to tell
  • him, greatly deficient in practice, if not in the knowledge, of those
  • decorums, which, I had supposed, were always to be found in a man of
  • birth, fortune, and education.
  • He imagines himself, I find, to be a very polite man, and cannot bear to
  • be thought otherwise. He put up his lip--I am sorry for it, Madam--a man
  • of breeding, a man of politeness, give me leave to say, [colouring,] is
  • much more of a black swan with you, than with any lady I ever met with.
  • Then that is your misfortune, Mr. Lovelace, as well as mine, at present.
  • Every woman of discernment, I am confident, knowing what I know of you
  • now, would as I, say, [I had a mind to mortify a pride, that I am sure
  • deserves to be mortified;] that your politeness is not regular, nor
  • constant. It is not habit. It is too much seen by fits and starts, and
  • sallies, and those not spontaneous. You must be reminded into them.
  • O Lord! O Lord!--Poor I!--was the light, yet the half-angry wretch's
  • self-pitying expression!
  • I proceeded.--Upon my word, Sir, you are not the accomplished man, which
  • your talents and opportunities would have led one to expect you to be.
  • You are indeed in your noviciate, as to every laudable attainment.
  • LETTER XXXII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • As this subject was introduced by himself, and treated so lightly by
  • him, I was going on to tell him more of my mind; but he interrupted
  • me--Dear, dear Madam, spare me. I am sorry that I have lived to this
  • hour for nothing at all. But surely you could not have quitted a subject
  • so much more agreeable, and so much more suitable, I will say, to your
  • present situation, if you had not too cruel a pleasure in mortifying a
  • man, who the less needed to be mortified, as he before looked up to you
  • with a diffidence in his own merits too great to permit him to speak
  • half of his mind to you. Be pleased but to return to the subject we were
  • upon; and at another time I will gladly embrace correction from the only
  • lips in the world so qualified to give it.
  • You talk of reformation sometimes, Mr. Lovelace, and in so talking,
  • acknowledge errors. But I see you can very ill bear the reproof, for
  • which perhaps you are not solicitous to avoid giving occasion. Far be it
  • from me to take delight in finding fault; I should be glad for both our
  • sakes, since my situation is what it is, that I could do nothing but
  • praise you. But failures which affect a mind that need not be very
  • delicate to be affected by them, are too grating to be passed over in
  • silence by a person who wishes to be thought in earnest in her own duties.
  • I admire your delicacy, Madam, again interrupted he. Although I suffer
  • by it, yet would I not have it otherwise: indeed I would not, when I
  • consider of it. It is an angelic delicacy, which sets you above all our
  • sex, and even above your own. It is natural to you, Madam; so you may
  • think it extraordinary: but there is nothing like it on earth, said the
  • flatterer--What company has he kept!
  • But let us return to the former subject--You were so good as to ask me
  • what I would advise you to do: I want but to make you easy; I want but
  • to see you fixed to your liking: your faithful Hannah with you; your
  • reconciliation with those to whom you wish to be reconciled, set
  • on foot, and in a train. And now let me mention to you different
  • expedients; in hopes that some one of them may be acceptable to you.
  • 'I will go to Mrs. Howe, or to Miss Howe, or to whomsoever you would
  • have me to go, and endeavour to prevail upon them to receive you.*
  • * The reader, perhaps, need not be reminded that he had taken care from
  • the first (see Vol. I. Letter XXXI.) to deprive her of any protection
  • from Mrs. Howe. See in his next letter, a repeated account of the same
  • artifices, and his exultations upon his inventions to impose upon the
  • two such watchful ladies as Clarissa and Miss Howe.
  • 'Do you incline to go to Florence to your cousin Morden? I will furnish
  • you with an opportunity of going thither, either by sea to Leghorn,
  • or by land through France. Perhaps I may be able to procure one of
  • the ladies of my family to attend you. Either Charlotte or Patty would
  • rejoice in such an opportunity of seeing France and Italy. As for
  • myself, I will only be your escort, in disguise, if you will have it so,
  • even in your livery, that your punctilio may not receive offence by my
  • attendance.'
  • I told him, I would consider of all he had said: but that I hoped for a
  • line or two from my aunt Hervey, if not from my sister, to both of
  • whom I had written, which, if I were to be so favoured, might help to
  • determine me. Mean time, if he would withdraw, I would particularly
  • consider of this proposal of his, in relation to my cousin Morden. And
  • if it held its weight with me, so far as to write for your opinion upon
  • it, he should know my mind in an hour's time.
  • He withdrew with great respect: and in an hour's time returned. And I
  • then told him it was unnecessary to trouble you for your opinion about
  • it. My cousin Morden was soon expected. If he were not, I could not
  • admit him to accompany me to him upon any condition. It was highly
  • improbable that I should obtain the favour of either of his cousins'
  • company: and if that could be brought about, it would be the same thing
  • in the world's eye as if he went himself.
  • This led us into another conversation; which shall be the subject of my
  • next.
  • LETTER XXXIII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • Mr. Lovelace told me, that on the supposition that his proposal in
  • relation to my cousin Morden might not be accepted, he had been studying
  • to find out, if possible, some other expedient that might be agreeable,
  • in order to convince me, that he preferred my satisfaction to his own.
  • He then offered to go himself, and procure my Hannah to come and
  • attend me. As I had declined the service of either of the young Misses
  • Sorlings, he was extremely solicitous, he said, that I should have a
  • servant in whose integrity I might confide.
  • I told him, that you would be so kind as to send to engage Hannah, if
  • possible.
  • If any thing, he said, should prevent Hannah from coming, suppose he
  • himself waited upon Miss Howe, to desire her to lend me her servant till
  • I was provided to my mind?
  • I said, your mother's high displeasure at the step I had taken, (as she
  • supposed, voluntarily,) had deprived me of an open assistance of that
  • sort from you.
  • He was amazed, so much as Mrs. Howe herself used to admire me, and so
  • great an influence as Miss Howe was supposed, and deserved to have
  • over her mother, that Mrs. Howe should take upon herself to be so much
  • offended with me. He wished that the man, who took such pains to keep up
  • and enflame the passions of my father and uncles, were not at the bottom
  • of this mischief too.
  • I was afraid, I said, that my brother was: or else my uncle Antony, I
  • dared to say, would not have taken such pains to set Mrs. Howe against
  • me, as I understood he had done.
  • Since I had declined visiting Lady Sarah, and Lady Betty, he asked me,
  • if I should admit of a visit from his cousin Montague, and accept of a
  • servant of hers for the present?
  • That was not, I said, an acceptable proposal: but I would first see if
  • my friends would send me my clothes, that I might not make such a giddy
  • and runaway appearance to any of his relations.
  • If I pleased, he would take another journey to Windsor, to make a more
  • particular inquiry amongst the canons, or in any worthy family.
  • Were not his objections as to the publicness of the place, I asked him,
  • as strong now as before?
  • I remember, my dear, in one of your former letters, you mentioned London
  • as the most private place to be in:* and I said, that since he made such
  • pretences against leaving me here, as shewed he had no intention to do
  • so; and since he engaged to go from me, and leave me to pursue my
  • own measures, if I were elsewhere; and since his presence made these
  • lodgings inconvenient to me; I should not be disinclined to go to
  • London, did I know any body there.
  • * See Vol. II. Letter XXXVII.
  • As he had several times proposed London to me, I expected that he would
  • eagerly have embraced that motion from me. But he took not ready hold of
  • it: yet I thought his eye approved of it.
  • We are both great watchers of each other's eyes; and, indeed, seem to be
  • more than half afraid of each other.
  • He then made a grateful proposal to me: 'that I would send for my Norton
  • to attend me.'*
  • * The reader is referred to Mr. Lovelace's next letter, for his motives
  • in making the several proposals of which the Lady is willing to think so
  • well.
  • He saw by my eyes, he said, that he had at last been happy in an
  • expedient, which would answer the wishes of us both. Why, says he, did
  • I not think of it before?--And snatching my hand, Shall I write, Madam?
  • Shall I send? Shall I go and fetch the worthy woman myself?
  • After a little consideration, I told him that this was indeed a grateful
  • motion: but that I apprehended it would put her to a difficulty which
  • she would not be able to get over; as it would make a woman of her known
  • prudence appear to countenance a fugitive daughter in opposition to
  • her parents; and as her coming to me would deprive her of my mother's
  • favour, without its being in my power to make it up to her.
  • O my beloved creature! said he, generously enough, let not this be
  • an obstacle. I will do every thing for Mrs. Norton you wish to have
  • done.--Let me go for her.
  • More coolly than perhaps his generosity deserved, I told him it was
  • impossible but I must soon hear from my friends. I should not, mean
  • time, embroil any body with them. Not Mrs. Norton especially, from whose
  • interest in, and mediation with, my mother, I might expect some good,
  • were she to keep herself in a neutral state: that, besides, the good
  • woman had a mind above her fortune; and would sooner want than be
  • beholden to any body improperly.
  • Improperly! said he.--Have not persons of merit a right to all the
  • benefits conferred upon them?--Mrs. Norton is so good a woman, that I
  • shall think she lays me under an obligation if she will put it in my
  • power to serve her; although she were not to augment it, by giving me
  • the opportunity, at the same time, of contributing to your pleasure and
  • satisfaction.
  • How could this man, with such powers of right thinking, be so far
  • depraved by evil habits, as to disgrace his talents by wrong acting?
  • Is there not room, after all, thought I, at the time, to hope (as he so
  • lately led me to hope) that the example it will behove me, for both
  • our sakes, to endeavour to set him, may influence him to a change of
  • manners, in which both may find our account?
  • Give me leave, Sir, said I, to tell you, there is a strange mixture in
  • your mind. You must have taken pains to suppress many good motions
  • and reflections as they arose, or levity must have been surprisingly
  • predominant in it.--But as to the subject we were upon, there is no
  • taking any resolutions till I hear from my friends.
  • Well, Madam, I can only say, I would find out some expedient, if I
  • could, that should be agreeable to you. But since I cannot, will you be
  • so good as to tell me what you would wish to have done? Nothing in the
  • world but I will comply with, excepting leaving you here, at such a
  • distance from the place I shall be in, if any thing should happen; and
  • in a place where my gossiping rascals have made me in a manner public,
  • for want of proper cautions at first.
  • These vermin, added he, have a pride they can hardly rein-in, when
  • they serve a man of family. They boast of their master's pedigree and
  • descent, as if they were related to him. Nor is any thing they know of
  • him, or of his affairs, a secret to one another, were it a matter that
  • would hang him.
  • If so, thought I, men of family should take care to give them subjects
  • worth boasting of.
  • I am quite at a loss, said I, what to do or where to go. Would you, Mr.
  • Lovelace, in earnest, advise me to think of going to London?
  • And I looked at him with stedfastness. But nothing could I gather from
  • his looks.
  • At first, Madam, said he, I was for proposing London, as I was then more
  • apprehensive of pursuit. But as your relations seem cooler on that head,
  • I am the more indifferent about the place you go to.--So as you are
  • pleased, so as you are easy, I shall be happy.
  • This indifference of his to London, I cannot but say, made me incline
  • the more to go thither. I asked him (to hear what he would say) if he
  • could recommend me to any particular place in London?
  • No, he said: none that was fit for me, or that I should like. His friend
  • Belford, indeed, had very handsome lodgings near Soho-square, at a
  • relation's, whose wife was a woman of virtue and honour. These, as Mr.
  • Belford was generally in the country, he could borrow till I was better
  • accommodated.
  • I was resolved to refuse these at the first mention, as I should any
  • other he had named. Nevertheless, I will see, thought I, if he has
  • really thought of these for me. If I break off the talk here, and he
  • resume this proposal with earnestness in the morning, I shall apprehend
  • that he is less indifferent than he seems to be about my going to
  • London, and that he has already a lodging in his eye for me. And then I
  • will not go at all.
  • But after such generous motions from him, I really think it a little
  • barbarous to act and behave as if I thought him capable of the blackest
  • and most ungrateful baseness. But his character, his principles, are so
  • faulty! He is so light, so vain, so various, that there is no certainty
  • that he will be next hour what he is this. Then, my dear, I have no
  • guardian now; no father, no mother! only God and my vigilance to depend
  • upon. And I have no reason to expect a miracle in my favour.
  • Well, Sir, said I, [rising to leave him,] something must be resolved
  • upon: but I will postpone this subject till to-morrow morning.
  • He would fain have engaged me longer: but I said I would see him as
  • early as he pleased in the morning. He might think of any convenient
  • place in London, or near it, in mean time.
  • And so I retired from him. As I do from my pen; hoping for better rest
  • for the few hours that remain of this night than I have had of a long
  • time.
  • CLARISSA HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXXIV
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN CONTINUATION.] MONDAY MORNING, APRIL 17.
  • Late as I went to bed, I have had very little rest. Sleep and I have
  • quarreled; and although I court it, it will not be friends. I hope its
  • fellow-irreconcilables at Harlowe-place enjoy its balmy comforts. Else
  • that will be an aggravation of my fault. My brother and sister, I dare
  • say, want it not.
  • Mr. Lovelace, who is an early riser, as well as I, joined me in the
  • garden about six; and after the usual salutations, asked me to resume
  • our last night's subject. It was upon lodgings at London, he said.
  • I think you mentioned one to me, Sir--Did you not?
  • Yes, Madam, [but, watching the turn of my countenance,] rather as what
  • you would be welcome to, than perhaps approve of.
  • I believe so too. To go to town upon an uncertainty, I own, is not
  • agreeable: but to be obliged to any persons of your acquaintance, when
  • I want to be thought independent of you; and to a person, especially, to
  • whom my friends are to direct to me, if they vouchsafe to take notice of
  • me at all, is an absurd thing to mention.
  • He did not mention it as what he imagined I would accept, but only to
  • confirm to me what he had said, that he himself knew of none fit for me.
  • Has not your family, Madam, some one tradesman they deal with, who has
  • conveniences of this kind? I would make it worth such a person's while
  • to keep his secret of your being at his house. Traders are dealers in
  • pins, said he, and will be more obliged by a penny customer, than by a
  • pound present, because it is in their way: yet will refuse neither, any
  • more than a lawyer or a man of office his fee.
  • My father's tradesmen, I said, would, no doubt, be the first employed to
  • find me out. So that that proposal was as wrong as the other. And who
  • is it that a creature so lately in favour with all her friends can apply
  • to, in such a situation as mine, but must be (at least) equally the
  • friends of her relations.
  • We had a good deal of discourse upon the same topic. But, at last, the
  • result was this--He wrote a letter to one Mr. Doleman, a married man,
  • of fortune and character, (I excepting to Mr. Belford,) desiring him
  • to provide decent apartments ready furnished [I had told him what they
  • should be] for a single woman; consisting of a bed-chamber; another for
  • a maidservant; with the use of a dining-room or parlour. This letter he
  • gave me to peruse; and then sealed it up, and dispatched it away in my
  • presence, by one of his own servants, who, having business in town, is
  • to bring back an answer.
  • I attend the issue of it; holding myself in readiness to set out for
  • London, unless you, my dear, advise the contrary.
  • LETTER XXXV
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. SAT., SUNDAY, MONDAY.
  • He gives, in several letters, the substance of what is
  • contained in the last seven of the Lady's.
  • He tells his friend, that calling at The Lawn, in his way to
  • M. Hall, (for he owns that he went not to Windsor,) he
  • found the letters from Lady Betty Lawrance, and his cousin
  • Montague, which Mrs. Greme was about sending to him by a
  • special messenger.
  • He gives the particulars, from Mrs. Greme's report, of what
  • passed between the Lady and her, as in Letter VI. and
  • makes such declarations to Mrs. Greme of his honour and
  • affection to the Lady, as put her upon writing the letter to
  • her sister Sorlings, the contents of which are in Letter
  • XXVIII.
  • He then accounts, as follows, for the serious humour he
  • found her in on his return:
  • Upon such good terms when we parted, I was surprised to find so solemn a
  • brow upon my return, and her charming eyes red with weeping. But when I
  • had understood she had received letters from Miss Howe, it was natural
  • to imagine that that little devil had put her out of humour with me.
  • It is easy for me to perceive, that my charmer is more sullen when
  • she receives, and has perused, a letter from that vixen, than at other
  • times. But as the sweet maid shews, even then, more of passive grief,
  • than of active spirit, I hope she is rather lamenting than plotting.
  • And, indeed, for what now should she plot? when I am become a reformed
  • man, and am hourly improving in my morals?--Nevertheless, I must
  • contrive some way or other to get at their correspondence--only to see
  • the turn of it; that's all.
  • But no attempt of this kind must be made yet. A detected invasion, in an
  • article so sacred, would ruin me beyond retrieve. Nevertheless, it vexes
  • me to the heart to think that she is hourly writing her whole mind on
  • all that passes between her and me, I under the same roof with her,
  • yet kept at such awful distance, that I dare not break into a
  • correspondence, that may perhaps be a mean to defeat all my devices.
  • Would it be very wicked, Jack, to knock her messenger on the head, as
  • he is carrying my beloved's letters, or returning from Miss Howe's?--To
  • attempt to bribe him, and not succeed, would utterly ruin me. And the
  • man seems to be one used to poverty, one who can sit down satisfied with
  • it, and enjoy it; contented with hand-to-mouth conveniencies, and not
  • aiming to live better to-morrow, than he does to-day, and than he did
  • yesterday. Such a one is above temptation, unless it could come clothed
  • in the guise of truth and trust. What likelihood of corrupting a man who
  • has no hope, no ambition?
  • Yet the rascal has but half life, and groans under that. Should I be
  • answerable in his case for a whole life?--But hang the fellow! Let him
  • live. Were I king, or a minister of state, an Antonio Perez,* it were
  • another thing. And yet, on second thoughts, am I not a rake, as it is
  • called? And who ever knew a rake stick at any thing? But thou knowest,
  • Jack, that the greatest half of my wickedness is vapour, to shew my
  • invention; and to prove that I could be mischievous if I would.
  • * Antonio Perez was first minister of Philip II. king of Spain, by whose
  • command he caused Don Juan de Escovedo to be assassinated: which brought
  • on his own ruin, through the perfidy of his viler master.--Gedde's
  • Tracts.
  • When he comes to that part where the Lady says (Letter
  • XXIX.) in a sarcastic way, waving her hand, and bowing,
  • 'Excuse me, good Mr. Lovelace, that I am willing to think
  • the best of my father,' he gives a description of her air
  • and manner, greatly to her advantage; and says,
  • I could hardly forbear taking her into my arms upon it, in spite of an
  • expected tempest. So much wit, so much beauty, such a lively manner,
  • and such exceeding quickness and penetration! O Belford! she must be
  • nobody's but mine. I can now account for and justify Herod's command to
  • destroy his Mariamne, if he returned not alive from his interview with
  • Caesar: for were I to know that it were but probable that any other
  • man were to have this charming creature, even after my death, the very
  • thought would be enough to provoke me to cut that man's throat, were he
  • a prince.
  • I may be deemed by this lady a rapid, a boisterous lover--and she may
  • like me the less for it: but all the ladies I have met with, till now,
  • loved to raise a tempest, and to enjoy it: nor did they ever raise it,
  • but I enjoyed it too!--Lord send us once happily to London!
  • Mr. Lovelace gives the following account of his rude
  • rapture, when he seized her hand, and put her, by his WILD
  • manner, as she expresses it, Letter XXXIX. into such terror.
  • Darkness and light, I swore, were convertible at her pleasure: she could
  • make any subject plausible. I was all error: she all perfection. And I
  • snatched her hand; and, more than kissed it, I was ready to devour it.
  • There was, I believe, a kind of phrensy in my manner, which threw her
  • into a panic, like that of Semele perhaps, when the Thunderer, in all
  • his majesty, surrounded with ten thousand celestial burning-glasses, was
  • about to scorch her into a cinder.
  • *****
  • Had not my heart misgiven me, and had I not, just in time, recollected
  • that she was not so much in my power, but that she might abandon me at
  • her pleasure, having more friends in that house than I had, I should at
  • that moment have made offers, that would have decided all, one way
  • or other.--But, apprehending that I had shewn too much meaning in my
  • passion, I gave it another turn.--But little did the charmer think that
  • an escape either she or I had (as the event might have proved) from
  • that sudden gust of passion, which had like to have blown me into
  • her arms.--She was born, I told her, to make me happy and to save a
  • soul.----
  • He gives the rest of his vehement speech pretty nearly in
  • the same words as the Lady gives them: and then proceeds:
  • I saw she was frighted: and she would have had reason had the scene been
  • London, and that place in London, which I have in view to carry her to.
  • She confirmed me in my apprehension, that I had alarmed her too much:
  • she told me, that she saw what my boasted regard to her injunctions was;
  • and she would take proper measures upon it, as I should find: that she
  • was shocked at my violent airs; and if I hoped any favour from her, I
  • must that instant withdraw, and leave her to her recollection.
  • She pronounced this in such a manner as shewed she was set upon it; and,
  • having stepped out of the gentle, and polite part I had so newly engaged
  • to act, I thought ready obedience was the best atonement. And indeed I
  • was sensible, from her anger and repulses, that I wanted time myself
  • for recollection. And so I withdrew, with the same veneration as a
  • petitioning subject would withdraw from the presence of his sovereign.
  • But, O Belford! had she had but the least patience with me--had she but
  • made me think she would forgive this initiatory ardour--surely she will
  • not be always thus guarded.--
  • I had not been a moment by myself, but I was sensible that I had half
  • forfeited my newly-assumed character. It is exceedingly difficult, thou
  • seest, for an honest man to act in disguises: as the poet says, Thrust
  • Nature back with a pitchfork, it will return. I recollected, that what
  • she had insisted upon was really a part of that declared will before she
  • left her father's house, to which in another case (to humble her) I had
  • pretended to have an inviolable regard. And when I had remembered her
  • words of taking her measures accordingly, I was resolved to sacrifice
  • a leg or an arm to make all up again, before she had time to determine
  • upon any new measures.
  • How seasonably to this purpose have come in my aunt's and cousin's
  • letters!
  • *****
  • I have sent in again and again to implore her to admit me to her
  • presence. But she will conclude a letter she is writing to Miss Howe,
  • before she will see me.--I suppose to give her an account of what has
  • just passed.
  • *****
  • Curse upon her perverse tyranny! How she makes me wait for an humble
  • audience, though she has done writing for some time! A prince begging
  • for her upon his knees should not prevail upon me to spare her, if I can
  • but get her to London--Oons! Jack, I believe I have bit my lip through
  • for vexation!--But one day her's shall smart for it.
  • Mr. Lovelace, beginning a new date, gives an account of his
  • admittance, and of the conversation that followed: which
  • differing only in style from that of the Lady gives in the
  • next letter is omitted.
  • He collects the lady's expressions, which his pride cannot
  • bear: such as, That he is a stranger to the decorums which
  • she thought inseparable from a man of birth and education;
  • and that he is not the accomplished man he imagines himself
  • to be; and threatens to remember them against her.
  • He values himself upon his proposals and speeches, which he
  • gives to his friend pretty much to the same purpose that
  • the Lady does in her four last letters.
  • After mentioning his proposal to her that she would borrow a
  • servant from Miss Howe, till Hannah could come, he writes
  • as follows:
  • Thou seest, Belford, that my charmer has no notion that Miss Howe
  • herself is but a puppet danced upon my wires at second or third hand. To
  • outwit, and impel, as I please, two such girls as these, who think they
  • know every thing; and, by taking advantage of the pride and ill-nature
  • of the old ones of both families, to play them off likewise at the very
  • time they think they are doing me spiteful displeasure; what charming
  • revenge!--Then the sweet creature, when I wished that her brother was
  • not at the bottom of Mrs. Howe's resentment, to tell me, that she was
  • afraid he was, or her uncle would not have appeared against her to that
  • lady!--Pretty dear! how innocent!
  • But don't think me the cause neither of her family's malice and
  • resentment. It is all in their hearts. I work but with their materials.
  • They, if left to their own wicked direction, would perhaps express their
  • revenge by fire and faggot; that is to say, by the private dagger, or
  • by Lord Chief Justices' warrants, by law, and so forth: I only point
  • the lightning, and teach it where to dart, without the thunder. In other
  • words, I only guide the effects: the cause is in their malignant hearts:
  • and while I am doing a little mischief, I prevent a great deal.
  • Thus he exalts on her mentioning London:
  • I wanted her to propose London herself. This made me again mention
  • Windsor. If you would have a woman do one thing, you must always propose
  • another, and that the very contrary: the sex! the very sex! as I hope
  • to be saved!--Why, Jack, they lay a man under a necessity to deal doubly
  • with them! And, when they find themselves outwitted, they cry out upon
  • an honest fellow, who has been too hard for them at their own weapons.
  • I could hardly contain myself. My heart was at my throat.--Down, down,
  • said I to myself, exuberant exultation! A sudden cough befriended me;
  • I again turned to her, all as indifferenced over as a girl at the first
  • long-expected question, who waits for two more. I heard out the rest of
  • her speech: and when she had done, instead of saying any thing to her
  • for London, I advised her to send for Mrs. Norton.
  • As I knew she would be afraid of lying under obligation, I could have
  • proposed to do so much for the good woman and her son, as would have
  • made her resolve that I should do nothing: this, however, not merely to
  • avoid expense. But there was no such thing as allowing of the presence
  • of Mrs. Norton. I might as well have had her mother or her aunt Hervey
  • with her. Hannah, had she been able to come, and had she actually come,
  • I could have done well enough with. What do I keep fellows idling in the
  • country for, but to fall in love, and even to marry those whom I would
  • have them marry? Nor, upon second thoughts, would the presence of her
  • Norton, or of her aunt, or even of her mother, have saved the dear
  • creature, had I decreed her fall.
  • How unequal is a modest woman to the adventure, when she throws herself
  • into the power of a rake! Punctilio will, at any time, stand for reason
  • with such an one. She cannot break through a well-tested modesty. None
  • but the impudent little rogues, who can name the parson and the church
  • before you think of either, and undress and go to bed before you the
  • next hour, should think of running away with a man.
  • *****
  • I am in the right train now. Every hour, I doubt not, will give me an
  • increasing interest in the affections of this proud beauty. I have just
  • carried unpoliteness far enough to make her afraid of me; and to shew
  • her, that I am no whiner. Every instance of politeness, now, will give
  • me double credit with her. My next point will be to make her acknowledge
  • a lambent flame, a preference of me to all other men, at least: and
  • then my happy hour is not far off. An acknowledged reciprocality in love
  • sanctifies every little freedom: and little freedoms beget greater.
  • And if she call me ungenerous, I can call her cruel. The sex love to be
  • called cruel. Many a time have I complained of cruelty, even in the act
  • of yielding, because I knew it gratified the fair one's pride.
  • Mentioning that he had only hinted at Mr. Belford's lodgings as an instance to confirm what he had told her, that he knew of none in
  • London fit for her, he says,
  • I had a mind to alarm her with something furthest from my purpose; for
  • (as much as she disliked my motion) I intend nothing by it: Mrs. Osgood
  • is too pious a woman; and would have been more her friend than mine.
  • I had a view, moreover, to give her an high opinion of her own sagacity.
  • I love, when I dig a put, to have my prey tumble in with secure feet,
  • and open eyes: then a man can look down upon her, with an O-ho, charmer,
  • how came you there?
  • MONDAY, APRIL 17.
  • I have just now received a fresh piece of intelligence from my agent,
  • honest Joseph Leman. Thou knowest the history of poor Miss Betterton of
  • Nottingham. James Harlowe is plotting to revive the resentments of her
  • family against me. The Harlowes took great pains, some time ago, to
  • endeavour to get to the bottom of that story. But now the foolish devils
  • are resolved to do something in it, if they can. My head is working to
  • make this booby 'squire a plotter, and a clever fellow, in order to turn
  • his plots to my advantage, supposing his sister shall aim to keep me
  • at arm's length when in town, and to send me from her. But I will, in
  • proper time, let thee see Joseph's letter, and what I shall answer to
  • it.* To know in time a designed mischief, is, with me, to disappoint it,
  • and to turn it upon the contriver's head.
  • * See Letters XLVII., XLVIII. of this volume.
  • Joseph is plaguy squeamish again; but I know he only intends by his
  • qualms to swell his merits with me. O Belford! Belford! what a vile
  • corruptible rogue, whether in poor or rich, is human nature!
  • LETTER XXXVI
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN ANSWER TO LETTERS
  • XXVIII.--XXXIV. INCLUSIVE.] TUESDAY, APRIL 18.
  • You have a most implacable family. Another visit from your uncle Antony
  • has not only confirmed my mother an enemy to our correspondence, but has
  • almost put her upon treading in their steps.--
  • But to other subjects:
  • You plead generously for Mr. Hickman. Perhaps, with regard to him, I
  • may have done, as I have often done in singing--begun a note or key
  • too high; and yet, rather than begin again, proceed, though I strain
  • my voice, or spoil my tune. But this is evident, the man is the more
  • observant for it; and you have taught me, that the spirit which is the
  • humbler for ill usage, will be insolent upon better. So, good and grave
  • Mr. Hickman, keep your distance a little longer, I beseech you. You have
  • erected an altar to me; and I hope you will not refuse to bow to it.
  • But you ask me, if I would treat Mr. Lovelace, were he to be in Mr.
  • Hickman's place, as I do Mr. Hickman? Why really, my dear, I believe I
  • should not.--I have been very sagely considering this point of behaviour
  • (in general) on both sides in courtship; and I will very candidly tell
  • you the result. I have concluded, that politeness, even to excess,
  • is necessary on the men's part, to bring us to listen to their first
  • addresses, in order to induce us to bow our necks to a yoke so unequal.
  • But, upon my conscience, I very much doubt whether a little intermingled
  • insolence is not requisite from them, to keep up that interest, when
  • once it has got footing. Men must not let us see, that we can make
  • fools of them. And I think, that smooth love; that is to say, a passion
  • without rubs; in other words, a passion without passion; is like a
  • sleepy stream that is hardly seen to give motion to a straw. So that,
  • sometimes to make us fear, and even, for a short space, to hate the
  • wretch, is productive of the contrary extreme.
  • If this be so, Lovelace, than whom no man was ever more polite and
  • obsequious at the beginning, has hit the very point. For his turbulence
  • since, his readiness to offend, and his equal readiness to humble
  • himself, (as must keep a woman's passion alive); and at last tire her
  • into a non-resistance that shall make her as passive as a tyrant-husband
  • would wish her to be.
  • I verily think, that the different behaviour of our two heroes to
  • their heroines make out this doctrine to demonstration. I am so much
  • accustomed, for my own part, to Hickman's whining, creeping, submissive
  • courtship, that I now expect nothing but whine and cringe from him: and
  • am so little moved with his nonsense, that I am frequently forced to go
  • to my harpsichord, to keep me awake, and to silence his humdrum. Whereas
  • Lovelace keeps up the ball with a witness, and all his address and
  • conversation is one continual game at raquet.
  • Your frequent quarrels and reconciliations verify this observation: and
  • I really believe, that, could Hickman have kept my attention alive after
  • the Lovelace manner, only that he had preserved his morals, I should
  • have married the man by this time. But then he must have set out
  • accordingly. For now he can never, never recover himself, that's
  • certain; but must be a dangler to the end of the courtship-chapter; and,
  • what is still worse for him, a passive to the end of his life.
  • Poor Hickman! perhaps you'll say.
  • I have been called your echo--Poor Hickman! say I.
  • You wonder, my dear, that Mr. Lovelace took not notice to you over-night
  • of the letters of Lady Betty and his cousin. I don't like his keeping
  • such a material and relative circumstance, as I may call it, one moment
  • from you. By his communicating the contents of them to you next day,
  • when you was angry with him, it looks as if he withheld them for
  • occasional pacifiers; and if so, must he not have had a forethought that
  • he might give you cause for anger? Of all the circumstances that have
  • happened since you have been with him, I think I like this the least:
  • this alone, my dear, small as it might look to an indifferent eye, in
  • mine warrants all your caution. Yet I think that Mrs. Greme's letter to
  • her sister Sorlings: his repeated motions for Hannah's attendance; and
  • for that of one of the widow Sorlings's daughters; and, above all, for
  • that of Mrs. Norton; are agreeable counterbalances. Were it not for
  • these circumstances, I should have said a great deal more of the other.
  • Yet what a foolish fellow, to let you know over-night that he had such
  • letters!--I can't tell what to make of him.
  • I am pleased with the contents of these ladies' letters. And the more,
  • as I have caused the family to be again sounded, and find that they are
  • all as desirous as ever of your alliance.
  • They really are (every one of them) your very great admirers. And as for
  • Lord M., he is so much pleased with you, and with the confidence, as
  • he calls it, which you have reposed in his nephew, that he vows he will
  • disinherit him, if he reward it not as he ought. You must take care,
  • that you lose not both families.
  • I hear Mrs. Norton is enjoined, as she values the favour of the
  • other family, not to correspond either with you or with me--Poor
  • creatures!--But they are your--yet they are not your relations, neither,
  • I believe. Had you had any other nurse, I should have concluded you had
  • been changed. I suffer by their low malice--excuse me, therefore.
  • You really hold this man to his good behaviour with more spirit than
  • I thought you mistress of; especially when I judged of you by that
  • meekness which you always contended for, as the proper distinction of
  • the female character; and by the love, which (think as you please) you
  • certainly have for him. You may rather be proud of than angry at the
  • imputation; since you are the only woman I ever knew, read, or heard
  • of, whose love was so much governed by her prudence. But when once the
  • indifference of the husband takes place of the ardour of the lover, it
  • will be your turn: and, if I am not mistaken, this man, who is the only
  • self-admirer I ever knew who was not a coxcomb, will rather in his day
  • expect homage than pay it.
  • Your handsome husbands, my dear, make a wife's heart ache very often:
  • and though you are as fine a person of a woman, at the least, as he is
  • of a man, he will take too much delight in himself to think himself more
  • indebted to your favour, than you are to his distinction and preference
  • of you. But no man, take your finer mind with your very fine person, can
  • deserve you. So you must be contented, should your merit be underrated;
  • since that must be so, marry whom you will. Perhaps you will think I
  • indulge these sort of reflections against your Narcissus's of men, to
  • keep my mother's choice for me of Hickman in countenance with myself--I
  • don't know but there is something in it; at least, enough to have given
  • birth to the reflection.
  • I think there can be no objection to your going to London. There, as
  • in the centre, you will be in the way of hearing from every body, and
  • sending to any body. And then you will put all his sincerity to the
  • test, as to his promised absence, and such like.
  • But indeed, my dear, I think you have nothing for it but marriage. You
  • may try (that you may say you have tried) what your relations can be
  • brought to: but the moment they refuse your proposals, submit to the
  • yoke, and make the best of it. He will be a savage, indeed, if he makes
  • you speak out. Yet, it is my opinion, that you must bend a little; for
  • he cannot bear to be thought slightly of.
  • This was one of his speeches once; I believe designed for me--'A woman
  • who means one day to favour her lover with her hand, should show the
  • world, for her own sake, that she distinguishes him from the common
  • herd.'
  • Shall I give you another very fine sentence of his, and in the
  • true libertine style, as he spoke it, throwing out his challenging
  • hand?--'D--n him, if he would marry the first princess on earth, if
  • he but thought she balanced a minute in her choice of him, or of an
  • emperor.'
  • All the world, in short, expect you to have this man. They think, that
  • you left your father's house for this very purpose. The longer the
  • ceremony is delayed, the worse appearance it will have in the world's
  • eye. And it will not be the fault of some of your relations, if a slur
  • be not thrown upon your reputation, while you continue unmarried. Your
  • uncle Antony, in particular, speaks rough and vile things, grounded upon
  • the morals of his brother Orson. But hitherto your admirable character
  • has antidoted the poison; the detractor is despised, and every one's
  • indignation raised against him.
  • I have written through many interruptions: and you will see the first
  • sheet creased and rumpled, occasioned by putting it into my bosom on my
  • mother's sudden coming upon me. We have had one very pretty debate,
  • I will assure you; but it is not worth while to trouble you with the
  • particulars.--But upon my world--no matter though--
  • Your Hannah cannot attend you. The poor girl left her place about a
  • fortnight ago, on account of the rheumatic disorder, which has confined
  • her to her room ever since. She burst into tears, when Kitty carried
  • to her your desire of having her with you; and called herself doubly
  • unhappy, that she could not wait upon a mistress whom she so dearly
  • loved.
  • Had my mother answered my wishes, I should have been sorry Mr. Lovelace
  • had been the first proposer of my Kitty for your attendant, till Hannah
  • should come. To be altogether among strangers, and a stranger to attend
  • you every time you remove, is a very disagreeable thing. But your
  • considerateness and bounty will make you faithful ones wherever you go.
  • You must take your own way: but, if you suffer any inconvenience, either
  • as to clothes or money, that it is in my power to remedy, I will never
  • forgive you. My mother, (if that is your objection) need not know any
  • thing of the matter.
  • We have all our defects: we have often regretted the particular fault,
  • which, though in venerable characters, we must have been blind not to
  • see.
  • I remember what you once said to me; and the caution was good: Let us,
  • my Nancy, were your words; let us, who have not the same failings
  • as those we censure, guard against other and greater in ourselves.
  • Nevertheless, I must needs tell you, that my mother has vexed me a
  • little very lately, by some instances of her jealous narrowness. I will
  • mention one of them, though I did not intend it. She wanted to borrow
  • thirty guineas of me: only while she got a note changed. I said I could
  • lend her but eight or ten. Eight or ten would not do: she thought I was
  • much richer. I could have told her, I was much cunninger than to let her
  • know my stock; which, on a review, I find ninety-five guineas; and all
  • of them most heartily at your service.
  • I believe your uncle Tony put her upon this wise project; for she was
  • out of cash in an hour after he left her.
  • If he did, you will judge that they intend to distress you. If it will
  • provoke you to demand your own in a legal way, I wish they would; since
  • their putting you upon that course will justify the necessity of your
  • leaving them. And as it is not for your credit to own that you were
  • tricked away contrary to your intention, this would afford a reason for
  • your going off, that I should make very good use of. You'll see, that
  • I approve of Lovelace's advice upon this subject. I am not willing to
  • allow the weight of your answer to him on that head, which perhaps ought
  • to be allowed it.*
  • * See Letter XXXI. of this volume.
  • You must be the less surprised at the inventions of this man, because of
  • his uncommon talents. Whatever he had turned his head to, he would have
  • excelled in; or been (or done things) extraordinary. He is said to be
  • revengeful: a very bad quality! I believe, indeed, he is a devil
  • in every thing but his foot--this, therefore, is my repeated
  • advice--provoke him not too much against yourself: but unchain him, and
  • let him loose upon your sister' Betty, and your brother's Joseph Leman.
  • This is resenting low: but I know to whom I write, or else I would go a
  • good deal higher, [I'll assure you.]
  • Your next, I suppose, will be from London. Pray direct it, and your
  • future letters, till further notice, to Mr. Hickman, at his own house.
  • He is entirely devoted to you. Don't take so heavily my mother's
  • partiality and prejudices. I hope I am past a baby.
  • Heaven preserve you, and make you as happy as I think you deserve to be,
  • prays
  • Your ever affectionate ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER XXXVII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE WEDN. MORNING, APRIL 19.
  • I am glad, my dear friend, that you approve of my removal to London.
  • The disagreement between your mother and you gives me inexpressible
  • affliction. I hope I think you both more unhappy than you are. But I
  • beseech you let me know the particulars of the debate you call a very
  • pretty one. I am well acquainted with your dialect. When I am informed
  • of the whole, let your mother have been ever so severe upon me, I
  • shall be easier a great deal.--Faulty people should rather deplore the
  • occasion they have given for anger than resent it.
  • If I am to be obliged to any body in England for money, it shall be to
  • you. Your mother need not know of your kindness to me, you say--but she
  • must know it, if it be done, and if she challenge my beloved friend upon
  • it; for would you either falsify or prevaricate?--I wish your mother
  • could be made easy on this head--forgive me, my dear,--but I
  • know--Yet once she had a better opinion of me.--O my inconsiderate
  • rashness!--Excuse me once more, I pray you.--Pride, when it is native,
  • will shew itself sometimes in the midst of mortifications--but my
  • stomach is down already.
  • *****
  • I am unhappy that I cannot have my worthy Hannah. I am sorry for the
  • poor creature's illness as for my own disappointment by it. Come, my
  • dear Miss Howe, since you press me to be beholden to you: and would
  • think me proud if I absolutely refused your favour; pray be so good as
  • to send her two guineas in my name.
  • If I have nothing for it, as you say, but matrimony, it yields little
  • comfort, that his relations do not despise the fugitive, as persons of
  • their rank and quality-pride might be supposed to do, for having been a
  • fugitive.
  • But O my cruel, thrice cruel uncle! to suppose--but my heart checks my
  • pen, and will not let it proceed, on an intimation so extremely shocking
  • as that which he supposes!--Yet, if thus they have been persuaded, no
  • wonder if they are irreconcilable.
  • This is all my hard-hearted brother's doings!--His surmisings:--God
  • forgive him--prays his injured sister!
  • LETTER XXXVIII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE THURSDAY, APRIL 20.
  • Mr. Lovelace's servant is already returned with an answer from his
  • friend Mr. Doleman, who has taken pains in his inquiries, and is very
  • particular. Mr. Lovelace brought me the letter as soon as he had read
  • it: and as he now knows that I acquaint you with every thing that he
  • offers, I desired him to let me send it to you for your perusal. Be
  • pleased to return it by the first opportunity. You will see by it, that
  • his friends in town have a notion that we are actually married.
  • TO ROBERT LOVELACE, ESQ. TUESDAY NIGHT, APRIL 18.
  • DEAR SIR,
  • I am extremely rejoiced to hear, that we shall so soon have you in town
  • after so long an absence. You will be the more welcome still, if what
  • report says, be true; which is, that you are actually married to the
  • fair lady upon whom we have heard you make such encomiums. Mrs. Doleman,
  • and my sister, both wish you joy if you are; and joy upon your near
  • prospect if you are not.
  • I have been in town for this week past, to get help if I could, from my
  • paralytic complaints; and am in a course for them. Which, nevertheless,
  • did not prevent me from making the desired inquiries. This is the
  • result.
  • You may have a first floor, well furnished, at a mercer's in
  • Belford-street, Covent-garden, with conveniencies for servants: and
  • these either by the quarter or month. The terms according to the
  • conveniences required.
  • Mrs. Doleman has seen lodgings in Norfolk-street and others in
  • Cecil-street; but though the prospects to the Thames and Surrey-hills
  • look inviting from both these streets, yet I suppose they are too near
  • the city.
  • The owner of those in Norfolk-street would have half the house go
  • together. It would be too much for your description therefore: and
  • I suppose, that when you think fit to declare your marriage, you will
  • hardly be in lodgings.
  • Those in Cecil-street are neat and convenient. The owner is a widow of
  • a good character; and she insists, that you take them for a twelvemonth
  • certain.
  • You may have good accommodations in Dover-street, at a widow's,
  • the relict of an officer in the guards, who dying soon after he had
  • purchased his commission (to which he had a good title by service,
  • and which cost him most part of what he had) she was obliged to let
  • lodgings.
  • This may possibly be an objection. But she is very careful, she says,
  • that she takes no lodgers, but of figure and reputation. She rents two
  • good houses, distant from each other, only joined by a large handsome
  • passage. The inner-house is the genteelest, and very elegantly
  • furnished; but you may have the use of a very handsome parlour in the
  • outer-house, if you choose to look into the street.
  • A little garden belongs to the inner-house, in which the old gentlewoman
  • has displayed a true female fancy; having crammed it with vases,
  • flower-pots, and figures, without number.
  • As these lodgings seemed to me the most likely to please you, I was more
  • particular in my inquiries about them. The apartments she has to let
  • are in the inner-house: they are a dining-room, two neat parlours, a
  • withdrawing-room, two or three handsome bedchambers, one with a pretty
  • light closet in it, which looks into the little garden, all furnished in
  • taste.
  • A dignified clergyman, his wife, and maiden daughter were the last who
  • lived in them. They have but lately quitted them, on his being presented
  • to a considerable church preferment in Ireland. The gentlewoman says
  • that he took the lodgings but for three months certain; but liked them
  • and her usage so well, that he continued in them two years; and left
  • them with regret, though on so good an account. She bragged, that this
  • was the way of all the lodgers she ever had, who staid with her four
  • times as long as they at first intended.
  • I had some knowledge of the colonel, who was always looked upon as a man
  • of honour. His relict I never saw before. I think she has a masculine
  • air, and is a little forbidding at first: but when I saw her behaviour
  • to two agreeable gentlewomen, her husband's nieces, whom, for that
  • reason, she calls doubly hers, and heard their praises of her, I could
  • impute her very bulk to good humour; since we seldom see your sour
  • peevish people plump. She lives reputably, and is, as I find, aforehand
  • in the world.
  • If these, or any other of the lodgings I have mentioned, be not
  • altogether to your lady's mind, she may continue in them the less while,
  • and choose others for herself.
  • The widow consents that you shall take them for a month only, and what
  • of them you please. The terms, she says, she will not fall out upon,
  • when she knows what your lady expects, and what her servants are to do,
  • or yours will undertake; for she observed that servants are generally
  • worse to deal with than their masters or mistresses.
  • The lady may board or not as she pleases.
  • As we suppose you were married, but that you have reason, from
  • family-differences, to keep it private for the present, I thought it not
  • amiss to hint as much to the widow (but as uncertainty, however);
  • and asked her, if she could, in that case, accommodate you and your
  • servants, as well as the lady and hers? She said, she could; and wished,
  • by all means, it were to be so: since the circumstance of a person's
  • being single, it not as well recommended as this lady, was one of the
  • usual exceptions.
  • If none of these lodgings please, you need not doubt very handsome ones
  • in or near Hanover-square, Soho-square, Golden-square, or in some of the
  • new streets about Grosvenor-square. And Mrs. Doleman, her sister,
  • and myself, most cordially join to offer to your good lady the best
  • accommodations we can make for her at Uxbridge (and also for you, if you
  • are the happy man we wish you to be), till she fits herself more to her
  • mind.
  • Let me add, that the lodgings at the mercer's, those in Cecil-street,
  • those at the widow's in Dover-street, any of them, may be entered upon
  • at a day's warning.
  • I am, my dear Sir, Your sincere and affectionate friend and servant,
  • THO. DOLEMAN.
  • You will easily guess, my dear, when you have read the letter, which
  • lodgings I made choice of. But first to try him, (as in so material
  • a point I thought I could not be too circumspect,) I seemed to prefer
  • those in Norfolk-street, for the very reason the writer gives why he
  • thought I would not; that is to say, for its neighbourhood to a city
  • so well governed as London is said to be. Nor should I have disliked a
  • lodging in the heart of it, having heard but indifferent accounts of the
  • liberties sometimes taken at the other end of the town.--Then seeming
  • to incline to the lodgings in Cecil-street--Then to the mercer's. But
  • he made no visible preference; and when I asked his opinion of the
  • widow gentlewoman's, he said he thought those the most to my taste and
  • convenience: but as he hoped that I would think lodgings necessary but
  • for a very little while, he knew not which to give his vote for.
  • I then fixed upon the widow's; and he has written accordingly to Mr.
  • Doleman, making my compliments to his lady and sister, for their kind
  • offer.
  • I am to have the dining-room, the bed-chamber with the light-closet, (of
  • which, if I stay any time at the widow's, I shall make great use,) and a
  • servant's room; and we propose to set out on Saturday morning. As for
  • a maid servant, poor Hannah's illness is a great disappointment to me:
  • but, as he observes, I can make the widow satisfaction for one of
  • hers, till I can get a servant to my mind. And you know I want not much
  • attendance.
  • *****
  • Mr. Lovelace has just now, of his own accord, given me five guineas for
  • poor Hannah. I send them inclosed. Be so good as to cause them to be
  • conveyed to her, and to let her know from whom they came.
  • He has obliged me much by this little mark of his considerateness.
  • Indeed I have the better opinion of him ever since he proposed her
  • return to me.
  • *****
  • I have just now another instance of his considerateness. He came to me,
  • and said that, on second thoughts, he could not bear that I should go up
  • to town without some attendant, were it but for the look of the thing to
  • the London widow and her nieces, who, according to his friend's account,
  • lived so genteelly; and especially as I required him to leave me so soon
  • after I arrived there, and so would be left alone among strangers. He
  • therefore sought that I might engage Mrs. Sorlings to lend me one of her
  • two maids, or let one of her daughters go up with me, and stay till I
  • were provided. And if the latter, the young gentlewoman, no doubt, would
  • be glad of so good an opportunity to see the curiosities of the town,
  • and would be a proper attendant on the same occasions.
  • I told him as I had done before, that the two young gentlewomen were so
  • equally useful in their way, and servants in a busy farm were so little
  • to be spared, that I should be loth to take them off their laudable
  • employments. Nor should I think much of diversions for one while; and so
  • the less want an attendant out of doors.
  • And now, my dear, lest any thing should happen, in so variable a
  • situation as mine, (which at present are more promising than ever yet
  • they have been since I quitted Harlowe-place,) I will snatch the
  • opportunity to subscribe myself
  • Your not unhoping and ever-obliged friend and servant, CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XXXIX
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. THURSDAY, APRIL 20.
  • He begins with communicating to him the letter he wrote to
  • Mr. Doleman, to procure suitable lodgings in town, and which
  • he sent away by the Lady's approbation: and then gives him a
  • copy of the answer to it (see p. 218): upon which he thus
  • expresses himself:
  • Thou knowest the widow; thou knowest her nieces; thou knowest the
  • lodgings: and didst thou ever read a letter more artfully couched
  • than this of Tom Doleman? Every possible objection anticipated! Every
  • accident provided against! Every tittle of it plot-proof!
  • Who could forbear smiling, to see my charmer, like a farcical dean and
  • chapter, choose what was before chosen for her; and sagaciously (as they
  • go in form to prayers, that Heaven would direct their choice) pondering
  • upon the different proposals, as if she would make me believe she had
  • a mind for some other? The dear sly rogue looking upon me, too, with a
  • view to discover some emotion in me. Emotions I had; but I can tell
  • her that they lay deeper than her eye could reach, though it had been a
  • sun-beam.
  • No confidence in me, fair one! None at all, 'tis plain. Thou wilt
  • not, if I were inclined to change my views, encourage me by a generous
  • reliance on my honour!--And shall it be said that I, a master of arts in
  • love, shall be overmatched by so unpractised a novice?
  • But to see the charmer so far satisfied with my contrivance as to borrow
  • my friend's letter, in order to satisfy Miss Howe likewise--!
  • Silly little rogues! to walk out into bye-paths on the strength of their
  • own judgment!--When nothing but experience can enable them to disappoint
  • us, and teach them grandmother-wisdom! When they have it indeed, then
  • may they sit down, like so many Cassandras, and preach caution to
  • others; who will as little mind them as they did their instructresses,
  • whenever a fine handsome confidant young fellow, such a one as thou
  • knowest who, comes across them.
  • But, Belford, didst thou not mind that sly rogue Doleman's naming
  • Dover-street for the widow's place of abode?--What dost thou think
  • could be meant by that?--'Tis impossible thou shouldst guess, so, not
  • to puzzle thee about it, suppose the Widow Sinclair's in Dover-street
  • should be inquired after by some officious person, in order to come at
  • characters [Miss Howe is as sly as the devil, and as busy to the full,]
  • and neither such a name, nor such a house, can be found in that street,
  • nor a house to answer the description; then will not the keenest hunter
  • in England be at a fault?
  • But how wilt thou do, methinks thou askest, to hinder the lady from
  • resenting the fallacy, and mistrusting thee the more on that account,
  • when she finds it out to be in another street?
  • Pho! never mind that: either I shall have a way for it, or we shall
  • thoroughly understand one another by that time; or if we don't, she'll
  • know enough of me, not to wonder at such a peccadilla.
  • But how wilt thou hinder the lady from apprizing her friend of the real
  • name?
  • She must first know it herself, monkey, must she not?
  • Well, but how wilt thou do to hinder her from knowing the street, and
  • her friend from directing letters thither, which will be the same thing
  • as if the name were known?
  • Let me alone for that too.
  • If thou further objectest, that Tom Doleman, is too great a dunce to
  • write such a letter in answer to mine:--Canst thou not imagine that, in
  • order to save honest Tom all this trouble, I who know the town so well,
  • could send him a copy of what he should write, and leave him nothing to
  • do but transcribe?
  • What now sayest thou to me, Belford?
  • And suppose I had designed this task of inquiry for thee; and suppose
  • the lady excepted against thee for no other reason in the world, but
  • because of my value for thee? What sayest thou to the lady, Jack?
  • This it is to have leisure upon my hands!--What a matchless plotter
  • thy friend!--Stand by, and let me swell!--I am already as big as an
  • elephant, and ten times wiser!--Mightier too by far! Have I not reason
  • to snuff the moon with my proboscis?--Lord help thee for a poor, for a
  • very poor creature!--Wonder not that I despise thee heartily; since the
  • man who is disposed immoderately to exalt himself, cannot do it but by
  • despising every body else in proportion.
  • I shall make good use of the Dolemanic hint of being married. But I will
  • not tell thee all at once. Nor, indeed, have I thoroughly digested that
  • part of my plot. When a general must regulate himself by the motions of
  • a watchful adversary, how can he say beforehand what he will, or what he
  • will not, do?
  • Widow SINCLAIR, didst thou not say, Lovelace?--
  • Ay, SINCLAIR, Jack!--Remember the name! SINCLAIR, I repeat. She has no
  • other. And her features being broad and full-blown, I will suppose her
  • to be of Highland extraction; as her husband the colonel [mind that too]
  • was a Scot, as brave, as honest.
  • I never forget the minutiae in my contrivances. In all matters that
  • admit of doubt, the minutiae, closely attended to and provided for, are
  • of more service than a thousand oaths, vows, and protestations made to
  • supply the neglect of them, especially when jealousy has made its way in
  • the working mind.
  • Thou wouldst wonder if thou knewest one half of my providences. To give
  • thee but one--I have already been so good as to send up a list of books
  • to be procured for the lady's closet, mostly at second hand. And
  • thou knowest that the women there are all well read. But I will not
  • anticipate--Besides, it looks as if I were afraid of leaving any thing
  • to my old friend CHANCE; which has many a time been an excellent second
  • to me, and ought not be affronted or despised; especially by one who has
  • the art of making unpromising incidents turn out in his favour.
  • LETTER XL
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE WEDNESDAY, APRIL 19.
  • I have a piece of intelligence to give you, which concerns you much to
  • know.
  • Your brother having been assured that you are not married, has taken a
  • resolution to find you out, waylay you, and carry you off. A friend of
  • his, a captain of a ship, undertakes to get you on ship-board, and to
  • sail away with you, either to Hull or Leith, in the way to one of your
  • brother's houses.
  • They are very wicked: for in spite of your virtue they conclude you to
  • be ruined. But if they can be assured when they have you that you are
  • not, they will secure you till they can bring you out Mrs. Solmes. Mean
  • time, in order to give Mr. Lovelace full employment, they talk of a
  • prosecution which will be set up against him, for some crime they have
  • got a notion of, which they think, if it do not cost him his life, will
  • make him fly his country.
  • This is very early news. Miss Bell told it in confidence, and with
  • mighty triumph over Lovelace, to Miss Lloyd, who is at present her
  • favourite, though as much you admirer as ever. Miss Lloyd, being very
  • apprehensive of the mischief which might follow such an attempt, told
  • it to me, with leave to apprize you privately of it--and yet neither
  • she nor I would be sorry, perhaps, if Lovelace were to be fairly
  • hanged--that is to say, if you, my dear, had no objection to it. But
  • we cannot bear that such an admirable creature should be made the
  • tennis-ball of two violent spirits--much less that you should be seized,
  • and exposed to the brutal treatment of wretches who have no bowels.
  • If you can engage Mr. Lovelace to keep his temper upon it, I think you
  • should acquaint him with it, but not to mention Miss Lloyd. Perhaps his
  • wicked agent may come at the intelligence, and reveal it to him. But
  • leave it to your own discretions to do as you think fit in it. All my
  • concern is, that this daring and foolish project, if carried on, will
  • be a mean of throwing you more into his power than ever. But as it will
  • convince you that there can be no hope of a reconciliation, I wish you
  • were actually married, let the cause for prosecution hinted at be what
  • it will, short of murder or a rape.
  • Your Hannah was very thankful for your kind present. She heaped a
  • thousand blessings upon you for it. She has Mr. Lovelace's too by this
  • time.
  • I am pleased with Mr. Hickman, I can tell you:--for he has sent her
  • two guineas by the person who carries Mr. Lovelace's five, as from an
  • unknown hand: nor am I, or you, to know it. But he does a great many
  • things of this sort, and is as silent as the night in his charities; for
  • nobody knows of them till the gratitude of the benefited will not let
  • them be concealed. He is now and then my almoner, and, I believe, always
  • adds to my little benefactions.
  • But his time is not come to be praised to his face for these things; nor
  • does he seem to want that encouragement.
  • The man certainly has a good mind. Nor can we expect in one man every
  • good quality. But he is really a silly fellow, my dear, to trouble his
  • head about me, when he sees how much I despise his whole sex; and
  • must of course make a common man look like a fool, were he not to
  • make himself look like one, by wishing to pitch his tent so oddly. Our
  • likings and dislikings, as I have often thought, are seldom governed by
  • prudence, or with a view to happiness. The eye, my dear, the wicked eye,
  • has such a strict alliance with the heart--and both have such enmity to
  • the judgment!--What an unequal union, the mind and body! All the senses,
  • like the family at Harlowe-place, in a confederacy against that which
  • would animate, and give honour to the whole, were it allowed its proper
  • precedence.
  • Permit me, I beseech you, before you go to London to send you
  • forty-eight guineas. I mention that sum to oblige you, because, by
  • accepting back the two to Hannah, I will hold you indebted to me
  • fifty.--Surely this will induce you! You know that I cannot want the
  • money. I told you that I had near double that sum, and that the half of
  • it is more than my mother knows I am mistress of. You are afraid that my
  • mother will question me on this subject; and then you think I must own
  • the truth. But little as I love equivocation, and little as you would
  • allow of it in your Anna Howe, it is hard if I cannot (were I to be put
  • to it ever so closely) find something to say that would bring me off,
  • as you have, what can you do at such a place as London?--You don't know
  • what occasion you may have for messengers, intelligence, and suchlike.
  • If you don't oblige me, I shall not think your stomach so much down as
  • you say it is, and as, in this one particular, I think it ought to be.
  • As to the state of things between my mother and me, you know enough of
  • her temper, not to need to be told that she never espouses or resents
  • with indifference. Yet will she not remember that I am her daughter. No,
  • truly, I am all my papa's girl.
  • She was very sensible, surely, of the violence of my poor father's
  • temper, that she can so long remember that, when acts of tenderness and
  • affection seem quite forgotten. Some daughters would be tempted to think
  • that controul sat very heavy upon a mother, who can endeavour to exert
  • the power she has over a child, and regret, for years after death, that
  • she had not the same over a husband.
  • If this manner of expression becomes not me of my mother, the fault will
  • be somewhat extenuated by the love I always bore to my father, and by
  • the reverence I shall ever pay to his memory: for he was a fond father,
  • and perhaps would have been as tender a husband, had not my mother and
  • he been too much of a temper to agree.
  • The misfortune was, in short, that when one was out of humour, the
  • other would be so too: yet neither of their tempers comparatively
  • bad. Notwithstanding all which, I did not imagine, girl as I was in my
  • father's life-time, that my mother's part of the yoke sat so heavy upon
  • her neck as she gives me room to think it did, whenever she is pleased
  • to disclaim her part of me.
  • Both parents, as I have often thought, should be very careful, if they
  • would secure to themselves the undivided love of their children, that,
  • of all things, they should avoid such durable contentions with each
  • other, as should distress their children in choosing their party, when
  • they would be glad to reverence both as they ought.
  • But here is the thing: there is not a better manager of affairs in the
  • sex than my mother; and I believe a notable wife is more impatient of
  • controul than an indolent one. An indolent one, perhaps, thinks she
  • has some thing to compound for; while women of the other character, I
  • suppose, know too well their own significance to think highly of that of
  • any body else. All must be their own way. In one word, because they are
  • useful, they will be more than useful.
  • I do assure you, my dear, were I man, and a man who loved my quiet, I
  • would not have one of these managing wives on any consideration. I would
  • make it a matter of serious inquiry beforehand, whether my mistress's
  • qualifications, if I heard she was notable, were masculine or feminine
  • ones. If indeed I were an indolent supine mortal, who might be in danger
  • of perhaps choosing to marry for the qualifications of a steward.
  • But, setting my mother out of the question, because she is my mother,
  • have I not seen how Lady Hartley pranks up herself above all her sex,
  • because she knows how to manage affairs that do not belong to her sex
  • to manage?--Affairs that do no credit to her as a woman to understand;
  • practically, I mean; for the theory of them may not be amiss to be
  • known.
  • Indeed, my dear, I do not think a man-woman a pretty character at all:
  • and, as I said, were I a man, I would sooner choose a dove, though it
  • were fit for nothing but, as the play says, to go tame about house,
  • and breed, than a wife that is setting at work (my insignificant self
  • present perhaps) every busy our my never-resting servants, those of
  • the stud not excepted; and who, with a besom in her hand, as I may say,
  • would be continually filling my with apprehensions that she wanted to
  • sweep me out of my own house as useless lumber.
  • Were indeed the mistress of a family (like the wonderful young lady I so
  • much and so justly admire) to know how to confine herself within her own
  • respectable rounds of the needle, the pen, the housekeeper's bills, the
  • dairy for her amusement; to see the poor fed from superfluities that
  • would otherwise be wasted, and exert herself in all the really-useful
  • branches of domestic management; then would she move in her proper
  • sphere; then would she render herself amiably useful, and respectably
  • necessary; then would she become the mistress-wheel of the family,
  • [whatever you think of your Anna Howe, I would not have her be the
  • master-wheel,] and every body would love her; as every body did you,
  • before your insolent brother came back, flushed with his unmerited
  • acquirements, and turned all things topsy-turvy.
  • If you will be informed of the particulars of our contention, after
  • you have known in general that your unhappy affair was the subject, why
  • then, I think I must tell you.
  • Yet how shall I?==I feel my cheek glow with mingled shame and
  • indignation.--Know then, my dear,--that I have been--as I may say--that
  • I have been beaten--indeed 'tis true. My mother thought fit to slap my
  • hands to get from me a sheet of a letter she caught me writing to you;
  • which I tore, because she should not read it, and burnt it before her
  • face.
  • I know this will trouble you: so spare yourself the pains to tell me it
  • does.
  • Mr. Hickman came in presently after. I would not see him. I am either
  • too much a woman to be beat, or too much a child to have an humble
  • servant--so I told my mother. What can one oppose but sullens, when it
  • would be unpardonable so much as to think of lifting up a finger?
  • In the Harlowe style, She will be obeyed, she says: and even Mr. Hickman
  • shall be forbid the house, if he contributes to the carrying on of a
  • correspondence which she will not suffer to be continued.
  • Poor man! He stands a whimsical chance between us. But he knows he is
  • sure of my mother; but not of me. 'Tis easy then for him to choose his
  • party, were it not his inclination to serve you, as it surely is. And
  • this makes him a merit with me, which otherwise he would not have had;
  • notwithstanding the good qualities which I have just now acknowledged in
  • his favour. For, my dear, let my faults in other respects be what they
  • may, I will pretend to say, that I have in my own mind those qualities
  • which I praised him for. And if we are to come together, I could for
  • that reason better dispense with them in him.--So if a husband, who has
  • a bountiful-tempered wife, is not a niggard, nor seeks to restrain her,
  • but has an opinion of all she does, that is enough for him: as, on the
  • contrary, if a bountiful-tempered husband has a frugal wife, it is
  • best for both. For one to give, and the other to give, except they have
  • prudence, and are at so good an understanding with each other as to
  • compare notes, they may perhaps put it out of their power to be just.
  • Good frugal doctrine, my dear! But this way of putting it is middling
  • the matter between what I have learnt of my mother's over-prudent and
  • your enlarged notions.--But from doctrine to fact--
  • I shut myself up all that day; and what little I did eat, eat alone. But
  • at night she sent up Kitty with a command, upon my obedience, to attend
  • her at supper.
  • I went down; but most gloriously in the sullens. YES, and NO, were great
  • words with me, to every thing she asked, for a good while.
  • That behaviour, she told me, should not do for her.
  • Beating should not do for me, I said.
  • My bold resistance, she told me, had provoked her to slap my hand; and
  • she was sorry to have been so provoked. But again insisted that I would
  • either give up my correspondence absolutely, or let her see all that
  • passed in it.
  • I must not do either, I told her. It was unsuitable both to my
  • inclination and to my honour, at the instigation of base minds to give
  • up a friend in distress.
  • She rung all the maternal changes upon the words duty, obedience, filial
  • obligation, and so forth.
  • I told her that a duty too rigorously and unreasonably exacted had been
  • your ruin, if you were ruined.
  • If I were of age to be married, I hope she would think me capable
  • of making, or at least of keeping, my own friendships; such a one
  • especially as this, with a woman too, and one whose friendship she
  • herself, till this distressful point of time, had thought the most
  • useful and edifying that I had ever contracted.
  • The greater the merit, the worse the action: the finer the talents, the
  • more dangerous the example.
  • There were other duties, I said, besides the filial one; and I hoped I
  • need not give up a suffering friend, especially at the instigation of
  • those by whom she suffered. I told her, that it was very hard to annex
  • such a condition as that to my duty; when I was persuaded, that both
  • duties might be performed, without derogating from either: that an
  • unreasonable command (she must excuse me, I must say it, though I were
  • slapped again) was a degree of tyranny: and I could not have expected,
  • that at these years I should be allowed now will, no choice of my
  • own! where a woman only was concerned, and the devilish sex not in the
  • question.
  • What turned most in favour of her argument was, that I desired to be
  • excused from letting her read all that passes between us. She insisted
  • much upon this: and since, she said, you were in the hands of the
  • most intriguing man in the world, and a man who had made a jest of
  • her favourite Hickman, as she had been told, she knows not what
  • consequences, unthought of by your or me, may flow from such a
  • correspondence.
  • So you see, my dear, that I fare the worse on Mr. Hickman's account!
  • My mother might see all that passes between us, did I not know, that
  • it would cramp your spirit, and restrain the freedom of your pen, as
  • it would also the freedom of mine: and were she not moreover so firmly
  • attached to the contrary side, that inferences, consequences, strained
  • deductions, censures, and constructions the most partial, would for
  • ever to be haled in to tease me, and would perpetually subject us to the
  • necessity of debating and canvassing.
  • Besides, I don't choose that she should know how much this artful wretch
  • has outwitted, as I may call it, a person so much his superior in all
  • the nobler qualities of the human mind.
  • The generosity of your heart, and the greatness of your soul, full well
  • I know; but do offer to dissuade me from this correspondence.
  • Mr. Hickman, immediately on the contention above, offered his service;
  • and I accepted of it, as you will see by my last. He thinks, though
  • he has all honour for my mother, that she is unkind to us both. He was
  • pleased to tell me (with an air, as I thought) that he not only approved
  • of our correspondence, but admired the steadiness of my friendship; and
  • having no opinion of your man, but a great one of me, thinks that my
  • advice or intelligence from time to time may be of use to you; and
  • on this presumption said, that it would be a thousand pities that you
  • should suffer for want of either.
  • Mr. Hickman pleased me in the main of his speech; and it is well the
  • general tenor of it was agreeable; otherwise I can tell him, I should
  • have reckoned with him for his word approve; for it is a style I have
  • not yet permitted him to talk to me in. And you see, my dear, what these
  • men are--no sooner do they find that you have favoured them with the
  • power of doing you an agreeable service, but they take upon them to
  • approve, forsooth, of your actions! By which is implied a right to
  • disapprove, if they think fit.
  • I have told my mother how much you wish to be reconciled to your
  • relations, and how independent you are upon Lovelace.
  • Mark the end of the latter assertion, she says. And as to
  • reconciliation, she knows that nothing will do, (and will have it, that
  • nothing ought to do,) but your returning back, without presuming to
  • condition with them. And this if you do, she says, will best show your
  • independence on Lovelace.
  • You see, my dear, what your duty is, in my mother's opinion.
  • I suppose your next, directed to Mr. Hickman, at his own house, will be
  • from London.
  • Heaven preserve you in honour and safety, is my prayer.
  • What you do for change of clothes, I cannot imagine.
  • It is amazing to me what your relations can mean by distressing you,
  • as they seem resolved to do. I see they will throw you into his arms,
  • whether you will or not.
  • I send this by Robert, for dispatch-sake: and can only repeat the
  • hitherto-rejected offer of my best services. Adieu, my dearest friend.
  • Believe me ever
  • Your affectionate and faithful ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER XLI
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE TUESDAY, APRIL 20.
  • I should think myself utterly unworthy of your friendship did not my
  • own concerns, heavy as they are, so engross me, that I could not find
  • leisure for a few lines to declare to my beloved friend my sincere
  • disapprobation of her conduct, in an instance where she is so generously
  • faulty, that the consciousness of that very generosity may hide from
  • her the fault, which I, more than any other, have reason to deplore, as
  • being the unhappy occasion of it.
  • You know, you say, that your account of the contentions between your
  • mother and you will trouble me; and so you bid me spare myself the pains
  • to tell you that they do.
  • You did not use, my dear, to forbid me thus beforehand. You were wont
  • to say, you loved me the better for my expostulations with you on that
  • acknowledged warmth and quickness of your temper which your own good
  • sense taught you to be apprehensive of. What though I have so miserably
  • fallen, and am unhappy, if ever I had any judgment worth regarding, it
  • is now as much worth as ever, because I can give it as freely against
  • myself as against any body else. And shall I not, when there seems to be
  • an infection in my fault, and that it leads you likewise to resolve to
  • carry on a correspondence against prohibition, expostulate with you upon
  • it; when whatever consequences flow from your disobedience, they but
  • widen my error, which is as the evil root, from which such sad branches
  • spring?
  • The mind that can glory in being capable of so noble, so firm, so
  • unshaken friendship, as that of my dear Miss Howe; a friendship which
  • no casualty or distress can lessen, but which increases with the
  • misfortunes of its friend--such a mind must be above taking amiss
  • the well-meant admonitions of that distinguished friend. I will not
  • therefore apologize for my freedom on this subject: and the less need I,
  • when that freedom is the result of an affection, in the very instance,
  • so absolutely disinterested, that it tends to deprive myself of the only
  • comfort left me.
  • Your acknowledged sullens; your tearing from your mother's hands the
  • letter she thought she had a right to see, and burning it, as you own,
  • before her face; your refusal to see the man, who is so willing to obey
  • you for the sake of your unhappy friend, and this purely to vex your
  • mother; can you think, my dear, upon this brief recapitulation of hardly
  • one half of the faulty particulars you give, that these faults are
  • excusable in one who so well knows her duty?
  • Your mother had a good opinion of me once: is not that a reason why she
  • should be more regarded now, when I have, as she believes, so deservedly
  • forfeited it? A prejudice in favour is as hard to be totally overcome as
  • a prejudice in disfavour. In what a strong light, then, must that error
  • appear to her, that should so totally turn her heart against me, herself
  • not a principal in the case?
  • There are other duties, you say, besides the filial duty: but that, my
  • dear, must be a duty prior to all other duties; a duty anterior, as I
  • may say, to your very birth: and what duty ought not to give way to that,
  • when they come in competition?
  • You are persuaded, that the duty to your friend, and the filial duty,
  • may be performed without derogating from either. Your mother thinks
  • otherwise. What is the conclusion to be drawn from these premises?
  • When your mother sees, how much I suffer in my reputation from the step
  • I have taken, from whom she and all the world expected better things,
  • how much reason has she to be watchful over you! One evil draws on
  • another after it; and how knows she, or any body, where it may stop?
  • Does not the person who will vindicate, or seek to extenuate, a faulty
  • step in another [in this light must your mother look upon the matter in
  • question between her and you] give an indication either of a culpable
  • will, or a weak judgment; and may not she apprehend, that the censorious
  • will think, that such a one might probably have equally failed under the
  • same inducements and provocations, to use your own words, as applied to
  • me in a former letter?
  • Can there be a stronger instance in human lie than mine has so early
  • furnished, within a few months past, (not to mention the uncommon
  • provocations to it, which I have met with,) of the necessity of the
  • continuance of a watchful parent's care over a daughter: let that
  • daughter have obtained ever so great a reputation for her prudence?
  • Is not the space from sixteen to twenty-one that which requires this
  • care, more than at any time of a young woman's life? For in that period
  • do we not generally attract the eyes of the other sex, and become the
  • subject of their addresses, and not seldom of their attempts? And is not
  • that the period in which our conduct or misconduct gives us a reputation
  • or disreputation, that almost inseparably accompanies us throughout our
  • whole future lives?
  • Are we not likewise then most in danger from ourselves, because of the
  • distinction with which we are apt to behold particulars of that sex.
  • And when our dangers multiply, both from within and without, do not our
  • parents know, that their vigilance ought to be doubled? And shall that
  • necessary increase of care sit uneasy upon us, because we are grown up
  • to stature and womanhood?
  • Will you tell me, if so, what is the precise stature and age at which a
  • good child shall conclude herself absolved from the duty she owes to
  • a parent?--And at which a parent, after the example of the dams of
  • the brute creation, is to lay aside all care and tenderness for her
  • offspring?
  • Is it so hard for you, my dear, to be treated like a child? And can
  • you not think it is hard for a good parent to imagine herself under the
  • unhappy necessity of so treating her woman-grown daughter?
  • Do you think, if your mother had been you, and you your mother, and your
  • daughter had struggled with you, as you did with her, that you would
  • not have been as apt as your mother was to have slapped your daughter's
  • hands, to have made her quit her hold, and give up the prohibited
  • letter?
  • Your mother told you, with great truth, that you provoked her to this
  • harshness; and it was a great condescension in her (and not taken notice
  • of by you as it deserved) to say that she was sorry for it.
  • At every age on this side matrimony (for then we come under another sort
  • of protection, though that is far from abrogating the filial duty) it
  • will be found, that the wings of our parents are our most necessary and
  • most effectual safeguard from the vultures, the hawks, the kites, and
  • other villainous birds of prey, that hover over us with a view to seize
  • and destroy us the first time we are caught wandering out of the eye or
  • care of our watchful and natural guardians and protectors.
  • Hard as you may suppose it, to be denied to continuance of a
  • correspondence once so much approved, even by the venerable denier;
  • yet, if your mother think my fault to be of such a nature, as that a
  • correspondence with me will cast a shade upon your reputation, all my
  • own friends having given me up--that hardship is to be submitted to. And
  • must it not make her the more strenuous to support her own opinion, when
  • she sees the first fruits of this tenaciousness on your side is to
  • be gloriously in the sullens, as you call it, and in a disobedient
  • opposition?
  • I know that you have a humourous meaning in that expression, and that
  • this turn, in most cases, gives a delightful poignancy both to your
  • conversation and correspondence; but indeed, my dear, this case will not
  • bear humour.
  • Will you give me leave to add to this tedious expostulation, that I by
  • no means approve of some of the things you write, in relation to the
  • manner in which your father and mother lived--at times lived--only at
  • times, I dare say, though perhaps too often.
  • Your mother is answerable to any body, rather than to her child, for
  • whatever was wrong in her conduct, if any thing was wrong, towards Mr.
  • Howe: a gentleman, of whose memory I will only say, that it ought to be
  • revered by you--But yet, should you not examine yourself, whether your
  • displeasure at your mother had no part in your revived reverence for
  • your father at the time you wrote?
  • No one is perfect: and although your mother may not be right to remember
  • disagreeableness against the departed, yet should you not want to be
  • reminded on whose account, and on what occasion, she remembered them.
  • You cannot judge, nor ought you to attempt to judge, of what might
  • have passed between both, to embitter and keep awake disagreeable
  • remembrances in the survivor.
  • LETTER XLII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • But this subject must not be pursued. Another might, with more pleasure,
  • (though not with more approbation,) upon one of your lively excursions.
  • It is upon the high airs you give yourself upon the word approve.
  • How comes it about, I wonder, that a young lady so noted for
  • predominating generosity, should not be uniformly generous? That your
  • generosity should fail in an instance where policy, prudence, gratitude,
  • would not permit it to fail? Mr. Hickman (as you confess) had indeed a
  • worthy mind. If I had not long ago known that, he would never have found
  • an advocate in me for my Anna Howe's favour to him. Often and often
  • have I been concerned, when I was your happy guest, to see him, after a
  • conversation, in which he had well supported his part in your absence,
  • sink at once into silence the moment you came into company.
  • I have told you of this before: and I believe I hinted to you once,
  • that the superciliousness you put on only to him, was capable of a
  • construction, which at the time would have very little gratified your
  • pride to have had made; since it would have been as much in his favour,
  • as in your disfavour.
  • Mr. Hickman, my dear, is a modest man. I never see a modest man, but I
  • am sure (if he has not wanted opportunities) that he has a treasure in
  • his mind, which requires nothing but the key of encouragement to unlock
  • it, to make him shine--while a confident man, who, to be confident,
  • must think as meanly of his company as highly of himself, enters with
  • magisterial airs upon any subject; and, depending upon his assurance to
  • bring himself off when found out, talks of more than he is master of.
  • But a modest man!--O my dear, shall not a modest woman distinguish and
  • wish to consort with a modest man?--A man, before whom, and to whom she
  • may open her lips secure of his good opinion of all she says, and of his
  • just and polite regard for her judgment? and who must therefore inspire
  • her with an agreeable self-confidence.
  • What a lot have I drawn!--We are all indeed apt to turn teachers--but,
  • surely, I am better enabled to talk, to write, upon these subjects,
  • than ever I was. But I will banish myself, if possible, from an address
  • which, when I began to write, I was determined to confine wholly to your
  • own particular.
  • My dearest, dearest friend, how ready are you to tell us what others
  • should do, and even what a mother should have done! But indeed you once,
  • I remember, advanced, that, as different attainments required different
  • talents to master them, so, in the writing way, a person might not be a
  • bad critic upon the works of others, although he might himself be unable
  • to write with excellence. But will you permit me to account for all this
  • readiness of finding fault, by placing it to human nature, which, being
  • sensible of the defects of human nature, (that is to say, of its own
  • defects,) loves to be correcting? But in exercising that talent, chooses
  • rather to turn its eye outward than inward? In other words, to employ
  • itself rather in the out-door search, than in the in-door examination.
  • And here give me leave to add, (and yet it is with tender reluctance,)
  • that although you say very pretty things of notable wives; and
  • although I join with you in opinion, that husbands may have as many
  • inconveniencies to encounter with, as conveniencies to boast of, from
  • women, of that character; yet Lady Hartley perhaps would have had milder
  • treatment from your pen, had it not been dipped in gall with a mother in
  • your eye.
  • As to the money, you so generously and repeatedly offer, don't be angry
  • with me, if I again say, that I am very desirous that you should be able
  • to aver, without the least qualifying or reserve, that nothing of that
  • sort has passed between us. I know your mother's strong way of putting
  • the question she is intent upon having answered. But yet I promise that
  • I will be obliged to nobody but you, when I have occasion.
  • LETTER XLIII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN CONTINUATION.]
  • And now, my dear, a few words, as to the prohibition laid upon you; a
  • subject that I have frequently touched upon, but cursorily, because I
  • was afraid to trust myself with it, knowing that my judgment, if I did,
  • would condemn my practice.
  • You command me not to attempt to dissuade you from this correspondence;
  • and you tell me how kindly Mr. Hickman approves of it; and how obliging
  • he is to me, to permit it to be carried on under cover to him--but this
  • does not quite satisfy me.
  • I am a very bad casuist; and the pleasure I take in writing to you, who
  • are the only one to whom I can disburden my mind, may make me, as I have
  • hinted, very partial to my own wishes: else, if it were not an artful
  • evasion beneath an open and frank heart to wish to be complied with, I
  • would be glad methinks to be permitted still to write to you; and only
  • to have such occasional returns by Mr. Hickman's pen, as well as cover,
  • as might set me right when I am wrong; confirm me, when right, and guide
  • me where I doubt. This would enable me to proceed in the difficult path
  • before me with more assuredness. For whatever I suffer from the
  • censure of others, if I can preserve your good opinion, I shall not be
  • altogether unhappy, let what will befall me.
  • And indeed, my dear, I know not how to forbear writing. I have now no
  • other employment or diversion. And I must write on, although I were not
  • to send it to any body. You have often heard me own the advantages I
  • have found from writing down every thing of moment that befalls me; and
  • of all I think, and of all I do, that may be of future use to me; for,
  • besides that this helps to form one to a style, and opens and expands
  • the ductile mind, every one will find that many a good thought
  • evaporates in thinking; many a good resolution goes off, driven out of
  • memory perhaps by some other not so good. But when I set down what I
  • will do, or what I have done, on this or that occasion; the resolution
  • or action is before me either to be adhered to, withdrawn, or amended;
  • and I have entered into compact with myself, as I may say; having given
  • it under my own hand to improve, rather than to go backward, as I live
  • longer.
  • I would willingly, therefore, write to you, if I might; the rather as it
  • would be the more inspiriting to have some end in view in what I write;
  • some friend to please; besides merely seeking to gratify my passion for
  • scribbling.
  • But why, if your mother will permit our correspondence on communicating
  • to her all that passes in it, and if she would condescend to one only
  • condition, may it not be complied with?
  • Would she not, do you think, my dear, be prevailed upon to have the
  • communication made to her, in confidence?
  • If there were any prospect of a reconciliation with my friends, I should
  • not have so much regard for my pride, as to be afraid of any body's
  • knowing how much I have been outwitted as you call it. I would in that
  • case (when I had left Mr. Lovelace) acquaint your mother, and all my own
  • friends, with the whole of my story. It would behove me so to do, for my
  • own reputation, and for their satisfaction.
  • But, if I have no such prospect, what will the communication of my
  • reluctance to go away with Mr. Lovelace, and of his arts to frighten
  • me away, avail me? Your mother has hinted, that my friends would insist
  • upon my returning home to them (as a proof of the truth of my plea)
  • to be disposed of, without condition, at their pleasure. If I scrupled
  • this, my brother would rather triumph over me, than keep my secret. Mr.
  • Lovelace, whose pride already so ill brooks my regrets for meeting him,
  • (when he thinks, if I had not, I must have been Mr. Solmes's wife,)
  • would perhaps treat me with indignity: and thus, deprived of all refuge
  • and protection, I should become the scoff of men of intrigue; a disgrace
  • to my sex--while that avowed love, however indiscreetly shown, which is
  • followed by marriage, will find more excuses made for it, than generally
  • it ought to find.
  • But, if your mother will receive the communication in confidence, pray
  • shew her all that I have written, or shall write. If my past conduct
  • in that case shall not be found to deserve heavy blame, I shall then
  • perhaps have the benefit of her advice, as well as yours. And if, after
  • a re-establishment in her favour, I shall wilfully deserve blame for the
  • time to come, I will be content to be denied yours as well as hers for
  • ever.
  • As to cramping my spirit, as you call it, (were I to sit down to write
  • what I know your mother must see,) that, my dear, is already cramped.
  • And do not think so unhandsomely of your mother, as to fear that she
  • would make partial constructions against me. Neither you nor I can
  • doubt, but that, had she been left unprepossessedly to herself, she
  • would have shown favour to me. And so, I dare say, would my uncle
  • Antony. Nay, my dear, I can extend my charity still farther: for I am
  • sometimes of opinion, that were my brother and sister absolutely certain
  • that they had so far ruined me in the opinion of both my uncles, as that
  • they need not be apprehensive of my clashing with their interests,
  • they would not oppose a pardon, although they might not wish a
  • reconciliation; especially if I would make a few sacrifices to them:
  • which, I assure you, I should be inclined to make were I wholly free,
  • and independent on this man. You know I never valued myself upon worldly
  • acquisitions, but as they enlarged my power to do things I loved to
  • do. And if I were denied the power, I must, as I now do, curb my
  • inclination.
  • Do not however think me guilty of an affectation in what I have said
  • of my brother and sister. Severe enough I am sure it is, in the most
  • favourable sense. And an indifferent person will be of opinion, that
  • they are much better warranted than ever, for the sake of the family
  • honour, to seek to ruin me in the favour of all my friends.
  • But to the former topic--try, my dear, if your mother will, upon the
  • condition above given, permit our correspondence, on seeing all we
  • write. But if she will not, what a selfishness would there be in my love
  • to you, were I to wish you to forego your duty for my sake?
  • And now, one word, as to the freedom I have treated you with in this
  • tedious expostulatory address. I presume upon your forgiveness of it,
  • because few friendships are founded on such a basis as ours: which
  • is, 'freely to give reproof, and thankfully to receive it as occasions
  • arise; that so either may have opportunity to clear up mistakes, to
  • acknowledge and amend errors, as well in behaviour as in words and
  • deeds; and to rectify and confirm each other in the judgment each shall
  • form upon persons, things, and circumstances.' And all this upon the
  • following consideration; 'that it is much more eligible, as well as
  • honourable, to be corrected with the gentleness that may be expected
  • from an undoubted friend, than, by continuing either blind or wilful,
  • to expose ourselves to the censures of an envious and perhaps malignant
  • world.'
  • But it is as needless, I dare say, to remind you of this, as it is to
  • repeat my request, so often repeated, that you will not, in your turn,
  • spare the follies and the faults of
  • Your ever affectionate CL. HARLOWE.
  • SUBJOINED TO THE ABOVE.
  • I said, that I would avoid writing any thing of my own particular
  • affairs in the above address, if I could.
  • I will write one letter more, to inform you how I stand with this man.
  • But, my dear, you must permit that one, and your answer to it (for I
  • want your advice upon the contents of mine) and the copy of one I have
  • written to my aunt, to be the last that shall pass between us, while the
  • prohibition continues.
  • I fear, I very much fear, that my unhappy situation will draw me in to
  • being guilty of evasion, of little affectations, and of curvings from
  • the plain simple truth which I was wont to delight in, and prefer to
  • every other consideration. But allow me to say, and this for your sake,
  • and in order to lessen your mother's fears of any ill consequences that
  • she might apprehend from our correspondence, that if I am at any time
  • guilty of a failure in these respects, I will not go on in it, but
  • endeavour to recover my lost ground, that I may not bring error into
  • habit.
  • I have deferred going to town, at Mrs. Sorlings's earnest request. But
  • have fixed my removal to Monday, as I shall acquaint you in my next.
  • I have already made a progress in that next; but, having an unexpected
  • opportunity, will send this by itself.
  • LETTER XLIV
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE FRIDAY MORNING, APRIL 21.
  • My mother will not comply with your condition, my dear. I hinted it to
  • her, as from myself. But the Harlowes (excuse me) have got her entirely
  • in with them. It is a scheme of mine, she told me, formed to draw her
  • into your party against your parents. Which, for your own sake, she is
  • very careful about.
  • Don't be so much concerned about my mother and me, once more, I beg of
  • you. We shall do well enough together--now a falling out, now a falling
  • in.
  • It used to be so, when you were not in the question.
  • Yet do I give you my sincere thanks for every line of your reprehensive
  • letters; which I intend to read as often as I find my temper rises.
  • I will freely own, however, that I winced a little at first reading
  • them. But I see that, on every re-perusal, I shall love and honour you
  • still more, if possible, than before.
  • Yet, I think I have one advantage over you; and which I will hold
  • through this letter, and through all my future letters; that is, that
  • I will treat you as freely as you treat me; and yet will never think an
  • apology necessary to you for my freedom.
  • But that you so think with respect to me is the effect of your
  • gentleness of temper, with a little sketch of implied reflection on the
  • warmth of mine. Gentleness in a woman you hold to be no fault: nor do I
  • a little due or provoked warmth--But what is this, but praising on both
  • sides what what neither of us can help, nor perhaps wish to help? You
  • can no more go out of your road, than I can go out of mine. It would be
  • a pain to either to do so: What then is it in either's approving of her
  • own natural bias, but making a virtue of necessity?
  • But one observation I will add, that were your character, and my
  • character, to be truly drawn, mine would be allowed to be the most
  • natural. Shades and lights are equally necessary in a fine picture.
  • Yours would be surrounded with such a flood of brightness, with such a
  • glory, that it would indeed dazzle; but leave one heartless to imitate
  • it.
  • O may you not suffer from a base world for your gentleness; while my
  • temper, by its warmth, keeping all imposition at a distance, though
  • less amiable in general, affords me not reason, as I have mentioned
  • heretofore, to wish to make an exchange with you!
  • I should indeed be inexcusable to open my lips by way of contradiction
  • to my mother, had I such a fine spirit as yours to deal with. Truth is
  • truth, my dear! Why should narrowness run away with the praises due to a
  • noble expansion of heart? If every body would speak out, as I do, (that
  • is to say, give praise where only praise is due; dispraise where due
  • likewise,) shame, if not principle, would mend the world--nay, shame
  • would introduce principle in a generation or two. Very true, my dear. Do
  • you apply. I dare not.--For I fear you, almost as much as I love you.
  • I will give you an instance, nevertheless, which will a-new demonstrate,
  • that none but very generous and noble-minded people ought to be
  • implicitly obeyed. You know what I said above, that truth is truth.
  • Inconveniencies will sometimes arise from having to do with persons of
  • modest and scrupulousness. Mr. Hickman, you say, is a modest man. He
  • put your corrective packet into my hand with a very fine bow, and a
  • self-satisfied air [we'll consider what you say of this honest man
  • by-and-by, my dear]: his strut was no gone off, when in came my mother,
  • as I was reading it.
  • When some folks find their anger has made them considerable, they will
  • be always angry, or seeking occasions for anger.
  • Why, now, Mr. Hickman--why, now, Nancy, [as I was huddling in the
  • packet between my gown and my stays, at her entrance.] You have a
  • letter brought you this instant.--While the modest man, with his pausing
  • brayings, Mad-da--Mad-dam, looked as if he knew not whether to fight it
  • out, or to stand his ground, and see fair play.
  • It would have been poor to tell a lie for it. She flung away. I went
  • out at the opposite door, to read the contents; leaving Mr. Hickman to
  • exercise his white teeth upon his thumb-nails.
  • When I had read your letters, I went to find out my mother. I told her
  • the generous contents, and that you desired that the prohibition
  • might be adhered to. I proposed your condition, as for myself; and was
  • rejected, as above.
  • She supposed, she was finely painted between two 'young creatures, who
  • had more wit than prudence:' and instead of being prevailed upon by the
  • generosity of your sentiments, made use of your opinion only to confirm
  • her own, and renewed her prohibitions, charging me to return no other
  • answer, but that she did renew them: adding, that they should stand,
  • till your relations were reconciled to you; hinting as if she had
  • engaged for as much: and expected my compliance.
  • I thought of your reprehensions, and was meek, though not pleased. And
  • let me tell you, my dear, that as long as I can satisfy my own mind,
  • that good is intended, and that it is hardly possible that evil should
  • ensue from our correspondence--as long as I know that this prohibition
  • proceeds originally from the same spiteful minds which have been the
  • occasion of all these mischiefs--as long as I know that it is not
  • your fault if your relations are not reconciled to you, and that upon
  • conditions which no reasonable people would refuse--you must give
  • me leave, with all deference to your judgment, and to your excellent
  • lessons, (which would reach almost every case of this kind but the
  • present,) to insist upon your writing to me, and that minutely, as if
  • this prohibition had not been laid.
  • It is not from humour, from perverseness, that I insist upon this. I
  • cannot express how much my heart is in your concerns. And you must, in
  • short, allow me to think, that if I can do you service by writing, I
  • shall be better justified in continuing to write, than my mother is in
  • her prohibition.
  • But yet, to satisfy you all I can, I will as seldom return answers,
  • while the interdict lasts, as may be consistent with my notions of
  • friendship, and with the service I owe you, and can do you.
  • As to your expedient of writing by Hickman [and now, my dear, your
  • modest man comes in: and as you love modesty in that sex, I will do
  • my endeavour, by holding him at a proper distance, to keep him in your
  • favour] I know what you mean by it, my sweet friend. It is to make that
  • man significant with me. As to the correspondence, THAT shall go on,
  • I do assure you, be as scrupulous as you please--so that that will not
  • suffer if I do not close with your proposal as to him.
  • I must tell you, that I think it will be honour enough for him to have
  • his name made use of so frequently betwixt us. This, of itself, is
  • placing a confidence in him, that will make him walk bolt upright, and
  • display his white hand, and his fine diamond ring; and most mightily lay
  • down his services, and his pride to oblige, and his diligence, and his
  • fidelity, and his contrivances to keep our secret, and his excuses,
  • and his evasions to my mother, when challenged by her; with fifty ana's
  • beside: and will it not moreover give him pretence and excuse oftener
  • than ever to pad-nag it hither to good Mrs. Howe's fair daughter?
  • But to admit him into my company tete-a-tete, and into my closet, as
  • often as I would wish to write to you, I only dictate to his pen--my
  • mother all the time supposing that I was going to be heartily in love
  • with him--to make him master of my sentiments, and of my heart, as I may
  • say, when I write to you--indeed, my dear, I won't. Nor, were I married
  • to the best HE in England, would I honour him with the communication of
  • my correspondences.
  • No, my dear, it is sufficient, surely, for him to parade in the
  • character of our letter-conveyor, and to be honoured in a cover, and
  • never fear but, modest as you think him, he will make enough of that.
  • You are always blaming me for want of generosity to this man, and for
  • abuse of power. But I profess, my dear, I cannot tell how to help it.
  • Do, dear, now, let me spread my plumes a little, and now-and-then make
  • myself feared. This is my time, you know, since it would be no more to
  • my credit than to his, to give myself those airs when I am married. He
  • has a joy when I am pleased with him that he would not know, but for the
  • pain my displeasure gives him.
  • Men, no more than women, know how to make a moderate use of power. Is
  • not that seen every day, from the prince to the peasant? If I do not
  • make Hickman quake now-and-then, he will endeavour to make me fear. All
  • the animals in the creation are more or less in a state of hostility
  • with each other. The wolf, that runs away from a lion, will devour a
  • lamb the next moment. I remember, that I was once so enraged at a game
  • chicken that was continually pecking at another (a poor humble one, as I
  • thought him) that I had the offender caught, and without more ado, in a
  • pet of humanity, wrung his neck off. What followed this execution? Why
  • that other grew insolent, as soon as his insulter was gone, and was
  • continually pecking at one or two under him. Peck and be hanged, said
  • I,--I might as well have preserved the first, for I see it is the nature
  • of the beast.
  • Excuse my flippancies. I wish I were with you. I would make you smile in
  • the midst of your gravest airs, as I used to do. O that you had
  • accepted of my offer to attend you! but nothing that I offer will you
  • accept----Take care!--You will make me very angry with you: and when I
  • am, you know I value nobody: for, dearly as I love you, I must be, and
  • cannot always help it,
  • Your saucy ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER XLV
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE FRIDAY, APRIL 22.
  • Mr. Lovelace communicated to me this morning early, from his
  • intelligencer, the news of my brother's scheme. I like him the better
  • for making very light of it, and for his treating it with contempt. And
  • indeed, had I not had the hint of it from you, I should have suspected
  • it to be some contrivance of his, in order to hasten me to town, where
  • he has long wished to be himself.
  • He read me the passage in that Leman's letter, which is pretty much to
  • the effect of what you wrote to me from Miss Lloyd; with this addition,
  • that one Singleton, a master of a Scots vessel, is the man who is to be
  • the principal in this act of violence.
  • I have seen him. He had been twice entertained at Harlowe-place, as my
  • brother's friend. He has the air of a very bold and fearless man, and I
  • fancy it must be his project; as my brother, I suppose, talks to every
  • body of the rash step I have taken, for he did not spare me before he
  • had this seeming reason to censure me.
  • This Singleton lives at Leith; so, perhaps, I am to be carried to my
  • brother's house not far from that port.
  • Putting these passages together, I am not a little apprehensive that the
  • design, lightly as Mr. Lovelace, from his fearless temper, treats it,
  • may be attempted to be carried into execution; and of the consequences
  • that may attend it, if it be.
  • I asked Mr. Lovelace, seeing him so frank and cool, what he would advise
  • me to do.
  • Shall I ask you, Madam, what are your own thoughts?--Why I return the
  • question, said he, is, because you have been so very earnest that I
  • should leave you as soon as you are in London, that I know not what to
  • propose without offending you.
  • My opinion is, said I, that I should studiously conceal myself from the
  • knowledge of every body but Miss Howe; and that you should leave me
  • out of hand; since they will certainly conclude, that where one is, the
  • other is not far off: and it is easier to trace you than me.
  • You would not surely wish, said he, to fall into your brother's hands
  • by such a violent measure as this? I propose not to throw myself
  • officiously in their way; but should they have reason to think I avoided
  • them, would not that whet their diligence to find you, and their courage
  • to attempt to carry you off, and subject me to insults that no man of
  • spirit can bear?
  • Lord bless me! said I, to what had this one fatal step that I have been
  • betrayed into----
  • Dearest Madam, let me beseech you to forbear this harsh language, when
  • you see, by this new scheme, how determined they were upon carrying
  • their old ones, had you not been betrayed, as you call it. Have I
  • offered to defy the laws of society, as this brother of yours must do,
  • if any thing be intended by this project? I hope you will be pleased to
  • observe that there are as violent and as wicked enterprisers as myself.
  • But this is so very wild a project, that I think there can be no room
  • for apprehensions from it. I know your brother well. When at college,
  • he had always a romantic turn: but never had a head for any thing but to
  • puzzle and confound himself. A half-invention, and a whole conceit; but
  • not master of talents to do himself good, or others harm, but as those
  • others gave him the power by their own folly.
  • This is very volubly run off, Sir!--But violent spirits are but too much
  • alike; at least in their methods of resenting. You will not presume to
  • make yourself a less innocent man, surely, who had determined to brave
  • my whole family in person, if my folly had not saved you the rashness,
  • and them the insult--
  • Dear Madam!--Still must it be folly, rashness!--It is as impossible for
  • you to think tolerably of any body out of your own family, as it is
  • for any one in your family to deserve your love! Forgive me, dearest
  • creature! If I did not love you as never man loved a woman, I might
  • appear more indifferent to preferences so undeservedly made. But let me
  • ask you, Madam, What have you borne from me? What cause have I given
  • you to treat me with so much severity and so little confidence? And what
  • have you not borne from them? Malice and ill-will, sitting in judgment
  • upon my character, may not give sentence in my favour: But what of your
  • own knowledge have you against me?
  • Spirited questions, were they not, my dear?--And they were asked with
  • as spirited an air. I was startled. But I was resolved not to desert
  • myself.
  • Is this a time, Mr. Lovelace, is this a proper occasion taken, to
  • give yourself these high airs to me, a young creature destitute of
  • protection? It is a surprising question you ask me--Had I aught against
  • you of my own knowledge--I can tell you, Sir--And away I would have
  • flung.
  • He snatched my hand, and besought me not to leave him in displeasure. He
  • pleaded his passion for me, and my severity to him, and partiality for
  • those from whom I had suffered so much; and whose intended violence, he
  • said, was now the subject of our deliberation.
  • I was forced to hear him.
  • You condescended, dearest creature, said he, to ask my advice. It was
  • very easy, give me leave to say, to advise you what to do. I hope I may,
  • on this new occasion, speak without offence, notwithstanding your former
  • injunctions--You see that there can be no hope of reconciliation with
  • your relations. Can you, Madam, consent to honour with your hand a
  • wretch whom you have never yet obliged with one voluntary favour!
  • What a recriminating, what a reproachful way, my dear, was this, of
  • putting a question of this nature!
  • I expected not from him, at the time, and just as I was very angry with
  • him, either the question or the manner. I am ashamed to recollect the
  • confusion I was thrown into; all your advice in my head at the moment:
  • yet his words so prohibitory. He confidently seemed to enjoy my
  • confusion [indeed, my dear, he knows not what respectful love is!] and
  • gazed upon me, as if he would have looked me through.
  • He was still more declarative afterwards, as I shall mention by-and-by:
  • but it was half extorted from him.
  • My heart struggled violently between resentment and shame, to be thus
  • teased by one who seemed to have all his passions at command, at a time
  • when I had very little over mine! till at last I burst into tears, and
  • was going from him in high disgust: when, throwing his arms about me,
  • with an air, however, the most tenderly respectful, he gave a stupid
  • turn to the subject.
  • It was far from his heart, he said, to take so much advantage of the
  • streight, which the discovery of my brother's foolish project had
  • brought me into, as to renew, without my permission, a proposal which I
  • had hitherto discountenanced, and which for that reason--
  • And then he came with his half-sentences, apologizing for what he had
  • not so much as half-proposed.
  • Surely he had not the insolence to intend to tease me, to see if I could
  • be brought to speak what became me not to speak. But whether he had or
  • not, it did tease me; insomuch that my very heart was fretted, and I
  • broke out, at last, into fresh tears, and a declaration that I was very
  • unhappy. And just then recollecting how like a tame fool I stood with
  • his arms about me, I flung from him with indignation. But he seized my
  • hand, as I was going out of the room, and upon his knees besought my
  • stay for one moment: and then, in words the most clear and explicit,
  • tendered himself to my acceptance, as the most effectual means to
  • disappoint my brother's scheme, and set all right.
  • But what could I say to this?--Extorted from him, as it seemed to me,
  • rather as the effect of his compassion than his love? What could I say?
  • I paused, I looked silly--I am sure I looked very silly. He suffered me
  • to pause, and look silly; waiting for me to say something: and at last
  • (ashamed of my confusion, and aiming to make an excuse for it) I told
  • him that I desired he would avoid such measures as might add to the
  • uneasiness which it must be visible to him I had, when he reflected upon
  • the irreconcilableness of my friends, and upon what might follow from
  • this unaccountable project of my brother.
  • He promised to be governed by me in every thing. And again the wretch,
  • instead of pressing his former question, asked me, If I forgave him for
  • the humble suit he had made to me? What had I to do but to try for a
  • palliation of my confusion, since it served me not?
  • I told him I had hopes it would not be long before Mr. Morden arrived;
  • and doubted not that that gentleman would be the readier to engage in my
  • favour, when he found that I made no other use of his (Mr. Lovelace's)
  • assistance, than to free myself from the addresses of a man so
  • disagreeable to me as Mr. Solmes: I must therefore wish that every thing
  • might remain as it was till I could hear from my cousin.
  • This, although teased by him as I was, was not, you see, my dear,
  • a denial. But he must throw himself into a heat, rather than try to
  • persuade; which any other man in his situation, I should think, would
  • have done; and this warmth obliged me to adhere to my seeming negative.
  • This was what he said, with a vehemence that must harden any woman's
  • mind, who had a spirit above being frighted into passiveness--
  • Good God! and will you, Madam, still resolve to show me that I am
  • to hope for no share in your favour, while any the remotest prospect
  • remains that you will be received by my bitterest enemies, at the price
  • of my utter rejection?
  • This was what I returned, with warmth, and with a salving art too--You
  • should have seen, Mr. Lovelace, how much my brother's violence can
  • affect me: but you will be mistaken if you let loose yours upon me, with
  • a thought of terrifying me into measures the contrary of which you have
  • acquiesced with.
  • He only besought me to suffer his future actions to speak for him; and
  • if I saw him worthy of any favour, that I would not let him be the only
  • person within my knowledge who was not entitled to my consideration.
  • You refer to a future time, Mr. Lovelace, so do I, for the future proof
  • of a merit you seem to think for the past time wanting: and justly you
  • think so. And I was again going from him.
  • One word more he begged me to hear--He was determined studiously to
  • avoid all mischief, and every step that might lead to mischief, let my
  • brother's proceedings, short of a violence upon my person, be what they
  • would: but if any attempt that should extend to that were to be made,
  • would I have had him to be a quiet spectator of my being seized, or
  • carried back, or on board, by this Singleton; or, in case of extremity,
  • was he not permitted to stand up in my defence?
  • Stand up in my defence, Mr. Lovelace!--I should be very miserable were
  • there to be a call for that. But do you think I might not be safe and
  • private in London? By your friend's description of the widow's house, I
  • should think I might be safe there.
  • The widow's house, he replied, as described by his friend, being a back
  • house within a front one, and looking to a garden, rather than to a
  • street, had the appearance of privacy: but if, when there, it was not
  • approved, it would be easy to find another more to my liking--though, as
  • to his part, the method he would advise should be, to write to my uncle
  • Harlowe, as one of my trustees, and wait the issue of it here at Mrs.
  • Sorlings's, fearlessly directing it to be answered hither. To be afraid
  • of little spirits was but to encourage insults, he said. The substance
  • of the letter should be, 'To demand as a right, what they would refuse
  • if requested as a courtesy: to acknowledge that I had put myself [too
  • well, he said, did their treatment justify me] into the protection of
  • the ladies of his family [by whose orders, and Lord M.'s, he himself
  • would appear to act]: but that upon my own terms, which were such, that
  • I was under no obligation to those ladies for the favour; it being
  • no more than they would have granted to any one of my sex, equally
  • distressed.' If I approved not of his method, happy should he think
  • himself, he said, if I would honour him with the opportunity of making
  • such a claim in his own name--but this was a point [with his but's
  • again in the same breath!] that he durst but just touch upon. He hoped,
  • however, that I would think their violence a sufficient inducement for
  • me to take such a wished-for resolution.
  • Inwardly vexed, I told him that he himself had proposed to leave me when
  • I was in town; that I expected he would: and that, when I was known to
  • be absolutely independent, I should consider what to write, and what to
  • do: but that while he was with me, I neither would nor could.
  • He would be very sincere with me, he said: this project of my brother's
  • had changed the face of things. He must, before he left me, see whether
  • I should or should not approve of the London widow and her family, if I
  • chose to go thither. They might be people whom my brother might buy. But
  • if he saw they were persons of integrity, he then might go for a day
  • or two, or so. But he must needs say, he could not leave me longer at a
  • time.
  • Do you propose, Sir, said I, to take up your lodgings in the house where
  • I shall lodge?
  • He did not, he said, as he knew the use I intended to make of his
  • absence, and my punctilio--and yet the house where he had lodgings was
  • new-fronting, and not in condition to receive him: but he could go to
  • his friend Belford's, in Soho; or perhaps he might reach to the same
  • gentleman's house at Edgware, over night, and return on the mornings,
  • till he had reason to think this wild project of my brother's laid
  • aside. But to no greater distance till then should he care to venture.
  • The result of all was, to set out on Monday next for town. I hope it
  • will be in a happy hour.
  • CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER XLVI
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. FRIDAY, APRIL 21.
  • [As it was not probable that the Lady could give so particular an
  • account of her own confusion, in the affecting scene she mentions on Mr.
  • Lovelace's offering himself to her acceptance, the following extracts
  • are made from his letter of the above date.]
  • And now, Belford, what wilt thou say, if, like the fly buzzing about the
  • bright taper, I had like to have singed the silken wings of my liberty?
  • Never was man in greater danger of being caught in his own snares: all
  • my views anticipated; all my schemes untried; the admirable creature no
  • brought to town; nor one effort made to know if she be really angel or
  • woman.
  • I offered myself to her acceptance, with a suddenness, 'tis true, that
  • gave her no time to wrap herself in reserves; and in terms less tender
  • than fervent, tending to upbraid her for her past indifference, and to
  • remind her of her injunctions: for it was the fear of her brother,
  • not her love of me, that had inclined her to dispense with those
  • injunctions.
  • I never beheld so sweet a confusion. What a glory to the pencil,
  • could it do justice to it, and to the mingled impatience which visibly
  • informed every feature of the most meaning and most beautiful face
  • in the world! She hemmed twice or thrice: her look, now so charmingly
  • silly, then so sweetly significant; till at last the lovely teaser,
  • teased by my hesitating expectation of her answer, out of all power
  • of articulate speech, burst into tears, and was turning from me with
  • precipitation, when, presuming to fold her in my happy arms--O think
  • not, best beloved of my heart, said I, think not, that this motion,
  • which you may believe to be so contrary to your former injunctions,
  • proceeds from a design to avail myself of the cruelty of your relations:
  • if I have disobliged you by it, (and you know with what respectful
  • tenderness I have presumed to hint it,) it shall be my utmost care for
  • the future--There I stopped----
  • Then she spoke, but with vexation--I am--I am--very unhappy--Tears
  • trickling down her crimson cheeks, and her sweet face, as my arms still
  • encircled the finest waist in the world, sinking upon my shoulder; the
  • dear creature so absent, that she knew not the honour she permitted me.
  • But why, but why unhappy, my dearest life? said I:--all the gratitude
  • that ever overflowed the heart of the most obliged of men--
  • Justice to myself there stopped my mouth: for what gratitude did I owe
  • her for obligations so involuntary?
  • Then recovering herself, and her usual reserves, and struggling to free
  • herself from my clasping arms, How now, Sir! said she, with a cheek more
  • indignantly glowing, and eyes of fiercer lustre.
  • I gave way to her angry struggle; but, absolutely overcome by so
  • charming a display of innocent confusion, I caught hold of her hand as
  • she was flying from me, and kneeling at her fee, O my angel, said I,
  • (quite destitute of reserve, and hardly knowing the tenor of my own
  • speech; and had a parson been there, I had certainly been a gone man,)
  • receive the vows of your faithful Lovelace. Make him yours, and only
  • yours, for ever. This will answer every end. Who will dare to form plots
  • and stratagems against my wife? That you are not so is the ground of
  • all their foolish attempts, and of their insolent hopes in Solmes's
  • favour.--O be mine!--I beseech you (thus on my knee I beseech you) to
  • be mine. We shall then have all the world with us. And every body will
  • applaud an event that every body expects.
  • Was the devil in me! I no more intended all this ecstatic nonsense, than
  • I thought the same moment of flying in the air! All power is with this
  • charming creature. It is I, not she, at this rate, that must fail in the
  • arduous trial.
  • Didst thou ever before hear of a man uttering solemn things by an
  • involuntary impulse, in defiance of premeditation, and of all his proud
  • schemes? But this sweet creature is able to make a man forego every
  • purpose of his heart that is not favourable to her. And I verily think
  • I should be inclined to spare her all further trial (and yet what trial
  • has she had?) were it not for the contention that her vigilance has set
  • on foot, which shall overcome the other. Thou knowest my generosity
  • to my uncontending Rosebud--and sometimes do I qualify my
  • ardent aspirations after even this very fine creature, by this
  • reflection:--That the most charming woman on earth, were she an empress,
  • can excel the meanest in the customary visibles only. Such is the
  • equality of the dispensation, to the prince and the peasant, in this
  • prime gift WOMAN.
  • Well, but what was the result of this involuntary impulse on my
  • part?--Wouldst thou not think; I was taken at my offer?--An offer so
  • solemnly made, and on one knee too?
  • No such thing! The pretty trifler let me off as easily as I could have
  • wished.
  • Her brother's project; and to find that there were no hopes of a
  • reconciliation for her; and the apprehension she had of the mischiefs
  • that might ensue; these, not my offer, nor love of me, were the causes
  • to which she ascribed all her sweet confusion--an ascription that is
  • high treason against my sovereign pride,--to make marriage with me but
  • a second-place refuge; and as good as to tell me that her confusion
  • was owing to her concern that there were no hopes that my enemies would
  • accept of her intended offer to renounce a man who had ventured his life
  • for her, and was still ready to run the same risque in her behalf!
  • I re-urged her to make me happy, but I was to be postponed to her cousin
  • Morden's arrival. On him are now placed all her hopes.
  • I raved; but to no purpose.
  • Another letter was to be sent, or had been sent, to her aunt Hervey, to
  • which she hoped an answer.
  • Yet sometimes I think that fainter and fainter would have been her
  • procrastinations, had I been a man of courage--but so fearful was I of
  • offending!
  • A confounded thing! The man to be so bashful; the woman to want so much
  • courting!--How shall two such come together--no kind mediatress in the
  • way?
  • But I must be contented. 'Tis seldom, however, that a love so ardent as
  • mine, meets with a spirit so resigned in the same person. But true love,
  • I am now convinced, only wishes: nor has it any active will but that of
  • the adored object.
  • But, O the charming creature, again of herself to mention London! Had
  • Singleton's plot been of my own contriving, a more happy expedient could
  • not have been thought of to induce her to resume her purpose of going
  • thither; nor can I divine what could be her reason for postponing it.
  • I enclose the letter from Joseph Leman, which I mentioned to thee in
  • mine of Monday last,* with my answer to it. I cannot resist the vanity
  • that urges me to the communication. Otherwise, it were better, perhaps,
  • that I suffer thee to imagine that this lady's stars fight against
  • her, and dispense the opportunities in my favour, which are only the
  • consequences of my own invention.
  • LETTER XLVII
  • TO ROBERT LOVELACE, ESQ. HIS HONNER SAT. APRIL 15.
  • MAY IT PLEASE YOUR HONNER,
  • This is to let you Honner kno', as how I have been emploied in a bisness
  • I would have been excused from, if so be I could, for it is to gitt
  • evidense from a young man, who has of late com'd out to be my cuzzen
  • by my grandmother's side; and but lately come to live in these partes,
  • about a very vile thing, as younge master calls it, relating to your
  • Honner. God forbid I should call it so without your leafe. It is not for
  • so plane a man as I be, to tacks my betters. It is consarning one Miss
  • Batirton, of Notingam; a very pretty crature, belike.
  • Your Honner got her away, it seems, by a false letter to her, macking
  • believe as how her she-cuzzen, that she derely loved, was coming to see
  • her; and was tacken ill upon the rode: and so Miss Batirton set out in
  • a shase, and one sarvant, to fet her cuzzen from the inne where she laid
  • sick, as she thote: and the sarvant was tricked, and braute back the
  • shase; but Miss Batirton was not harde of for a month, or so. And
  • when it came to passe, that her frends founde her out and would have
  • prossekutid your Honner, your Honner was gone abroad: and so she was
  • broute to bed, as one may say, before your Honner's return: and she got
  • colde in her lyin-inn, and lanquitched, and soon died: and the child is
  • living; but your Honner never troubles your Honner's hedd about it
  • in the least. And this, and some other matters, of verry bad reporte,
  • 'Squier Solmes was to tell my young lady of, if so be she would have
  • harde him speke, before we lost her sweet company, as I may say, from
  • heere.*
  • * See Vol.II. Letters XV. and XVI.
  • Your Honner helped me to many ugly stories to tell against you Honner to
  • my younge master, and younge mistriss; but did not tell me about this.
  • I most humbelly beseche your Honner to be good and kinde and fethful to
  • my deerest younge lady, now you have her; or I shall brake my harte for
  • having done some dedes that have helped to bringe things to this passe.
  • Pray youre dere, good Honner, be just! Prayey do!--As God shall love ye!
  • prayey do!--I cannot write no more for this pressent, for verry fear and
  • grief--
  • But now I am cumm'd to my writing agen, will your Honner be pleased to
  • tell me, if as how there be any danger to your Honner's life from this
  • bisness; for my cuzzen is actile hier'd to go down to Miss Batirton's
  • frendes to see if they will stir in it: for you must kno' your Honner,
  • as how he lived in the Batirton family at the time, and could be a good
  • evidense, and all that.
  • I hope it was not so verry bad as Titus says it was; for he ses as
  • how there was a rape in the case betwixt you at furste, and plese your
  • Honner; and my cuzzen Titus is a very honist younge man as ever brocke
  • bred. This is his carackter; and this made me willinger to owne him for
  • my relation, when we came to talck.
  • If there should be danger of your Honner's life, I hope your Honner will
  • not be hanged like as one of us common men; only have your hedd cut off,
  • or so: and yet it is pit such a hedd should be lossed: but if as how
  • it should be prossekutid to that furr, which God forbid, be plesed
  • natheless to thinck of youre fethful Joseph Leman, before your hedd be
  • condemned; for after condemnation, as I have been told, all will be the
  • king's or the shreeve's.
  • I thote as how it was best to acquent you Honner of this; and for you
  • to let me kno' if I could do any think to sarve your Honner, and prevent
  • mischief with my cuzzen Titus, on his coming back from Nottingam, before
  • he mackes his reporte.
  • I have gin him a hint already: for what, as I sed to him, cuzzen Titus,
  • signifies stirring up the coles and macking of strife, to make rich
  • gentilfolkes live at varience, and to be cutting of throtes, and
  • such-like?
  • Very trewe, sed little Titus. And this, and plese your Honner, gis
  • me hopes of him, if so be your Honner gis me direction; sen', as God
  • kno'es, I have a poor, a verry poor invenshon; only a willing mind to
  • prevent mischief, that is the chief of my aim, and always was, I bless
  • my God!--Els I could have made much mischief in my time; as indeed
  • any sarvant may. Your Honner nathaless praises my invenshon every
  • now-and-then: Alas! and plese your Honner, what invenshon should such a
  • plane man as I have?--But when your Honner sets me agoing by your fine
  • invenshon, I can do well enuff. And I am sure I have a hearty good will
  • to deserve your Honner's faver, if I mought.
  • Two days, as I may say, off and on, have I been writing this long
  • letter. And yet I have not sed all I would say. For, be it knone unto
  • your Honner, as how I do not like that Captain Singleton, which I told
  • you of in my last two letters. He is always laying his hedd and my young
  • master's hedd together; and I suspect much if so be some mischief is not
  • going on between them: and still the more, as because my eldest younge
  • lady seemes to be joined to them sometimes.
  • Last week my younge master sed before my fase, My harte's blood boils
  • over, Capten Singleton, for revenge upon this--and he called your Honner
  • by a name it is not for such a won as me to say what.--Capten Singleton
  • whispred my younge master, being I was by. So young master sed, You may
  • say any thing before Joseph; for, althoff he looks so seelie, he has as
  • good a harte, and as good a hedd, as any sarvante in the world need to
  • have. My conscience touched me just then. But why shoulde it? when all I
  • do is to prevent mischeff; and seeing your Honner has so much patience,
  • which younge master has not; so am not affeard of telling your Honner
  • any thing whatsomever.
  • And furthermore, I have such a desire to desarve your Honner's bounty
  • to me, as mackes me let nothing pass I can tell you of, to prevent harm:
  • and too, besides, your Honner's goodness about the Blew Bore; which I
  • have so good an accounte of!--I am sure I shall be bounden to bless your
  • Honner the longest day I have to live.
  • And then the Blew Bore is not all neither: sen', and please your Honner,
  • the pretty Sowe (God forgive me for gesting in so serus a matter) runs
  • in my hedd likewise. I believe I shall love her mayhap more than your
  • Honner would have me; for she begins to be kind and good-humered, and
  • listens, and plese your Honour, licke as if she was among beans, when I
  • talke about the Blew Bore, and all that.
  • Prayey, your Honner, forgive the gesting of a poor plane man. We common
  • fokes have our joys, and plese your Honner, lick as our betters have;
  • and if we be sometimes snubbed, we can find our underlings to snub them
  • agen; and if not, we can get a wife mayhap, and snub her: so are masters
  • some how or other oursells.
  • But how I try your Honner's patience!--Sarvants will shew their joyful
  • hartes, tho' off but in partinens, when encourag'd.
  • Be plesed from the prems's to let me kno' if as how I can be put upon
  • any sarvice to sarve your Honner, and to sarve my deerest younge lady;
  • which God grant! for I begin to be affearde for her, hearing what peple
  • talck--to be sure your Honner will not do her no harme, as a man may
  • say. But I kno' your Honner must be good to so wonderous a younge lady.
  • How can you help it?--But here my conscience smites me, that, but for
  • some of my stories, which your Honner taute me, my old master, and my
  • old lady, and the two old 'squires, would not have been able to be half
  • so hardhearted as they be, for all my younge master and younge mistress
  • sayes.
  • And here is the sad thing; they cannot come to clere up matters with my
  • deerest young lady, because, as your Honner has ordered it, they have
  • these stories as if bribed by me out of your Honner's sarvant; which
  • must not be known for fere you should kill'n and me too, and blacken the
  • briber!--Ah! your Honner! I doubte as tha I am a very vild fellow, (Lord
  • bless my soil, I pray God!) and did not intend it.
  • But if my deerest younge lady should come to harm, and plese your
  • Honner, the horsepond at the Blew Bore--but Lord preserve us all from
  • all bad mischeff, and all bad endes, I pray the Lord!--For tho'ff you
  • Honner is kinde to me in worldly pelf, yet what shall a man get to loos
  • his soul, as holy Skrittuer says, and plese your Honner?
  • But natheless I am in hope of reppentence hereafter, being but a younge
  • man, if I do wrong thro' ignorens: your Honner being a grate man, and a
  • grave wit; and I a poor crature, not worthy notice; and your Honner able
  • to answer for all. But, howsomever, I am
  • Your Honner's fetheful sarvant in all dewtie, JOSEPH LEMAN.
  • APRIL 15 AND 16.
  • LETTER XLVIII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOSEPH LEMAN MONDAY, APRIL 17.
  • HONEST JOSEPH,
  • You have a worse opinion of your invention than you ought to have.
  • I must praise it again. Of a plain man's head, I have not known many
  • better than yours. How often have your forecast and discretion answered
  • my wishes in cases which I could not foresee, not knowing how my general
  • directions would succeed, or what might happen in the execution of them!
  • You are too doubtful of your own abilities, honest Joseph; that's your
  • fault.--But it being a fault that is owing to natural modesty, you ought
  • rather to be pitied for it than blamed.
  • The affair of Miss Betterton was a youthful frolic. I love dearly to
  • exercise my invention. I do assure you, Joseph, that I have ever had
  • more pleasure in my contrivances, than in the end of them. I am no
  • sensual man: but a man of spirit--one woman is like another--you
  • understand me, Joseph.--In coursing, all the sport is made by the
  • winding hare--a barn-door chick is better eating--now you take me,
  • Joseph.
  • Miss Betterton was but a tradesman's daughter. The family, indeed, was
  • grown rich, and aimed at a new line of gentry; and were unreasonable
  • enough to expect a man of my family would marry her. I was honest.
  • I gave the young lady no hope of that; for she put it to me. She
  • resented--kept up, and was kept up. A little innocent contrivance was
  • necessary to get her out. But no rape in the case, I assure you, Joseph.
  • She loved me--I loved her. Indeed, when I got her to the inn, I asked
  • her no question. It is cruel to ask a modest woman for her consent. It
  • is creating difficulties to both. Had not her friends been officious, I
  • had been constant and faithful to her to this day, as far as I know--for
  • then I had not known my angel.
  • I went not abroad upon her account. She loved me too well to have
  • appeared against me; she refused to sign a paper they had drawn up for
  • her, to found a prosecution upon; and the brutal creatures would not
  • permit the mid-wife's assistance, till her life was in danger; and, I
  • believe, to this her death was owing.
  • I went into mourning for her, though abroad at the time. A distinction I
  • have ever paid to those worthy creatures who dies in childbed by me.
  • I was ever nice in my loves.--These were the rules I laid down to myself
  • on my entrance into active life:--To set the mother above want, if her
  • friends were cruel, and if I could not get her a husband worthy of her:
  • to shun common women--a piece of justice I owed to innocent ladies, as
  • well as to myself: to marry off a former mistress, if possible, before
  • I took to a new one: to maintain a lady handsomely in her lying-in: to
  • provide for the little-one, if it lived, according to the degree of its
  • mother: to go into mourning for the mother, if she died. And the promise
  • of this was a great comfort to the pretty dears, as they grew near their
  • times.
  • All my errors, all my expenses, have been with and upon women. So I
  • could acquit my conscience (acting thus honourably by them) as well as
  • my discretion as to point of fortune.
  • All men love women--and find me a man of more honour, in these points,
  • if you can, Joseph.
  • No wonder the sex love me as they do!
  • But now I am strictly virtuous. I am reformed. So I have been for a
  • long time, resolving to marry as soon as I can prevail upon the most
  • admirable of women to have me. I think of nobody else--it is impossible
  • I should. I have spared very pretty girls for her sake. Very true,
  • Joseph! So set your honest heart at rest--You see the pains I take to
  • satisfy your qualms.
  • But, as to Miss Betterton--no rape in the case, I repeat: rapes are
  • unnatural things, and more are than are imagined, Joseph. I should be
  • loth to be put to such a streight; I never was. Miss Betterton was taken
  • from me against her own will. In that case her friends, not I, committed
  • the rape.
  • I have contrived to see the boy twice, unknown to the aunt who
  • takes care of him; loves him; and would not now part with him on any
  • consideration. The boy is a fine boy I thank God. No father need be
  • ashamed of him. He will be well provided for. If not, I would take
  • care of him. He will have his mother's fortune. They curse the father,
  • ungrateful wretches! but bless the boy--Upon the whole, there is nothing
  • vile in this matter on my side--a great deal on the Bettertons.
  • Wherefore, Joseph, be not thou in pain, either for my head, or for thy
  • own neck; nor for the Blue Boar; nor for the pretty Sow.
  • I love your jesting. Jesting better becomes a poor man than qualms.
  • I love to have you jest. All we say, all we do, all we wish for, is
  • a jest. He that makes life itself not so is a sad fellow, and has the
  • worst of it.
  • I doubt not, Joseph, but you have had your joys, as you say, as well
  • as your betters. May you have more and more, honest Joseph!--He
  • that grudges a poor man joy, ought to have none himself. Jest on,
  • therefore.--Jesting, I repeat, better becomes thee than qualms.
  • I had no need to tell you of Miss Betterton. Did I not furnish you with
  • stories enough, without hers, against myself, to augment your credit
  • with your cunning masters? Besides, I was loth to mention Miss
  • Betterton, her friends being all living, and in credit. I loved her
  • too--for she was taken from me by her cruel friends, while our joys were
  • young.
  • But enough of dear Miss Betterton.--Dear, I say; for death
  • endears.--Rest to her worthy soul!--There, Joseph, off went a deep sigh
  • to the memory of Miss Betterton!
  • As to the journey of little Titus, (I now recollect the fellow by his
  • name) let that take its course: a lady dying in childbed eighteen
  • months ago; no process begun in her life-time; refusing herself to give
  • evidence against me while she lived--pretty circumstances to found an
  • indictment for a rape upon!
  • As to your young lady, the ever-admirable Miss Clarissa Harlowe, I
  • always courted her for a wife. Others rather expected marriage from
  • the vanity of their own hearts, than from my promises; for I was always
  • careful of what I promised. You know, Joseph, that I have gone beyond my
  • promises to you. I do to every body; and why? because it is the best
  • way of showing that I have no grudging or narrow spirit. A promise is
  • an obligation. A just man will keep his promise, a generous man will go
  • beyond it.--This is my rule.
  • If you doubt my honour to your young lady, it is more than she does. She
  • would not stay with me an hour if she did. Mine is the steadiest
  • heart in the world. Hast thou not reason to think it so? Why this
  • squeamishness then, honest Joseph?
  • But it is because thou art honest--so I forgive thee. Whoever loves my
  • divine Clarissa, loves me.
  • Let James Harlowe call me what names he will, for his sister's sake I
  • will bear them. Do not be concerned for me; her favour will make me rich
  • amends; his own vilely malicious heart will make his blood boil over
  • at any time; and when it does, thinkest thou that I will let it touch
  • thine? Ah! Joseph, Joseph! what a foolish teaser is thy conscience! Such
  • a conscience as gives a plain man trouble, when he intends to do for the
  • best, is weakness, not conscience.
  • But say what thou wilt, write all thou knowest or hearest of to me, I'll
  • have patience with every body. Why should I not, when it is as much the
  • desire of my heart, as it is of thine, to prevent mischief?
  • So now, Joseph, having taken all this pains to satisfy thy conscience,
  • and answer all thy doubts, and to banish all thy fears, let me come to a
  • new point.
  • Your endeavours and mine, which were designed, by round-about ways, to
  • reconcile all, even against the wills of the most obstinate, have
  • not, we see answered the end we hoped they would answer; but, on the
  • contrary, have widened the differences between our families. But this
  • has not been either your fault or mine: it is owing to the black,
  • pitch-like blood of your venomous-hearted young master, boiling over, as
  • he owns, that our honest wishes have hitherto been frustrated.
  • Yet we must proceed in the same course. We shall tire them out in time,
  • and they will propose terms; and when they do, they shall find out how
  • reasonable mine shall be, little as they deserve from me.
  • Persevere, therefore, Joseph, honest Joseph, persevere; and unlikely as
  • you may imagine the means, our desires will at last be obtained.
  • We have nothing for it now, but to go through with our work in the way
  • we have begun. For since (as I told you in my last) my beloved mistrusts
  • you, she will blow you up, if she be not mine; if she be, I can, and
  • will, protect you; and as, if there will be any fault, in her opinion,
  • it will be rather mine than yours, she must forgive you, and keep her
  • husband's secrets, for the sake of his reputation; else she will be
  • guilty of a great failure in her duty. So now you have set your hand to
  • the plough, Joseph, there is no looking back.
  • And what is the consequence of all this: one labour more, and that will
  • be all that will fall to your lot; at least, of consequence.
  • My beloved is resolved not to think of marriage till she has tried
  • to move her friends to a reconciliation with her. You know they are
  • determined not to be reconciled. She has it in her head, I doubt not,
  • to make me submit to the people I hate; and if I did, they would rather
  • insult me, than receive my condescension as they ought. She even owns,
  • that she will renounce me, if they insist upon it, provided they will
  • give up Solmes: so, to all appearance, I am still as far as ever from
  • the happiness of calling her mine; Indeed I am more likely than ever to
  • lose her, (if I cannot contrive some way to avail myself of the present
  • critical situation;) and then, Joseph, all I have been studying, and all
  • you have been doing, will signify nothing.
  • At the place where we are, we cannot long be private. The lodgings
  • are inconvenient for us, while both together, and while she refuses
  • to marry. She wants to get me at a distance from her; there are
  • extraordinary convenient lodgings, in my eye, in London, where we
  • could be private, and all mischief avoided. When there, (if I get
  • her thither,) she will insist that I leave her. Miss Howe is for ever
  • putting her upon contrivances. That, you know, is the reason I have been
  • obliged, by your means, to play the family off at Harlowe-place upon
  • Mrs. Howe, and Mrs. Howe upon her daughter--Ah, Joseph! Little need for
  • your fears for my angel! I only am in danger: but were I the free-liver
  • I am reported to be, all this could I get over with a wet finger, as the
  • saying is.
  • But, by the help of one of your hints, I have thought of an expedient
  • which will do ever thing, and raise your reputation, though already
  • so high, higher still. This Singleton, I hear, is a fellow who loves
  • enterprising: the view he has to get James Harlowe to be his principal
  • owner in a large vessel which he wants to be put into the command of,
  • may be the subject of their present close conversation. But since he
  • is taught to have so good an opinion of you, Joseph, cannot you (still
  • pretending an abhorrence of me, and of my contrivances) propose to
  • Singleton to propose to James Harlowe (who so much thirsts for revenge
  • upon me) to assist him, with his whole ship's crew, upon occasion, to
  • carry off his sister to Leith, where both have houses, or elsewhere?
  • You may tell them, that if this can be effected, it will make me raving
  • mad; and bring your young lady into all their measures.
  • You can inform them, as from my servant, of the distance she keeps me
  • at, in hopes of procuring her father's forgiveness, by cruelly giving me
  • up, if insisted upon.
  • You can tell them, that as the only secret my servant has kept from you
  • is the place we are in, you make no doubt, that a two-guinea bribe will
  • bring that out, and also an information when I shall be at a distance
  • from her, that the enterprise may be conducted with safety.
  • You may tell them, (still as from my servant,) that we are about to
  • remove from inconvenient lodgings to others more convenient, (which is
  • true,) and that I must be often absent from her.
  • If they listen to your proposal, you will promote your interest with
  • Betty, by telling it to her as a secret. Betty will tell Arabella of
  • it; Arabella will be overjoyed at any thing that will help forward her
  • revenge upon me; and will reveal it (if her brother do not) to her uncle
  • Antony; he probably will whisper it to Mrs. Howe; she can keep nothing
  • from her daughter, though they are always jangling. Her daughter will
  • acquaint my beloved with it. And if it will not, or if it will, come to
  • my ears from some of those, you can write it to me, as in confidence, by
  • way of preventing msicheif; which is the study of us both.
  • I can then show it to my beloved; then will she be for placing a greater
  • confidence in me--that will convince me of her love, which I am now
  • sometimes ready to doubt. She will be for hastening to the safer
  • lodgings. I shall have a pretence to stay about her person, as a guard.
  • She will be convinced that there is no expectation to be had of a
  • reconciliation. You can give James Harlowe and Singleton continual false
  • scents, as I shall direct you; so that no mischief can possibly happen.
  • And what will be the happy, happy, thrice happy consequence?--The lady
  • will be mine in an honourable way, we shall all be friends in good time.
  • The two guineas will be an agreeable addition to the many gratuities I
  • have helped you to, by the like contrivances, from this stingy family.
  • Your reputation, both for head and heart, as I hinted before, will be
  • heightened. The Blue Boar also will be yours; nor shall you have the
  • least difficulty about raising money to buy the stock, if it be worth
  • your while to have it.
  • Betty will likewise then be yours. You have both saved money, it seems.
  • The whole Harlowe family, whom you have so faithfully served, ['tis
  • serving them, surely, to prevent the mischief which their violent
  • son would have brought upon them,] will throw you in somewhat towards
  • housekeeping. I will still add to your store--so nothing but happiness
  • before you!
  • Crow, Joseph, crow!--a dunghill of thy own in view; servants to snub at
  • thy pleasure; a wife to quarrel with, or to love, as thy humour leads
  • thee; Landlord and Landlady at every word; to be paid, instead of
  • paying, for thy eating and drinking. But not thus happy only in thyself:
  • happy in promoting peace and reconciliation between two good families,
  • in the long run, without hurting any christian soul. O Joseph, honest
  • Joseph! what envy wilt thou raise, and who would be squeamish with such
  • prospects before him.
  • This one labour, I repeat, crowns the work. If you can get but such a
  • design entertained by them, whether they prosecute it or not, it will be
  • equally to the purpose of
  • Your loving friend, R. LOVELACE.
  • LETTER XLIX
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MRS. HERVEY [ENCLOSED IN HER LAST TO MISS
  • HOWE.] THURSDAY, APRIL 20.
  • HONOURED MADAM,
  • Having not had the favour of an answer to a letter I took the liberty
  • to write to you on the 14th, I am in some hopes that it may have
  • miscarried: for I had much rather it should, than to have the
  • mortification to think that my aunt Hervey deemed me unworthy of the
  • honour of her notice.
  • In this hope, having kept a copy of it, and not become able to express
  • myself in terms better suited to the unhappy circumstances of things, I
  • transcribe and enclose what I then wrote.* And I humbly beseech you to
  • favour the contents of it with your interest.
  • * The contents of the Letter referred to are given in Letter XXIV. of
  • this volume.
  • Hitherto it is in my power to perform what I undertake for in this
  • letter; and it would be very grievous to me to be precipitated upon
  • measures, which may render the desirable reconciliation more difficult.
  • If, Madam, I were permitted to write to you with the hopes of being
  • answered, I could clear my intention with regard to the step I have
  • taken, although I could not perhaps acquit myself to some of my severest
  • judges, of an imprudence previous to it. You, I am sure, would pity me,
  • if you knew all I could say, and how miserable I am in the forfeiture of
  • the good opinion of all my friends.
  • I flatter myself, that their favour is yet retrievable: but, whatever be
  • the determination at Harlowe-place, do not you, my dearest Aunt, deny
  • me the favour of a few lines to inform me if there can be any hope of
  • a reconciliation upon terms less shocking than those heretofore
  • endeavoured to be imposed upon me; or if (which God forbid!) I am to be
  • for ever reprobated.
  • At least, my dear Aunt, procure for me the justice of my wearing
  • apparel, and the little money and other things which I wrote to my
  • sister for, and mention in the enclosed to you; that I may not be
  • destitute of common conveniencies, or be under a necessity to owe an
  • obligation for such, where, at present, however, I would least of all
  • owe it.
  • Allow me to say, that had I designed what happened, I might (as to the
  • money and jewels at least) have saved myself some of the mortification
  • which I have suffered, and which I still further apprehend, if my
  • request be not complied with.
  • If you are permitted to encourage an eclaircissment of what I hint, I
  • will open my whole heart to you, and inform you of every thing.
  • If it be any pleasure to have me mortified, be pleased to let it be
  • known, that I am extremely mortified. And yet it is entirely from my
  • own reflections that I am so, having nothing to find fault with in the
  • behaviour of the person from whom every evil was to be apprehended.
  • The bearer, having business your way, will bring me your answer on
  • Saturday morning, if you favour me according to my hopes. I knew not
  • that I should have this opportunity till I had written the above.
  • I am, my dearest Aunt, Your ever dutiful, CL. HARLOWE.
  • Be pleased to direct for me, if I am to be favoured with a few lines, to
  • be left at Mr. Osgood's, near Soho-square; and nobody shall ever know of
  • your goodness to me, if you desire it to be kept a secret.
  • LETTER L
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE SATURDAY, APRIL 22.
  • I cannot for my life account for your wretch's teasing ways; but he
  • certainly doubts your love of him. In this he is a modest man, as well
  • as somebody else; and tacitly confesses that he does not deserve it.
  • Your Israelitish hankerings after the Egyptian onion, (testified still
  • more in your letter to your aunt,) your often repeated regrets for
  • meeting him, for being betrayed by him--these he cannot bear.
  • I have been looking back on the whole of his conduct, and comparing it
  • with his general character; and find that he is more consistently, more
  • uniformly, mean, revengeful, and proud, than either of us once imagined.
  • From his cradle, as I may say, as an only child, and a boy, humoursome,
  • spoiled, mischievous; the governor of his governors.
  • A libertine in his riper years, hardly regardful of appearances; and
  • despising the sex in general, for the faults of particulars of it, who
  • made themselves too cheap to him.
  • What has been his behaviour in your family?--a CLARISSA in view, (from
  • the time your foolish brother was obliged to take a life from him,)
  • but defiance for defiances. Getting you into his power by terror, by
  • artifice. What politeness can be expected from such a man?
  • Well, but what in such a situation is to be done? Why, you must
  • despise him: you must hate him, if you can, and run away from him--But
  • whither?--Whither indeed, now that your brother is laying foolish plots
  • to put you in a still worse condition, as it may happen.
  • But if you cannot despise and hate him--if you care not to break with
  • him, you must part with some punctilio's. And if the so doing bring
  • not on the solemnity, you must put yourself into the protection of the
  • ladies of his family.
  • Their respect for you is of itself a security for his honour to you, if
  • there could be any room for doubt. And at least, you should remind him
  • of his offer to bring one of the Miss Montagues to attend you at your
  • new lodgings in town, and accompany you till all is happily over.
  • This, you'll say, will be as good as declaring yourself to be his. And
  • so let it. You ought not now to think of any thing else but to be his.
  • Does not your brother's project convince you more and more of this?
  • Give over then, my dearest friend, any thoughts of this hopeless
  • reconciliation, which has kept you balancing thus long. You own, in the
  • letter before me, that he made very explicit offers, though you give me
  • not the very words. And he gave his reasons, I perceive, with his wishes
  • that you should accept them; which very few of the sorry fellows do,
  • whose plea is generally but a compliment to our self-love--That we must
  • love them, however presumptuous and unworthy, because they love us.
  • Were I in your place, and had your charming delicacies, I should,
  • perhaps, do as you do. No doubt but I should expect that the man
  • should urge me with respectful warmth; that he should supplicate with
  • constancy, and that all his words and actions should tend to the one
  • principal point; nevertheless, if I suspected art or delay, founded upon
  • his doubts of my love, I would either condescend to clear up is doubts
  • or renounce him for ever.
  • And in my last case, I, your Anna Howe, would exert myself, and either
  • find you a private refuge, or resolve to share fortunes with you.
  • What a wretch! to be so easily answered by your reference to the arrival
  • of your cousin Morden! But I am afraid that you was too scrupulous: for
  • did he not resent that reference?
  • Could we have his account of the matter, I fancy, my dear, I should
  • think you over nice, over delicate.* Had you laid hold of his
  • acknowledged explicitness, he would have been as much in your power, as
  • now you seem to be in his: you wanted not to be told, that the person
  • who had been tricked into such a step as you had taken, must of
  • necessity submit to many mortifications.
  • * The reader who has seen his account, which Miss Howe could not have
  • seen, when she wrote thus, will observe that it was not possible for a
  • person of her true delicacy of mind to act otherwise than she did, to a
  • man so cruelly and so insolently artful.
  • But were it to me, a girl of spirit as I am thought to be, I do assure
  • you, I would, in a quarter of an hour (all the time I would allow to
  • punctilio in such a case as yours) know what he drives at: since either
  • he must mean well or ill; if ill, the sooner you know it, the better. If
  • well, whose modesty is it he distresses, but that of his own wife?
  • And methinks you should endeavour to avoid all exasperating
  • recriminations, as to what you have heard of his failure in morals;
  • especially while you are so happy as not to have occasion to speak of
  • them by experience.
  • I grant that it gives a worthy mind some satisfaction in having borne
  • its testimony against the immoralities of a bad one. But that correction
  • which is unseasonably given, is more likely either to harden or make an
  • hypocrite, than to reclaim.
  • I am pleased, however, as well as you, with his making light of your
  • brother's wise project.--Poor creature! and must Master Jemmy Harlowe,
  • with his half-wit, pretend to plot, and contrive mischief, yet rail at
  • Lovelace for the same things?--A witty villain deserves hanging at once
  • (and without ceremony, if you please): but a half-witted one deserves
  • broken bones first, and hanging afterwards. I think Lovelace has given
  • his character in a few words.*
  • * See Letter XLV. of this volume.
  • Be angry at me, if you please; but as sure as you are alive, now that
  • this poor creature, whom some call your brother, finds he has succeeded
  • in making you fly your father's house, and that he has nothing to fear
  • but your getting into your own, and into an independence of him,
  • he thinks himself equal to any thing, and so he has a mind to fight
  • Lovelace with his own weapons.
  • Don't you remember his pragmatical triumph, as told you by your aunt,
  • and prided in by that saucy Betty Barnes, from his own foolish mouth?*
  • * See Vol.II. Letter XLVII.
  • I expect nothing from your letter to your aunt. I hope Lovelace will
  • never know the contents of it. In every one of yours, I see that he
  • as warmly resents as he dares the little confidence you have in him. I
  • should resent it too, were I he; and knew that I deserved better.
  • Don't be scrupulous about clothes, if you think of putting yourself into
  • the protection of the ladies of his family. They know how matters stand
  • between you and your relations, and love you never the worse for the
  • silly people's cruelty.
  • I know you won't demand possession of your estate. But give him a right
  • to demand it for you; and that will be still better.
  • Adieu, my dear! May heaven guide and direct you in all your steps, is
  • the daily prayer of
  • Your ever affectionate and faithful ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER LI
  • MR. BELFORD, TO ROBERT LOVELACE, ESQ. FRIDAY, APRIL 21.
  • Thou, Lovelace, hast been long the entertainer; I the entertained. Nor
  • have I been solicitous to animadvert, as thou wentest along, upon thy
  • inventions, and their tendency. For I believed, that with all thy airs,
  • the unequalled perfections and fine qualities of this lady would always
  • be her protection and security. But now that I find thou hast so far
  • succeeded, as to induce her to come to town, and to choose her lodgings
  • in a house, the people of which will too probably damp and suppress any
  • honourable motions which may arise in thy mind in her favour, I cannot
  • help writing, and that professedly in her behalf.
  • My inducements to this are not owing to virtue: But if they were, what
  • hope could I have of affecting thee by pleas arising from it?
  • Nor would such a man as thou art be deterred, were I to remind thee
  • of the vengeance which thou mayest one day expect, if thou insultest a
  • woman of her character, family, and fortune.
  • Neither are gratitude and honour motives to be mentioned in a woman's
  • favour, to men such as we are, who consider all those of the sex as
  • fair prize, over honour, in the general acceptation of the word, are two
  • things.
  • What then is my motive?--What, but the true friendship that I bear thee,
  • Lovelace; which makes me plead thy own sake, and thy family's sake, in
  • the justice thou owest to this incomparable creature; who, however,
  • so well deserves to have her sake to be mentioned as the principal
  • consideration.
  • Last time I was at M. Hall, thy noble uncle so earnestly pressed me to
  • use my interest to persuade thee to enter the pale, and gave me so many
  • family reasons for it, that I could not help engaging myself heartily
  • on his side of the question; and the rather, as I knew that thy own
  • intentions with regard to this fine woman were then worthy of her. And
  • of this I assured his Lordship; who was half afraid of thee, because of
  • the ill usage thou receivedst from her family. But now, that the case is
  • altered, let me press the matter home to thee from other considerations.
  • By what I have heard of this lady's perfections from every mouth, as
  • well as from thine, and from every letter thou hast written, where
  • wilt thou find such another woman? And why shouldst thou tempt her
  • virtue?--Why shouldst thou wish to try where there is no reason to
  • doubt?
  • Were I in thy case, and designed to marry, and if I preferred a woman
  • as I know thou dost this to all the women in the world, I should read
  • to make further trial, knowing what we know of the sex, for fear of
  • succeeding; and especially if I doubted not, that if there were a woman
  • in the world virtuous at heart, it is she.
  • And let me tell thee, Lovelace, that in this lady's situation, the
  • trial is not a fair trial. Considering the depth of thy plots and
  • contrivances: considering the opportunities which I see thou must have
  • with her, in spite of her own heart; all her relations' follies acting
  • in concert, though unknown to themselves, with thy wicked, scheming
  • head: considering how destitute of protection she is: considering the
  • house she is to be in, where she will be surrounded with thy implements;
  • specious, well-bred and genteel creatures, not easily to be detected
  • when they are disposed to preserve appearances, especially by the young
  • inexperienced lady wholly unacquainted with the town: considering all
  • these things, I say, what glory, what cause of triumph wilt thou have,
  • if she should be overcome?--Thou, too, a man born for intrigue, full
  • of invention, intrepid, remorseless, able patiently to watch for thy
  • opportunity, not hurried, as most men, by gusts of violent passion,
  • which often nip a project in the bud, and make the snail, that was just
  • putting out his horns to meet the inviter, withdraw into its shell--a
  • man who has no regard to his word or oath to the sex; the lady
  • scrupulously strict to her word, incapable of art or design; apt
  • therefore to believe well of others--it would be a miracle if she stood
  • such an attempter, such attempts, and such snares, as I see will be
  • laid for her. And, after all, I see not when men are so frail without
  • importunity, that so much should be expected from women, daughters of
  • the same fathers and mothers, and made up of the same brittle compounds,
  • (education all the difference,) nor where the triumph is in subduing
  • them.
  • May there not be other Lovelaces, thou askest, who, attracted by her
  • beauty, may endeavour to prevail with her?*
  • * See Letter XVIII. of this volume.
  • No; there cannot, I answer, be such another man, person, mind, fortune,
  • and thy character, as above given, taken in. If thou imaginest there
  • could, such is thy pride, that thou wouldst think the worse of thyself.
  • But let me touch upon thy predominant passion, revenge; for love is but
  • second to that, as I have often told thee, though it has set thee into
  • raving at me: what poor pretences for revenge are the difficulties thou
  • hadst in getting her off; allowing that she had run a risque of being
  • Solmes's wife, had she staid? If these are other than pretences, why
  • thankest thou not those who, by their persecutions of her, answered thy
  • hopes, and threw her into thy power?--Besides, are not the pretences
  • thou makest for further trial, most ungratefully, as well as
  • contradictorily founded upon the supposition of error in her, occasioned
  • by her favour to thee?
  • And let me, for the utter confusion of thy poor pleas of this nature,
  • ask thee--Would she, in thy opinion, had she willingly gone off with
  • thee, have been entitled to better quarter?--For a mistress indeed she
  • might: but how wouldst thou for a wife have had cause to like her half
  • so well as now?
  • Has she not demonstrated, that even the highest provocations were not
  • sufficient to warp her from her duty to her parents, though a native,
  • and, as I may say, an originally involuntary duty, because native? And
  • is not this a charming earnest that she will sacredly observe a still
  • higher duty into which she proposes to enter, when she does enter, by
  • plighted vows, and entirely as a volunteer?
  • That she loves thee, wicked as thou art, and cruel as a panther, there
  • is no reason to doubt. Yet, what a command has she over herself, that
  • such a penetrating self-flatterer as thyself is sometimes ready to doubt
  • it! Though persecuted on the one hand, as she was, by her own family,
  • and attracted, on the other, by the splendour of thine; every one of
  • whom courts her to rank herself among them!
  • Thou wilt perhaps think that I have departed from my proposition, and
  • pleaded the lady's sake more than thine, in the above--but no such
  • thing. All that I have written is more in thy behalf than in her's;
  • since she may make thee happy; but it is next to impossible, I should
  • think, if she preserve her delicacy, that thou canst make her so. What
  • is the love of a rakish heart? There cannot be peculiarity in it. But I
  • need not give my further reasons. Thou wilt have ingenuousness enough, I
  • dare say, were there occasion for it, to subscribe to my opinion.
  • I plead not for the state from any great liking to it myself. Nor have
  • I, at present, thoughts of entering into it. But, as thou art the last
  • of thy name; as thy family is of note and figure in thy country; and as
  • thou thyself thinkest that thou shalt one day marry: Is it possible, let
  • me ask thee, that thou canst have such another opportunity as thou now
  • hast, if thou lettest this slip? A woman in her family and fortune not
  • unworthy of thine own (though thou art so apt, from pride of ancestry,
  • and pride of heart, to speak slightly of the families thou dislikest);
  • so celebrated for beauty; and so noted at the same time for prudence,
  • for soul, (I will say, instead of sense,) and for virtue?
  • If thou art not so narrow-minded an elf, as to prefer thine own single
  • satisfaction to posterity, thou, who shouldst wish to beget children for
  • duration, wilt not postpone till the rake's usual time; that is to say,
  • till diseases or years, or both, lay hold of thee; since in that case
  • thou wouldst entitle thyself to the curses of thy legitimate progeny
  • for giving them a being altogether miserable: a being which they will
  • be obliged to hold upon a worse tenure than that tenant-courtesy,
  • which thou callest the worst;* to wit, upon the Doctor's courtesy;
  • thy descendants also propagating (if they shall live, and be able to
  • propagate) a wretched race, that shall entail the curse, or the reason
  • for it, upon remote generations.
  • Wicked as the sober world accounts you and me, we have not yet, it is
  • to be hoped, got over all compunction. Although we find religion against
  • us, we have not yet presumed those who do. And we know better than to
  • be even doubters. In short, we believe a future state of rewards and
  • punishments. But as we have so much youth and health in hand, we hope to
  • have time for repentance. That is to say, in plain English, [nor think
  • thou me too grave, Lovelace: thou art grave sometimes, though not
  • often,] we hope to live to sense, as long as sense can relish, and
  • purpose to reform when we can sin no longer.
  • And shall this admirable woman suffer for her generous endeavours to set
  • on foot thy reformation; and for insisting upon proofs of the sincerity
  • of thy professions before she will be thine?
  • Upon the whole matter, let me wish thee to consider well what thou art
  • about, before thou goest a step farther in the path which thou hast
  • chalked out for thyself to tread, and art just going to enter upon.
  • Hitherto all is so far right, that if the lady mistrusts thy honour, she
  • has no proofs. Be honest to her, then, in her sense of the word. None of
  • thy companions, thou knowest, will offer to laugh at what thou dost.
  • And if they should (of thy entering into a state which has been so much
  • ridiculed by thee, and by all of us) thou hast one advantage--it is
  • this, that thou canst not be ashamed.
  • Deferring to the post-day to close my letter, I find one left at my
  • cousin Osgood's, with directions to be forwarded to the lady. It
  • was brought within these two hours by a particular hand, and has a
  • Harlowe-seal upon it. As it may therefore be of importance, I dispatch
  • it with my own, by my servant, post-haste.*
  • * This letter was from Miss Arabella Harlowe. See Let. LV.
  • I suppose you will soon be in town. Without the lady, I hope. Farewell.
  • Be honest, and be happy, J. BELFORD.
  • SAT. APRIL 22.
  • LETTER LII
  • MRS. HERVEY, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE [IN ANSWER TO LETTER XVIII.]
  • DEAR NIECE,
  • It would be hard not to write a few lines, so much pressed to write, to
  • one I ever loved. Your former letter I received; yet was not at liberty
  • to answer it. I break my word to answer you now.
  • Strange informations are every day received about you. The wretch you
  • are with, we are told, is every hour triumphing and defying--Must not
  • these informations aggravate? You know the uncontroulableness of the
  • man. He loves his own humour better than he loves you--though so fine a
  • creature as you are! I warned you over and over: no young lady was ever
  • more warned!--Miss Clarissa Harlowe to do such a thing!
  • You might have given your friends the meeting. If you had held your
  • aversion, it would have been complied with. As soon as I was intrusted
  • myself with their intention to give up the point, I gave you a hint--a
  • dark one perhaps*--but who would have thought--O Miss!--Such an artful
  • flight!--Such cunning preparations!
  • But you want to clear up things--what can you clear up? Are you not gone
  • off?--With a Lovelace too? What, my dear, would you clear up?
  • You did not design to go, you say. Why did you meet him then, chariot
  • and six, horsemen, all prepared by him? O my dear, how art produces
  • art!--Will it be believed?--If it would, what power will he be
  • thought to have had over you!--He--Who?--Lovelace!--The vilest of
  • libertines!--Over whom? A Clarissa!--Was your love for such a man above
  • your reason? Above your resolution? What credit would a belief of this,
  • if believed, bring you?--How mend the matter?--Oh! that you had stood
  • the next morning!
  • I'll tell you all that was intended if you had.
  • It was, indeed, imagined that you would not have been able to resist
  • your father's entreaties and commands. He was resolved to be all
  • condescension, if anew you had not provoked him. I love my Clary
  • Harlowe, said he, but an hour before the killing tidings were brought
  • him; I love her as my life: I will kneel to her, if nothing else will
  • do, to prevail upon her to oblige me.
  • Your father and mother (the reverse of what should have been!) would
  • have humbled themselves to you: and if you could have denied them, and
  • refused to sign the settlements previous to the meeting, they would have
  • yielded, although with regret.
  • But it was presumed, so naturally sweet your temper, so self-denying
  • as they thought you, that you could not have withstood them,
  • notwithstanding all your dislike of the one man, without a greater
  • degree of headstrong passion for the other, than you had given any of us
  • reason to expect from you.
  • If you had, the meeting on Wednesday would have been a lighter trial to
  • you. You would have been presented to all your assembled friends, with
  • a short speech only, 'That this was the young creature, till very lately
  • faultless, condescending, and obliging; now having cause to glory in a
  • triumph over the wills of father, mother, uncles, the most indulgent;
  • over family-interests, family-views; and preferring her own will to
  • every body's! and this for a transitory preference to person only; there
  • being no comparison between the men in their morals.'
  • Thus complied with, and perhaps blessed, by your father and mother, and
  • the consequences of your disobedience deprecated in the solemnest manner
  • by your inimitable mother, your generosity would have been appealed to,
  • since your duty would have been fount too weak an inducement, and you
  • would have been bid to withdraw for one half hour's consideration. Then
  • would the settlements have been again tendered for your signing, by
  • the person least disobliging to you; by your good Norton perhaps; she
  • perhaps seconded by your father again; and, if again refused, you
  • would have again have been led in to declare such your refusal. Some
  • restrictions which you yourself had proposed, would have been insisted
  • upon. You would have been permitted to go home with me, or with your
  • uncle Antony, (with which of us was not agreed upon, because they hoped
  • you might be persuaded,) there to stay till the arrival of your cousin
  • Morden; or till your father could have borne to see you; or till assured
  • that the views of Lovelace were at an end.
  • This the intention, your father so set upon your compliance, so much in
  • hopes that you would have yielded, that you would have been prevailed
  • upon by methods so condescending and so gentle; no wonder that he, in
  • particular, was like a distracted man, when he heard of your flight--of
  • your flight so premeditated;--with your ivy summer-house dinings, your
  • arts to blind me, and all of us!--Naughty, naughty, young creature!
  • I, for my part, would not believe it, when told of it. Your uncle Hervey
  • would not believe it. We rather expected, we rather feared, a still more
  • desperate adventure. There could be but one more desperate; and I
  • was readier to have the cascade resorted to, than the garden
  • back-door.--Your mother fainted away, while her heart was torn between
  • the two apprehensions.--Your father, poor man! your father was
  • beside himself for near an hour--What imprecations!--What dreadful
  • imprecations!--To this day he can hardly bear your name: yet can
  • think of nobody else. Your merits, my dear, but aggravate your
  • fault.--Something of fresh aggravation every hour.--How can any favour
  • be expected?
  • I am sorry for it; but am afraid nothing you ask will be complied with.
  • Why mention you, my dear, the saving you from mortifications, who have
  • gone off with a man? What a poor pride is it to stand upon any thing
  • else!
  • I dare not open my lips in your favour. Nobody dare. Your letter must
  • stand by itself. This has caused me to send it to Harlowe-place. Expect
  • therefore great severity. May you be enabled to support the lot you have
  • drawn! O my dear! how unhappy have you made every body! Can you expect
  • to be happy? Your father wishes you had never been born. Your poor
  • mother--but why should I afflict you? There is now no help!--You must be
  • changed, indeed, if you are not very unhappy yourself in the reflections
  • your thoughtful mind must suggest to you.
  • You must now make the best of your lot. Yet not married, it seems!
  • It is in your power, you say, to perform whatever you shall undertake
  • to do. You may deceive yourself: you hope that your reputation and the
  • favour of your friends may be retrieved. Never, never, both, I doubt,
  • if either. Every offended person (and that is all who loved you, and are
  • related to you) must join to restore you: when can these be of one mind
  • in a case so notoriously wrong?
  • It would be very grievous, you say, to be precipitated upon measures
  • that may make the desirable reconciliation more difficult. Is it now, my
  • dear, a time for you to be afraid of being precipitated? At present,
  • if ever, there can be no thought of reconciliation. The upshot of your
  • precipitation must first be seen. There may be murder yet, as far as we
  • know. Will the man you are with part willingly with you? If not, what
  • may be the consequence? If he will--Lord bless me! what shall we
  • think of his reasons for it?--I will fly this thought. I know your
  • purity--But, my dear, are you not out of all protection?--Are you not
  • unmarried?--Have you not (making your daily prayers useless) thrown
  • yourself into temptation? And is not the man the most wicked of
  • plotters?
  • You have hitherto, you say, (and I think, my dear, with an air
  • unbecoming to your declared penitence,) no fault to find with the
  • behaviour of a man from whom every evil was apprehended: like Caesar to
  • the Roman augur, which I heard you tell of, who had bid him beware the
  • Ides of March: the Ides of March, said Caesar, seeing the augur among
  • the crowd, as he marched in state to the senate-house, from which he
  • was never to return alive, the Ides of March are come. But they are not
  • past, the augur replied. Make the application, my dear: may you be able
  • to make this reflection upon his good behaviour to the last of your
  • knowledge of him! May he behave himself better to you, than he ever did
  • to any body else over whom he had power! Amen!
  • No answer, I beseech you. I hope your messenger will not tell any body
  • that I have written to you. And I dare say you will not show what I
  • have written to Mr. Lovelace--for I have written with the less reserve,
  • depending upon your prudence.
  • You have my prayers.
  • My Dolly knows not that I write: nobody does*; not even Mr. Hervey.
  • * Notwithstanding what Mrs. Hervey here says, it will be hereafter seen
  • that this severe letter was written in private concert with the
  • implacable Arabella.
  • Dolly would have several times written: but having defended your fault
  • with heat, and with a partiality that alarmed us, (such a fall as
  • your's, my dear, must be alarming to all parents,) she has been
  • forbidden, on pain of losing our favour for ever: and this at your
  • family's request, as well as by her father's commands.
  • You have the poor girl's hourly prayers, I will, however, tell you,
  • though she knows not what I do, as well as those of
  • Your truly afflicted aunt, D. HERVEY.
  • FRIDAY, APRIL 21.
  • LETTER LIII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE [WITH THE PRECEDING.] SAT. MORN.
  • APRIL 22.
  • I have just now received the enclosed from my aunt Hervey. Be pleased,
  • my dear, to keep her secret of having written to the unhappy wretch her
  • niece.
  • I may go to London, I see, or where I will. No matter what becomes of
  • me.
  • I was the willinger to suspend my journey thither till I heard from
  • Harlowe-place. I thought, if I could be encouraged to hope for a
  • reconciliation, I would let this man see, that he should not have me in
  • his power, but upon my own terms, if at all.
  • But I find I must be his, whether I will or not; and perhaps through
  • still greater mortifications than those great ones which I have already
  • met with--And must I be so absolutely thrown upon a man, with whom I am
  • not at all satisfied!
  • My letter is sent, you see, to Harlowe-place. My heart aches for the
  • reception it may meet with there.
  • One comfort only arises to me from its being sent; that my aunt will
  • clear herself, by the communication, from the supposition of having
  • corresponded with the poor creature whom they have all determine to
  • reprobate. It is no small part of my misfortune that I have weakened the
  • confidence one dear friend has in another, and made one look cool upon
  • another. My poor cousin Dolly, you see, has reason to regret on this
  • account, as well as my aunt. Miss Howe, my dear Miss Howe, is but too
  • sensible of the effects of my fault, having had more words with her
  • mother on my account, than ever she had on any other. Yet the man who
  • has drawn me into all this evil I must be thrown upon!--Much did I
  • consider, much did I apprehend, before my fault, supposing I were to be
  • guilty of it: but I saw it not in all its shocking lights.
  • And now, to know that my father, an hour before he received the tidings
  • of my supposed flight, owned that he loved me as his life: that he would
  • have been all condescension: that he would--Oh! my dear, how tender, how
  • mortifyingly tender now in him! My aunt need not have been afraid, that
  • it should be known that she has sent me such a letter as this!--A father
  • to kneel to his child!--There would not indeed have been any bearing of
  • that!--What I should have done in such a case, I know not. Death
  • would have been much more welcome to me than such a sight, on such an
  • occasion, in behalf of a man so very, very disgustful to me!--But I had
  • deserve annihilation, had I suffered my father to kneel in vain.
  • Yet, had but the sacrifice of inclination and personal preference been
  • all, less than KNEELING should have been done. My duty should have been
  • the conqueror of my inclination. But an aversion--an aversion so
  • very sincere!--The triumph of a cruel and ambitious brother, ever so
  • uncontroulable, joined with the insults of an envious sister, bringing
  • wills to theirs, which otherwise would have been favourable to me: the
  • marriage-duties, so absolutely indispensable, so solemnly to be engaged
  • for: the marriage-intimacies (permit me to say to you, my friend, what
  • the purest, although with apprehension, must think of) so very
  • intimate: myself one who has never looked upon any duty, much less a
  • voluntary-vowed one, with indifference; could it have been honest in me
  • to have given my hand to an odious hand, and to have consented to such a
  • more than reluctant, such an immiscible union, if I may so call it?--For
  • life too!--Did not I think more and deeper than most young creatures
  • think; did I not weigh, did I not reflect, I might perhaps have been
  • less obstinate.--Delicacy, (may I presume to call it?) thinking,
  • weighing, reflection, are not blessings (I he not found them such) in
  • the degree I have them. I wish I had been able, in some very nice
  • cases, to have known what indifference was; yet not to have my ignorance
  • imputable to me as a fault. Oh! my dear! the finer sensibilities, if I
  • may suppose mine to be such, make not happy.
  • What a method had my friends intended to take with me! This, I dare
  • say, was a method chalked out by my brother. He, I suppose, was to have
  • presented me to all my assembled friends, as the daughter capable of
  • preferring her own will to the wills of them all. It would have been a
  • sore trial, no doubt. Would to Heaven, however, I had stood it--let the
  • issue have been what it would, would to Heaven I had stood it!
  • There may be murder, my aunt says. This looks as if she knew of
  • Singleton's rash plot. Such an upshot, as she calls it, of this unhappy
  • affair, Heaven avert!
  • She flies a thought, that I can less dwell upon--a cruel thought--but
  • she has a poor opinion of the purity she compliments me with, if she
  • thinks that I am not, by God's grace, above temptation from this sex.
  • Although I never saw a man, whose person I could like, before this
  • man; yet his faulty character allowed me but little merit from the
  • indifference I pretended to on his account. But, now I see him in nearer
  • lights, I like him less than ever. Unpolite, cruel, insolent!--Unwise!
  • A trifler with his own happiness; the destroyer of mine!--His last
  • treatment--my fate too visibly in his power--master of his own wishes,
  • [shame to say it,] if he knew what to wish for.--Indeed I never liked
  • him so little as now. Upon my word, I think I could hate him, (if I do
  • not already hate him) sooner than any man I ever thought tolerably
  • of--a good reason why: because I have been more disappointed in my
  • expectations of him; although they never were so high, as to have made
  • him my choice in preference to the single life, had that been
  • permitted me. Still, if the giving him up for ever will make my path to
  • reconciliation easy, and if they will signify as much to me, they shall
  • see that I never will be his: for I have the vanity to think my soul his
  • soul's superior.
  • You will say I rave: forbidden to write to my aunt, and taught to
  • despair of reconciliation, you, my dear, must be troubled with my
  • passionate resentments. What a wretch was I to give him a meeting, since
  • by that I put it out of my power to meet my assembled friends!--All
  • would now, if I had met them, been over; and who can tell when my
  • present distresses will?--Rid of both men, I had been now perhaps at my
  • aunt Hervey's or at my uncle Antony's; wishing for my cousin Morden's
  • arrival, who might have accommodated all.
  • I intended, indeed, to have stood it: And, if I had, how know I by whose
  • name I might now have been called? For how should I have resisted a
  • condescending, a kneeling father, had he been able to have kept his
  • temper with me?
  • Yet my aunt say he would have relented, if I had not. Perhaps he would
  • have been moved by my humility, before he could have shown such undue
  • condescension. Such temper as he would have received me with might have
  • been improved upon in my favour. And that he had designed ultimately to
  • relent, how it clears my friends (at least to themselves) and condemns
  • me! O why were my aunt's hints (I remember them now) so very dark?--Yet
  • I intended to have returned after the interview; and then perhaps
  • she would have explained herself.--O this artful, this designing
  • Lovelace--yet I must repeat, that most ought I to blame myself for
  • meeting him.
  • But far, far, be banished from me fruitless recrimination! Far banished,
  • because fruitless! Let me wrap myself about in the mantle of my own
  • integrity, and take comfort in my unfaulty intention! Since it is now
  • too late to look back, let me collect all my fortitude, and endeavour to
  • stand those shafts of angry Providence, which it will not permit me to
  • shun! That, whatever the trials may be which I am destined to undergo, I
  • may not behave unworthily in them, and may come out amended by them.
  • Join with me in this prayer, my beloved friend; for your own honour's
  • sake, as well as for love's sake, join with me in it; lest a deviation
  • on my side should, with the censorious, cast a shade upon a friendship
  • which has no levity in it; and the basis of which is improvement, as
  • well in the greater as lesser duties.
  • CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER LIV
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE SATURDAY AFTERNOON, APRIL 22.
  • O my best, my only friend! Now indeed is my heart broken! It has
  • received a blow it never will recover. Think not of corresponding with
  • a wretch who now seems absolutely devoted. How can it be otherwise, if
  • a parent's curses have the weight I always attributed to them, and have
  • heard so many instances in confirmation of that weight!--Yes, my dear
  • Miss Howe, superadded to all my afflictions, I have the consequences
  • of a father's curse to struggle with! How shall I support this
  • reflection!--My past and my present situation so much authorizing my
  • apprehensions!
  • I have, at last, a letter from my unrelenting sister. Would to Heaven I
  • had not provoked it by my second letter to my aunt Hervey! It lay ready
  • for me, it seems. The thunder slept, till I awakened it. I enclose the
  • letter itself. Transcribe it I cannot. There is no bearing the thoughts
  • of it: for [shocking reflection!] the curse extends to the life beyond
  • this.
  • I am in the depth of vapourish despondency. I can only repeat--shun,
  • fly, correspond not with a wretch so devoted as
  • CL. HARLOWE.
  • LETTER LV
  • TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE TO BE LEFT AT MR. OSGOOD'S, NEAR SOHO-SQUARE
  • FRIDAY, APRIL 21.
  • It was expected you would send again to me, or to my aunt Hervey. The
  • enclosed has lain ready for you, therefore, by direction. You will have
  • no answer from any body, write to whom you will, and as often as you
  • will, and what you will.
  • It was designed to bring you back by proper authority, or to send you
  • whither the disgraces you have brought upon us all should be in the
  • likeliest way, after a while, to be forgotten. But I believe that design
  • is over: so you may range securely--nobody will think it worth while to
  • give themselves any trouble about you. Yet my mother has obtained leave
  • to send you your clothes of all sorts: but your clothes only. This is
  • a favour you'll see by the within letter not designed you: and now not
  • granted for your sake, but because my poor mother cannot bear in her
  • sight any thing you used to wear. Read the enclosed, and tremble.
  • ARABELLA HARLOWE.
  • TO THE MOST UNGRATEFUL AND UNDUTIFUL OF DAUGHTERS HARLOWE-PLACE, APRIL
  • 15.
  • SISTER THAT WAS!
  • For I know not what name you are permitted, or choose to go by.
  • You have filled us all with distraction. My father, in the first
  • agitations of his mind, on discovering your wicked, your shameful
  • elopement, imprecated on his knees a fearful curse upon you. Tremble
  • at the recital of it!--No less, than 'that you may meet your punishment
  • both here and hereafter, by means of the very wretch in whom you have
  • chosen to place your wicked confidence.'
  • Your clothes will not be sent you. You seen, by leaving them behind you,
  • to have been secure of them, whenever you demanded them, but perhaps you
  • could think of nothing but meeting your fellow:--nothing but how to get
  • off your forward self!--For every thing seems to have been forgotten
  • but what was to contribute to your wicked flight.--Yet you judged right,
  • perhaps, that you would have been detected had you endeavoured to get
  • away with your clothes.--Cunning creature! not to make one step that we
  • would guess at you by! Cunning to effect your own ruin, and the disgrace
  • of all the family!
  • But does the wretch put you upon writing for your things, for fear you
  • should be too expensive to him?--That's it, I suppose.
  • Was there ever a giddier creature?--Yet this is the celebrated, the
  • blazing Clarissa--Clarissa what? Harlowe, no doubt!--And Harlowe it will
  • be, to the disgrace of us all!
  • Your drawings and your pieces are all taken down; as is also your
  • whole-length picture, in the Vandyke taste, from your late parlour: they
  • are taken down, and thrown into your closet, which will be nailed up,
  • as if it were not a part of the house, there to perish together: For who
  • can bear to see them? Yet, how did they use to be shown to every body:
  • the former, for the magnifying of your dainty finger-works; the latter,
  • for the imputed dignity (dignity now in the dust!) of your boasted
  • figure; and this by those fond parents from whom you have run away with
  • so much, yet with so little contrivance!
  • My brother vows revenge upon your libertine--for the family's sake he
  • vows it--not for yours!--for he will treat you, he declares, like a
  • common creature, if ever he sees you: and doubts not that this will be
  • your fate.
  • My uncle Harlowe renounces you for ever.
  • So does my uncle Antony.
  • So does my aunt Hervey.
  • So do I, base, unworthy creature! the disgrace of a good family, and
  • the property of an infamous rake, as questionless you will soon find
  • yourself, if you are not already.
  • Your books, since they have not taught you what belongs to your family,
  • to your sex, and to your education, will not be sent to you. Your money
  • neither. Nor yet the jewels so undeservedly made yours. For it is wished
  • you may be seen a beggar along London-streets.
  • If all this is heavy, lay your hand to your heart, and ask yourself, why
  • you have deserved it?
  • Every man whom your pride taught you to reject with scorn (Mr. Solmes
  • excepted, who, however, has reason to rejoice that he missed you)
  • triumphs in your shameful elopement, and now knows how to account for
  • his being refused.
  • Your worthy Norton is ashamed of you, and mingles her tears with your
  • mother's; both reproaching themselves for their shares in you, and in so
  • fruitless an education.
  • Every body, in short, is ashamed of you: but none more than
  • ARABELLA HARLOWE.
  • LETTER LVI
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE TUESDAY, APRIL 25.
  • Be comforted; be not dejected; do not despond, my dearest and
  • best-beloved friend. God Almighty is just and gracious, and gives not
  • his assent to rash and inhuman curses. Can you think that Heaven will
  • seal to the black passions of its depraved creatures? If it did, malice,
  • envy, and revenge would triumph; and the best of the human race, blasted
  • by the malignity of the worst, would be miserable in both worlds.
  • This outrageousness shows only what manner of spirit they are of, and
  • how much their sordid views exceed their parental love. 'Tis all owing
  • to rage and disappointment--disappointment in designs proper to be
  • frustrated.
  • If you consider this malediction as it ought to be considered, a person
  • of your piety must and will rather pity and pray for your rash father,
  • than terrify yourself on the occasion. None bug God can curse; parents
  • or others, whoever they be, can only pray to Him to curse: and such
  • prayers can have no weight with a just and all-perfect Being, the
  • motives to which are unreasonable, and the end proposed by them cruel.
  • Has not God commanded us to bless and curse not? Pray for your father,
  • then, I repeat, that he incur not the malediction he has announced on
  • you; since he has broken, as you see, a command truly divine; while you,
  • by obeying that other precept which enjoins us to pray for them that
  • persecute and curse us, will turn the curse into a blessing.
  • My mother blames them for this wicked letter of your sister; and she
  • pities you; and, of her own accord, wished me to write to comfort you,
  • for this once: for she says, it is pity your heart, which was so noble,
  • (and when the sense of your fault, and the weight of a parent's curse
  • are so strong upon you,) should be quite broken.
  • Lord bless me, how your aunt writes!--Can there be two rights and two
  • wrongs in palpable cases!--But, my dear, she must be wrong: so they all
  • have been, justify themselves now as they will. They can only justify
  • themselves to themselves from selfish principles, resolving to acquit,
  • not fairly to try themselves. Did your unkind aunt, in all the tedious
  • progress of your contentions with them, give you the least hope of their
  • relenting?--Her dark hints now I recollect as well as you. But why was
  • any thing good or hopeful to be darkly hinted?--How easy was it for her,
  • who pretended always to love you; for her, who can give such flowing
  • license to her pen for your hurt; to have given you one word, one line
  • (in confidence) of their pretended change of measures!
  • But do not mind their after-pretences, my dear--all of them serve but
  • for tacit confessions of their vile usage of you. I will keep your
  • aunt's secret, never fear. I would not, on any consideration, that my
  • mother should see her letter.
  • You will now see that you have nothing left but to overcome all
  • scrupulousness, and marry as son as you have an opportunity. Determine
  • to do so, my dear.
  • I will give you a motive for it, regarding myself. For this I have
  • resolved, and this I have vowed, [O friend, the best beloved of my
  • heart, be not angry with me for it!] 'That so long as your happiness is
  • in suspence, I will never think of marrying.' In justice to the man I
  • shall have, I have vowed this: for, my dear, must I not be miserable,
  • if you are so? And what an unworthy wife must I be to any man who cannot
  • have interest enough in my heart to make his obligingness a balance for
  • an affliction he has not caused!
  • I would show Lovelace your sister's abominable letter, were it to me. I
  • enclose it. It shall not have a place in this house. This will enter him
  • of course into the subject which you now ought to have most in view.
  • Let him see what you suffer for him. He cannot prove base to such an
  • excellence. I should never enjoy my head or my senses should this
  • man prove a villain to you!--With a merit so exalted, you may have
  • punishment more than enough for your involuntary fault in that husband.
  • I would not have you be too sure that their project to seize you is
  • over. The words intimating that it is over, in the letter of that
  • abominable Arabella, seem calculated to give you security.--She only
  • says she believes that design is over.--And I do not yet find from Miss
  • Lloyd that it is disavowed. So it will be best, when you are in London,
  • to be private, and, for fear of the worst, to let every direction to be
  • a third place; for I would not, for the world, have you fall into the
  • hands of such flaming and malevolent spirits by surprize.
  • I will myself be content to direct you at some third place; and I shall
  • then be able to aver to my mother, or to any other, if occasion be, that
  • I know not where you are.
  • Besides, this measure will make you less apprehensive of the
  • consequences of their violence, should they resolve to attempt to carry
  • you of in spite of Lovelace.
  • I would have you direct to Mr. Hickman, even your answer to this. I have
  • a reason for it. Besides, my mother, notwithstanding this particular
  • indulgence, is very positive. They have prevailed upon her, I know, to
  • give her word to this purpose--Spiteful, poor wretches! How I hate in
  • particular your foolish uncle Antony.
  • I would not have your thought dwell on the contents of your sister's
  • shocking letter; but pursue other subjects--the subjects before you.
  • And let me know your progress with Lovelace, and what he says to this
  • diabolical curse. So far you may enter into this hateful subject. I
  • expect that this will aptly introduce the grant topic between you,
  • without needing a mediator.
  • Come, my dear, when things are at worst they will mend. Good often comes
  • when evil is expected.--But if you despond, there can be no hopes of
  • cure. Don't let them break your heart; for that is plain to me, is now
  • what some people have in view for you to do.
  • How poor to withhold from you your books, your jewels, and your money!
  • As money is all you can at present want, since they will vouchsafe
  • to send your clothes, I send fifty guineas by the bearer, enclosed in
  • single papers in my Norris's Miscellanies. I charge you, as you love me,
  • return them not.
  • I have more at your service. So, if you like not your lodgings or his
  • behaviour when you get to town, leave both them and him out of hand.
  • I would advise you to write to Mr. Morden without delay. If he intends
  • for England, it may hasten him. And you will do very well till he can
  • come. But, surely Lovelace will be infatuated, if he secure not his
  • happiness by your consent, before that of Mr. Morden's is made needful
  • on his arrival.
  • Once more, my dear, let me beg of you to be comforted. Manage with
  • your usual prudence the stake before you, and all will still be happy.
  • Suppose yourself to be me, and me to be you, [you may--for your distress
  • is mine,] and then you will add full day to these but glimmering lights
  • which are held out to you by
  • Your ever affectionate and faithful ANNA HOWE.
  • I hurry this away by Robert. I will inquire into the truth of your
  • aunt's pretences about the change of measures which she says they
  • intended in case you had not gone away.
  • LETTER LVII
  • MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE, TO MISS HOWE WEDNESDAY MORNING, APRIL 26.
  • Your letter, my beloved Miss Howe, gives me great comfort. How sweetly
  • do I experience the truth of the wise man's observation, That a faithful
  • friend is the medicine of life!
  • Your messenger finds me just setting out for London: the chaise at the
  • door. Already I have taken leave of the good widow, who has obliged
  • me with the company of her eldest daughter, at Mr. Lovelace's request,
  • while he rides by us. The young gentlewoman is to return in two or three
  • days with the chaise, in its way to my Lord M.'s Hertfordshire seat.
  • I received my sister's dreadful letter on Sunday, when Mr. Lovelace was
  • out. He saw, on his return, my extreme anguish and dejection; and he was
  • told how much worse I had been: for I had fainted away more than once.
  • I think the contents of it have touched my head as well as my heart.
  • He would fain have seen it. But I would not permit that, because of the
  • threatenings he would have found in it against himself. As it was, the
  • effect it had upon me made him break out into execrations and menaces. I
  • was so ill that he himself advised me to delay going to town on Monday,
  • as I proposed to do.
  • He is extremely regardful and tender of me. All that you supposed would
  • follow the violent letter, from him, has followed it. He has offered
  • himself to my acceptance in so unreserved a manner, that I am concerned
  • I have written so freely and diffidently of him. Pray, my dearest
  • friend, keep to yourself every thing that may appear disreputable of him
  • from me.
  • I must acquaint you that his kind behaviour, and my low-spiritedness,
  • co-operating with your former advice, and my unhappy situation, made me
  • that very Sunday evening receive unreservedly his declarations: and now
  • indeed I am more in his power than ever.
  • He presses me every hour (indeed as needlessly, as unkindly) for fresh
  • tokens of my esteem for him, and confidence in him. And as I have been
  • brought to some verbal concessions, if he should prove unworthy, I am
  • sure I shall have great reason to blame this violent letter: for I have
  • no resolution at all. Abandoned thus of all my natural friends, of whose
  • returning favour I have now no hopes, and only you to pity me, and you
  • restrained, as I may say, I have been forced to turn my desolate heart
  • to such protection as I could find.
  • All my comfort is, that your advice repeatedly given me to the same
  • purpose, in your kind letter before me, warrants me. I now set out the
  • more cheerfully to London on that account: for, before, a heavy weight
  • hung upon my heart; and although I thought it best and safest to go,
  • yet my spirits sunk, I know not why, at every motion I made towards a
  • preparation for it.
  • I hope no mischief will happen on the road.--I hope these violent
  • spirits will not meet.
  • Every one is waiting for me.--Pardon me, my best, my kindest friend,
  • that I return your Norris. In these more promising prospects, I cannot
  • have occasion for your favour. Besides, I have some hope that with my
  • clothes they will send me the money I wrote for, although it is denied
  • me in the letter. If they do not, and if I should have occasion, I can
  • but signify my wants to so ready a friend. And I have promised to be
  • obliged only to you. But I had rather methinks you should have it still
  • to say, if challenged, that nothing of this nature has been either
  • requested or done. I say this with a view entirely to my future hopes
  • of recovering your mother's favour, which, next to that of my own father
  • and mother, I am most solicitous to recover.
  • I must acquaint you wit one thing more, notwithstanding my hurry; and
  • that is, that Mr. Lovelace offered either to attend me to Lord M.'s, or
  • to send for his chaplain, yesterday. He pressed me to consent to this
  • proposal most earnestly, and even seemed desirous rather to have the
  • ceremony pass here than at London: for when there, I had told him, it
  • was time enough to consider of so weighty and important a matter. Now,
  • upon the receipt of your kind, your consolatory letter, methinks I
  • could almost wish it had been in my power to comply with his earnest
  • solicitations. But this dreadful letter has unhinged my whole frame.
  • Then some little punctilio surely is necessary. No preparation made.
  • No articles drawn. No license ready. Grief so extreme: no pleasure in
  • prospect, nor so much as in wish--O my dear, who could think of entering
  • into so solemn an engagement? Who, so unprepared, could seem to be so
  • ready?
  • If I could flatter myself that my indifference to all the joys of this
  • life proceeded from proper motives, not rather from the disappointments
  • and mortifications my pride has met with, how much rather, I think,
  • should I choose to be wedded to my shroud than to any man on earth!
  • Indeed I have at present no pleasure but in your friendship. Continue
  • that to me, I beseech you. If my heart rises hereafter to a capacity of
  • more, it must be built on that foundation.
  • My spirits sink again on setting out. Excuse this depth of vapourish
  • dejection, which forbids me even hope, the cordial that keeps life
  • from stagnating, and which never was denied me till within these
  • eight-and-forty hours.
  • But 'tis time to relieve you.
  • Adieu, my best beloved and kindest friend! Pray for your CLARISSA.
  • LETTER LVIII
  • MISS HOWE, TO MISS CLARISSA HARLOWE THURSDAY, APRIL 27.
  • I am sorry you sent back my Norris. But you must be allowed to do as you
  • please. So must I, in my turn. We must neither of us, perhaps, expect
  • absolutely of the other what is the rightest thing to be done: and
  • yet few folks, so young as we are, better know what the rightest is. I
  • cannot separate myself from you; although I give a double instance of my
  • vanity in joining myself with you in this particular assertion.
  • I am most heartily rejoiced that your prospects are so much mended; and
  • that, as I hoped, good has been produced out of evil. What must the man
  • have been, what must have been his views, had he not taken such a
  • turn, upon a letter so vile, and upon a treatment so unnatural, himself
  • principally the occasion of it?
  • You know best your motives for suspending: but I wish you could have
  • taken him at offers so earnest.* Why should you not have permitted him
  • to send for Lord M.'s chaplain? If punctilio only was in the way, and
  • want of a license, and of proper preparations, and such like, my service
  • to you, my dear: and there is ceremony tantamount to your ceremony.
  • * Mr. Lovelace, in his next Letter, tells his friend how extremely ill
  • the Lady was, recovering from fits to fall into stronger fits, and
  • nobody expecting her life. She had not, he says, acquainted Miss Howe
  • how very ill she was.--In the next Letter, she tells Miss Howe, that her
  • motives for suspending were not merely ceremonious ones.
  • Do not, do not, my dear friend, again be so very melancholy a decliner
  • as to prefer a shroud, when the matter you wish for is in your power;
  • and when, as you have justly said heretofore, persons cannot die when
  • they will.
  • But it is a strange perverseness in human nature that we slight that
  • when near us which at a distance we wish for.
  • You have now but one point to pursue: that is marriage: let that be
  • solemnized. Leave the rest to Providence, and, to use your own words in
  • a former letter, follow as that leads. You will have a handsome man,
  • a genteel man; he would be a wise man, if he were not vain of his
  • endowments, and wild and intriguing: but while the eyes of many of our
  • sex, taken by so specious a form and so brilliant a spirit, encourage
  • that vanity, you must be contented to stay till grey hairs and prudence
  • enter upon the stage together. You would not have every thing in the
  • same man.
  • I believe Mr. Hickman treads no crooked paths; but he hobbles most
  • ungracefully in a straight one. Yet Mr. Hickman, though he pleases not
  • my eye, nor diverts my ear, will not, as I believe, disgust the one, nor
  • shock the other. Your man, as I have lately said, will always keep up
  • attention; you will always be alive with him, though perhaps more from
  • fears than hopes: while Mr. Hickman will neither say any thing to keep
  • one awake, nor yet, by shocking adventures, make one's slumbers uneasy.
  • I believe I now know which of the two men so prudent a person as you
  • would, at first, have chosen; nor doubt I that you can guess which I
  • would have made choice of, if I might. But proud as we are, the proudest
  • of us all can only refuse, and many of us accept the but half-worthy,
  • for fear a still worse should offer.
  • If men had chosen their mistresses for spirits like their own, although
  • Mr. Lovelace, at the long run, may have been too many for me, I don't
  • doubt but I should have given heart-ach for heart-ach, for one half-year
  • at least; while you, with my dull-swift, would have glided on as
  • serenely, as calmly, as unaccountably, as the succeeding seasons;
  • and varying no otherwise than they, to bring on new beauties and
  • conveniencies to all about you.
  • *****
  • I was going on in this style--but my mother broke in upon me with a
  • prohibitory aspect. 'She gave me leave for one letter only.'--She
  • had just parted with your odious uncle, and they have been in close
  • conference again.
  • She has vexed me. I must lay this by till I hear from you again, not
  • knowing whither to send it.
  • Direct me to a third place, as I desired in my former.
  • I told my mother (on her challenging me) that I was writing indeed, and
  • to you: but it was only to amuse myself; for I protested that I knew not
  • where to send to you.
  • I hope that your next may inform me of your nuptials, although the next
  • to that were to acquaint me that he was the most ungratefullest monster
  • on earth; as he must be, if not the kindest husband in it.
  • My mother has vexed me. But so, on revising, I wrote before.--But she
  • has unhinged me, as you call it: pretended to catechise Hickman, I
  • assure you, for contributing to our supposed correspondence. Catechised
  • him severely too, upon my word!--I believe I have a sneaking kindness
  • for the sneaking fellow, for I cannot endure that any body should treat
  • him like a fool but myself.
  • I believe, between you and me, the good lady forgot herself. I heard her
  • loud. She possibly imagined that my father was come to life again. Yet
  • the meekness of the man might have soon convinced her, I should have
  • thought; for my father, it seems, would talk as loud as she, I suppose,
  • (though within a few yards of each other,) as if both were out of their
  • way, and were hallooing at half a mile's distance, to get in again.
  • I know you'll blame me for this sauciness--but I told you I was vexed;
  • and if I had not a spirit, my parentage on both sides might be doubted.
  • You must not chide me too severely, however, because I have learned of
  • you not to defend myself in an error: and I own I am wrong: and that's
  • enough: you won't be so generous in this case as you are in every other,
  • if you don't think it is.
  • Adieu, my dear! I must, I will love you, and love you for ever! So
  • subscribes your
  • ANNA HOWE.
  • LETTER LIX
  • FROM MISS HOWE [ENCLOSED IN THE ABOVE.] THURSDAY, APRIL 27.
  • I have been making inquiry, as I told you I would, whether your
  • relations had really (before you left them) resolved upon that change of
  • measures which your aunt mentions in her letter; and by laying together
  • several pieces of intelligence, some drawn from my mother, through your
  • uncle Antony's communications; some from Miss Lloyd, by your sister's;
  • and some by a third way that I shall not tell you of; I have reason to
  • think the following a true state of the case.
  • 'That there was no intention of a change of measures till within two or
  • three days of your going away. On the contrary, your brother and sister,
  • though they had no hope of prevailing with you in Solmes's favour, were
  • resolved never to give over their persecutions till they had pushed you
  • upon taking some step, which, by help of their good offices, should be
  • deemed inexcusable by the half-witted souls they had to play upon.
  • 'But that, at last, your mother (tired with, and, perhaps, ashamed of
  • the passive part she had acted) thought fit to declare to Miss Bell,
  • that she was determined to try to put an end to the family feuds, and to
  • get your uncle Harlowe to second her endeavours.
  • 'This alarmed your brother and sister, and then a change of measures
  • was resolved upon. Solmes's offers were, however, too advantageous to
  • be given up; and your father's condescension was now to be their sole
  • dependence, and (as they give it out) the trying of what that would do
  • with you, their last effort.'
  • And indeed, my dear, this must have succeeded, I verily think, with such
  • a daughter as they had to deal with, could that father, who never, I
  • dare say, kneeled in his life but to his God, have so far condescended
  • as your aunt writes he would.
  • But then, my dear, what would this have done?--Perhaps you would
  • have given Lovelace this meeting, in hopes to pacify him, and prevent
  • mischief; supposing that they had given you time, and not hurried you
  • directly into the state. But if you had not met him, you see that he was
  • resolved to visit them, and well attended too: and what must have been
  • the consequence?
  • So that, upon the whole, we know not but matters may be best as they
  • are, however disagreeable that best is.
  • I hope your considerate and thoughtful mind will make a good use of
  • this hint. Who would not with patience sustain even a great evil, if she
  • could persuade herself that it was kindly dispensed, in order to prevent
  • a still greater?--Especially, if she could sit down, as you can, and
  • acquit her own heart?
  • Permit me one further observation--Do we not see, from the above state
  • of the matter, what might have been done before by the worthy person
  • of your family, had she exerted the mother, in behalf of a child so
  • meritorious, yet so much oppressed?
  • Adieu, my dear. I will be ever yours. ANNA HOWE.
  • *****
  • [Clarissa, in her answer to the first of the two last letters, chides
  • her friend for giving so little weight to her advice, in relation to her
  • behaviour to her mother. It may be proper to insert here the
  • following extracts from that answer, though a little before the time.]
  • You assume, my dear, says she, your usual and ever-agreeable style in
  • what you write of the two gentlemen,* and how unaptly you think they
  • have chosen; Mr. Hickman in addressing you, Mr. Lovelace me. But I am
  • inclinable to believe that, with a view to happiness, however two mild
  • tempers might agree, two high ones would make sad work of it, both at
  • one time violent and unyielding. You two might, indeed, have raqueted
  • the ball betwixt you, as you say.** But Mr. Hickman, by his gentle
  • manners, seems formed for you, if you go not too far with him. If you
  • do, it would be a tameness in him to bear it, which would make a man
  • more contemptible than Mr. Hickman can ever deserve to be made. Nor is
  • it a disgrace for even a brave man, who knows what a woman is to vow to
  • him afterwards, to be very obsequious beforehand.
  • * See Letter XXXV. and Letter XXXVI. of this volume.
  • ** See Letter XXXVI. of this volume.
  • Do you think it is to the credit of Mr. Lovelace's character that he
  • can be offensive and violent?--Does he not, as all such spirits must,
  • subject himself to the necessity of making submissions for his excesses
  • far more mortifying to a proud heart than those condescensions which the
  • high-spirited are so apt to impute as a weakness of mind in such a man
  • as Mr. Hickman?
  • Let me tell you, my dear, that Mr. Hickman is such a one as would rather
  • bear an affront from a lady, than offer one to her. He had rather, I
  • dare say, that she should have occasion to ask his pardon than he her's.
  • But my dear, you have outlived your first passion; and had the second
  • man been an angel, he would not have been more than indifferent to you.
  • My motives for suspending, proceeds she, were not merely ceremonious
  • ones. I was really very ill. I could not hold up my head. The contents
  • of my sister's letters had pierced my heart. Indeed, my dear, I was very
  • ill. And was I, moreover, to be as ready to accept his offer as if I
  • were afraid he never would repeat it?
  • I see with great regret that your mamma is still immovably bent against
  • our correspondence. What shall I do about it?--It goes against me to
  • continue it, or to wish you to favour me with returns.--Yet I have so
  • managed my matters that I have no friend but you to advise with. It is
  • enough to make one indeed wish to be married to this man, though a man
  • of errors, as he has worthy relations of my own sex; and I should have
  • some friends, I hope:--and having some, I might have more--for as
  • money is said to increase money, so does the countenance of persons of
  • character increase friends: while the destitute must be destitute.--It
  • goes against my heart to beg of you to discontinue corresponding with
  • me; and yet it is against my conscience to carry it on against parental
  • prohibition. But I dare not use all the arguments against it that I
  • could use--And why?--For fear I should convince you; and you should
  • reject me as the rest of my friends have done. I leave therefore the
  • determination of this point upon you.--I am not, I find, to be trusted
  • with it. But be mine all the fault, and all the punishment, if it be
  • punishable!--And certainly it must, when it can be the cause of the
  • letter I have before me, and which I must no farther animadvert upon,
  • because you forbid me to do so.
  • [To the second letter, among other things, she says,]
  • So, my dear, you seem to think that there was a fate in my error. The
  • cordial, the considerate friendship is seen in the observation you make
  • on this occasion. Yet since things have happened as they have, would
  • to Heaven I could hear that all the world acquitted my father, or, at
  • least, my mother! whose character, before these family feuds broke out,
  • was the subject of everyone's admiration. Don't let any body say from
  • you, so that it may come to her ear, that she might, from a timely
  • exertion of her fine talents, have saved her unhappy child. You will
  • observe, my dear, that in her own good time, when she saw there was not
  • likely to be an end to my brother's persecutions, she resolved to
  • exert herself. But the pragmatical daughter, by the fatal meeting,
  • precipitated all, and frustrated her indulgent designs. O my love, I am
  • now convinced, by dear experience, that while children are so happy
  • as to have parents or guardians whom they may consult, they should not
  • presume (no, not with the best and purest intentions) to follow their
  • own conceits in material cases.
  • A ray of hope of future reconciliation darts in upon my mind, from the
  • intention you tell me my mother had to exert herself in my favour, had I
  • not gone away. And my hope is the stronger, as this communication points
  • out to me that my uncle Harlowe's interest is likely, in my mother's
  • opinion, to be of weight, if it could be engaged. It will behove me,
  • perhaps, to apply to that dear uncle, if a proper occasion offer.
  • LETTER LX
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. MONDAY, APRIL 24.
  • Fate is weaving a whimsical web for thy friend; and I see not but I
  • shall be inevitably manacled.
  • Here have I been at work, dig, dig, dig, like a cunning miner, at one
  • time, and spreading my snares, like an artful fowler, at another, and
  • exulting in my contrivances to get this inimitable creature, absolutely
  • into my power. Every thing made for me. Her brother and uncles were but
  • my pioneers: her father stormed as I directed him to storm: Mrs. Howe
  • was acted by the springs I set at work; her daughter was moving for me,
  • yet imagined herself plumb against me: and the dear creature herself
  • had already run her stubborn neck into my gin, and knew not that she was
  • caught, for I had not drawn my springs close about her--And just as
  • all this was completed, wouldst thou believe, that I should be my own
  • enemy, and her friend? That I should be so totally diverted from all my
  • favourite purposes, as to propose to marry her before I went to town, in
  • order to put it out of my own power to resume them.
  • When thou knowest this, wilt thou not think that my black angel plays me
  • booty, and has taken it into his head to urge me on to the indissoluble
  • tie, that he might be more sure of me (from the complex transgressions
  • to which he will certainly stimulate me, when wedded) than perhaps
  • he thought he could be from the simple sins, in which I have so long
  • allowed myself, that they seem to have the plea of habit?
  • Thou wilt be still the more surprised, when I tell thee, that there
  • seems to be a coalition going forward between the black angels and the
  • white ones; for here has her's induced her, in one hour, and by one
  • retrograde accident, to acknowledge what the charming creature never
  • before acknowledged, a preferable favour for me. She even avows an
  • intention to be mine.--Mine! without reformation-conditions!--She
  • permits me to talk of love to her!--of the irrevocable ceremony!--Yet,
  • another extraordinary! postpones that ceremony; chooses to set out for
  • London; and even to go to the widow's in town.
  • Well, but how comes all this about? methinks thou askest.--Thou,
  • Lovelace, dealest in wonders, yet aimest not at the marvellous!--How did
  • all this come about?
  • I will tell thee--I was in danger of losing my charmer for ever! She was
  • soaring upward to her native skies! She was got above earth, by means
  • too, of the earth-born! And something extraordinary was to be done to
  • keep her with us sublunaries. And what so effectually as the soothing
  • voice of Love, and the attracting offer of matrimony from a man
  • not hated, can fix the attention of the maiden heart, aching with
  • uncertainty, and before impatient of the questionable question?
  • This, in short, was the case: while she was refusing all manner of
  • obligation to me, keeping me at haughty distance, in hopes that her
  • cousin Morden's arrival would soon fix her in a full and absolute
  • independence of me--disgusted, likewise, at her adorer, for holding
  • himself the reins of his own passions, instead of giving them up to her
  • controul--she writes a letter, urging an answer to a letter before sent,
  • for her apparel, her jewels, and some gold, which she had left behind
  • her; all which was to save her pride from obligation, and to promote the
  • independence her heart was set upon. And what followed but a shocking
  • answer, made still more shocking by the communication of a father's
  • curse, upon a daughter deserving only blessings?--A curse upon the
  • curser's heart, and a double one upon the transmitter's, the spiteful
  • the envious Arabella!
  • Absent when it came--on my return I found her recovering from fits,
  • again to fall into stronger fits; and nobody expecting her life; half a
  • dozen messengers dispatched to find me out. Nor wonder at her being so
  • affected; she, whose filial piety gave her dreadful faith in a father's
  • curses; and the curse of this gloomy tyrant extending (to use her own
  • words, when she could speak) to both worlds--O that it had turned, in
  • the moment of its utterance, to a mortal quinsy, and, sticking in his
  • gullet, had choked the old execrator, as a warning to all such unnatural
  • fathers!
  • What a miscreant had I been, not to have endeavoured to bring her back,
  • by all the endearments, by all the vows, by all the offers, that I could
  • make her!
  • I did bring her back. More than a father to her: for I have given her a
  • life her unnatural father had well-nigh taken away: Shall I not cherish
  • the fruits of my own benefaction? I was earnest in my vows to marry,
  • and my ardour to urge the present time was a real ardour. But extreme
  • dejection, with a mingled delicacy, that in her dying moments I doubt
  • not she will preserve, have caused her to refuse me the time, though not
  • the solemnity; for she has told me, that now she must be wholly in my
  • protection [being destitute of every other!] More indebted, still, thy
  • friend, as thou seest, to her cruel relations, than to herself, for her
  • favour!
  • She has written to Miss Howe an account of their barbarity! but has not
  • acquainted her how very ill she was.
  • Low, very low, she remains; yet, dreading her stupid brother's
  • enterprise, she wants to be in London, where, but for this accident, and
  • (wouldst thou have believed it?) for my persuasions, seeing her so very
  • ill, she would have been this night; and we shall actually set out on
  • Wednesday morning, if she be not worse.
  • And now for a few words with thee, on the heavy preachment of Saturday
  • last.
  • Thou art apprehensive, that the lady is now truly in danger; and it is a
  • miracle, thou tellest me, if she withstand such an attempter!--'Knowing
  • what we know of the sex, thou sayest, thou shouldst dread, wert thou
  • me, to make further trial, lest thou shouldst succeed.' And, in another
  • place, tellest me, 'That thou pleadest not for the state for any favour
  • thou hast for it.'
  • What an advocate art thou for matrimony--!
  • Thou wert ever an unhappy fellow at argument. Does the trite stuff with
  • which the rest of thy letter abounds, in favour of wedlock, strike with
  • the force that this which I have transcribed does against it?
  • Thou takest great pains to convince me, and that from the distresses
  • the lady is reduced to (chiefly by her friend's persecutions and
  • implacableness, I hope thou wilt own, and not from me, as yet) that the
  • proposed trial will not be a fair trial. But let me ask thee, Is not
  • calamity the test of virtue? And wouldst thou not have me value this
  • charming creature upon proof of her merits?--Do I not intend to reward
  • her by marriage, if she stand that proof?
  • But why repeat I what I have said before?--Turn back, thou egregious
  • arguer, turn back to my long letter of the 13th,* and thou wilt there
  • find every syllable of what thou hast written either answered or
  • invalidated.
  • * See Letter XVIII. of this volume.
  • But I am not angry with thee, Jack. I love opposition. As gold is tried
  • by fire, and virtue by temptation, so is sterling wit by opposition.
  • Have I not, before thou settest out as an advocate for my fair-one,
  • often brought thee in, as making objections to my proceedings, for no
  • other reason than to exalt myself by proving thee a man of straw? As
  • Homer raises up many of his champions, and gives them terrible names,
  • only to have them knocked on the head by his heroes.
  • However, take to thee this one piece of advice--Evermore be sure of
  • being in the right, when thou presumest to sit down to correct thy
  • master.
  • And another, if thou wilt--Never offer to invalidate the force which
  • a virtuous education ought to have in the sex, by endeavouring to find
  • excuses for their frailty from the frailty of ours. For, are we not
  • devils to each other?--They tempt us--we tempt them. Because we men
  • cannot resist temptation, is that a reason that women ought not,
  • when the whole of their education is caution and warning against our
  • attempts? Do not their grandmothers give them one easy rule--Men are to
  • ask--Women are to deny?
  • Well, but to return to my principal subject; let me observe, that, be my
  • future resolutions what they will, as to this lady, the contents of the
  • violent letter she has received have set me at least a month forward
  • with her. I can now, as I hinted, talk of love and marriage, without
  • controul or restriction; her injunctions no more my terror.
  • In this sweetly familiar way shall we set out together for London.
  • Mrs. Sorlings's eldest daughter, at my motion, is to attend her in the
  • chaise, while I ride by way of escort: for she is extremely apprehensive
  • of the Singleton plot; and has engaged me to be all patience, if any
  • thing should happen on the road. But nothing I am sure will happen:
  • for, by a letter received just now from Joseph, I understand, that
  • James Harlowe has already laid aside his stupid project: and this by the
  • earnest desire of all those of his friends to whom he had communicated
  • it; who were afraid of the consequences that might attend it. But it is
  • not over with me, however; although I am not determined at present as to
  • the uses I may make of it.
  • My beloved tells me, she shall have her clothes sent her. She hopes also
  • her jewels, and some gold, which she left behind her: but Joseph says,
  • clothes only will be sent. I will not, however, tell her that: on the
  • contrary, I say, there is no doubt but they will send all she wrote
  • for. The greater her disappointment from them, the greater must be her
  • dependence on me.
  • But, after all, I hope I shall be enabled to be honest to a merit so
  • transcendent. The devil take thee, though, for thy opinion, given so
  • mal-a-propos, that she may be overcome.
  • If thou designest to be honest, methinkst thou sayest, Why should not
  • Singleton's plot be over with thee, as it is with her brother?
  • Because (if I must answer thee) where people are so modestly doubtful of
  • what they are able to do, it is good to leave a loop-hole. And, let me
  • add, that when a man's heart is set upon a point, and any thing occurs
  • to beat him off, he will find it very difficult, when the suspending
  • reason ceases, to forbear resuming it.
  • LETTER LXI
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. TUESDAY, APRIL 25.
  • All hands at work in preparation for London.--What makes my heart beat
  • so strong? Why rises it to my throat in such half-choking flutters, when
  • I think of what this removal may do for me? I am hitherto resolved to
  • be honest, and that increases my wonder at these involuntary commotions.
  • 'Tis a plotting villain of a heart: it ever was--and ever will be, I
  • doubt. Such a joy when any roguery is going forward!--I so little its
  • master!--A head, likewise, so well turned to answer the triangular
  • varlet's impulses!--No matter--I will have one struggle with thee, old
  • friend; and if I cannot overcome thee now, I never will again attempt to
  • conquer thee.
  • The dear creature continues extremely low and dejected. Tender blossom!
  • how unfit to contend with the rude and ruffling winds of passion, and
  • haughty and insolent control!--Never till now from under the wing (it is
  • not enough to say of indulging, but) of admiring parents; the mother's
  • bosom only fit to receive this charming flower!
  • This was the reflection, that, with mingled compassion, and augmented
  • love, arose to my mind, when I beheld the charmer reposing her lovely
  • face upon the bosom of the widow Sorlings, from a recovered fit, as I
  • entered soon after she had received her execrable sister's letter. How
  • lovely in her tears!--And as I entered, her uplifted face significantly
  • bespeaking my protection, as I thought. And can I be a villain to such
  • an angel!--I hope not--But why, Belford, why, once more, puttest thou
  • me in mind, that she may be overcome? And why is her own reliance on my
  • honour so late and so reluctantly shown?
  • But, after all, so low, so dejected, continues she to be, that I am
  • terribly afraid I shall have a vapourish wife, if I do marry. I should
  • then be doubly undone. Not that I shall be much at home with her,
  • perhaps, after the first fortnight, or so. But when a man has been
  • ranging, like the painful bee, from flower to flower, perhaps for a
  • month together, and the thoughts of home and a wife begin to have their
  • charms with him, to be received by a Niobe, who, like a wounded vine,
  • weeps her vitals away, while she but involuntary curls about him; how
  • shall I be able to bear that?
  • May Heaven restore my charmer to health and spirits, I hourly pray--that
  • a man may see whether she can love any body but her father and mother!
  • In their power, I am confident, it will be, at any time, to make her
  • husband joyless; and that, as I hate them so heartily, is a shocking
  • thing to reflect upon.--Something more than woman, an angel, in some
  • things; but a baby in others: so father-sick! so family-fond!--What a
  • poor chance stands a husband with such a wife! unless, forsooth, they
  • vouchsafe to be reconciled to her, and continue reconciled!
  • It is infinitely better for her and for me that we should not marry.
  • What a delightful manner of life [O that I could persuade her to
  • it!] would the life of honour be with such a woman! The fears, the
  • inquietudes, the uneasy days, the restless nights; all arising from
  • doubts of having disobliged me! Every absence dreaded to be an
  • absence for ever! And then how amply rewarded, and rewarding, by the
  • rapture-causing return! Such a passion as this keeps love in a continual
  • fervour--makes it all alive. The happy pair, instead of sitting dozing
  • and nodding at each other, in opposite chimney-corners, in a winter
  • evening, and over a wintry love, always new to each other, and having
  • always something to say.
  • Thou knowest, in my verses to my Stella, my mind on this occasion.
  • I will lay those verses in her way, as if undesignedly, when we are
  • together at the widow's; that is to say, if we do not soon go to church
  • by consent. She will thence see what my notions are of wedlock. If she
  • receives them with any sort of temper, that will be a foundation--and
  • let me alone to build upon it.
  • Many a girl has been carried, who never would have been attempted, had
  • she showed a proper resentment, when her ears, or her eyes were first
  • invaded. I have tried a young creature by a bad book, a light quotation,
  • or an indecent picture; and if she has borne that, or only blushed, and
  • not been angry; and more especially if she has leered and smiled; that
  • girl have I, and old Satan, put down for our own. O how I could warn
  • these little rogues, if I would! Perhaps envy, more than virtue, will
  • put me upon setting up beacons for them, when I grow old and joyless.
  • TUESDAY AFTERNOON.
  • If you are in London when I get thither, you will see me soon. My
  • charmer is a little better than she was: her eyes show it; and her
  • harmonious voice, hardly audible last time I saw her, now begins to
  • cheer my heart once more. But yet she has no love--no sensibility!
  • There is no addressing her with those meaning, yet innocent freedoms
  • (innocent, at first setting out, they may be called) which soften others
  • of her sex. The more strange this, as she now acknowledges preferable
  • favour for me; and is highly susceptible of grief. Grief mollifies,
  • and enervates. The grieved mind looks round it, silently implores
  • consolation, and loves the soother. Grief is ever an inmate with joy.
  • Though they won't show themselves at the same window at one time; yet
  • they have the whole house in common between them.
  • LETTER LXII
  • MR. LOVELACE, TO JOHN BELFORD, ESQ. WEDN. APRIL 26.
  • At last my lucky star has directed us into the desired port, and we are
  • safely landed.--Well says Rowe:--
  • The wise and active conquer difficulties,
  • By daring to attempt them. Sloth and folly
  • Shiver and shrink at sight of toil and hazard,
  • And make th' impossibility they fear.
  • But in the midst of my exultation, something, I know not what to call
  • it, checks my joys, and glooms over my brighter prospects: if it be not
  • conscience, it is wondrously like what I thought so, many, many years
  • ago.
  • Surely, Lovelace, methinks thou sayest, thy good motions are not gone
  • off already! Surely thou wilt not now at last be a villain to this lady!
  • I can't tell what to say to it. Why would not the dear creature accept
  • of me, when I so sincerely offered myself to her acceptance? Things
  • already appear with a very different face now I have got her here.
  • Already have our mother and her daughters been about me:--'Charming
  • lady! What a complexion! What eyes! What majesty in her person!--O
  • Mr. Lovelace, you are a happy man! You owe us such a lady!'--Then they
  • remind me of my revenge, and of my hatred to her whole family.
  • Sally was so struck with her, at first sight, that she broke out to me
  • in these lines of Dryden:--
  • ----Fairer to be seen
  • Than the fair lily on the flow'ry green!
  • More fresh than May herself in blossoms new!
  • I sent to thy lodgings within half an hour after our arrival, to receive
  • thy congratulation upon it, but thou wert at Edgeware, it seems.
  • My beloved, who is charmingly amended, is retired to her constant
  • employment, writing. I must content myself with the same amusement, till
  • she shall be pleased to admit me to her presence: for already have I
  • given to every one her cue.
  • And, among the rest, who dost thou think is to be her maid
  • servant?--Deb. Butler.
  • Ah, Lovelace!
  • And Ah, Belford!--It can't be otherwise. But what dost think Deb's name
  • is to be? Why, Dorcas, Dorcas Wykes. And won't it be admirable, if,
  • either through fear, fright, or good liking, we can get my beloved to
  • accept of Dorcas Wykes for a bed-fellow?
  • In so many ways will it be now in my power to have the dear creature,
  • that I shall not know which of them to choose!
  • But here comes the widow with Dorcas Wykes in her hand, and I am to
  • introduce them both to my fair-one?
  • *****
  • So, the honest girl is accepted--of good parentage--but, through a
  • neglected education, plaguy illiterate: she can neither write, nor
  • read writing. A kinswoman of Mrs. Sinclair--could not therefore well be
  • refused, the widow in person recommending her; and the wench only taken
  • till her Hannah can come. What an advantage has an imposing or forward
  • nature over a courteous one! So here may something arise to lead into
  • correspondencies, and so forth. To be sure a person need not be so wary,
  • so cautious of what she writes, or what she leaves upon her table, or
  • toilette, when her attendant cannot read.
  • It would be a miracle, as thou sayest, if this lady can save
  • herself--And having gone so far, how can I recede? Then my revenge upon
  • the Harlowes!--To have run away with a daughter of theirs, to make her
  • a Lovelace--to make her one of a family so superior to her own--what a
  • triumph, as I have heretofore observed,* to them! But to run away
  • with her, and to bring her to my lure in the other light, what a
  • mortification of their pride! What a gratification of my own!
  • Then these women are continually at me. These women, who, before my
  • whole soul and faculties were absorbed in the love of this single
  • charmer, used always to oblige me with the flower and first fruits of
  • their garden! Indeed, indeed, my goddess should not have chosen this
  • London widow's! But I dare say, if I had, she would not. People who will
  • be dealing in contradiction ought to pay for it. And to be punished by
  • the consequences of our own choice--what a moral lies there!--What a
  • deal of good may I not be the occasion of from a little evil!
  • Dorcas is a neat creature, both in person and dress; her continuance not
  • vulgar. And I am in hopes, as I hinted above, that her lady will accept
  • of her for her bedfellow, in a strange house, for a week or so. But I
  • saw she had a dislike to her at her very first appearance; yet I thought
  • the girl behaved very modestly--over-did it a little perhaps. Her
  • ladyship shrunk back, and looked shy upon her. The doctrine of
  • sympathies and antipathies is a surprising doctrine. But Dorcas will be
  • excessively obliging, and win her lady's favour soon, I doubt not. I
  • am secure in one of the wench's qualities however--she is not to be
  • corrupted. A great point that! since a lady and her maid, when heartily
  • of one party, will be too hard for half a score devils.
  • The dear creature was no less shy when the widow first accosted her at
  • her alighting. Yet I thought that honest Doleman's letter had prepared
  • her for her masculine appearance.
  • And now I mention that letter, why dost thou not wish me joy, Jack?
  • Joy, of what?
  • Why, joy of my nuptials. Know then, that said, is done, with me, when I
  • have a mind to have it so; and that we are actually man and wife! only
  • that consummation has not passed: bound down to the contrary of that,
  • by a solemn vow, till a reconciliation with her family take place. The
  • women here are told so. They know it before my beloved knows it; and
  • that, thou wilt say, is odd.
  • But how shall I do to make my fair-one keep her temper on the
  • intimation? Why, is she not here? At Mrs. Sinclair's?--But if she will
  • hear reason, I doubt not to convince her, that she ought to acquiesce.
  • She will insist, I suppose, upon my leaving her, and that I shall not
  • take up my lodgings under the same roof. But circumstances are changed
  • since I first made her that promise. I have taken all the vacant
  • apartments; and must carry this point also.
  • I hope in a while to get her with me to the public entertainments. She
  • knows nothing of the town, and has seen less of its diversions than
  • ever woman of her taste, her fortune, her endowments, did see. She has,
  • indeed, a natural politeness, which transcends all acquirement. The most
  • capable of any one I ever knew of judging what an hundred things are, by
  • seeing one of a like nature. Indeed she took so much pleasure in her
  • own chosen amusements, till persecuted out of them, that she had neither
  • leisure nor inclination for the town diversions.
  • These diversions will amuse, and the deuce is in it, if a little
  • susceptibility will not put forth, now she receives my address;
  • especially if I can manage it so as to be allowed to live under one roof
  • with her. What though the sensibility be at first faint and reluctant,
  • like the appearance of an early spring-flower in frosty winter, which
  • seems afraid of being nipt by an easterly blast! That will be enough for
  • me.
  • I hinted to thee in a former,* that I had provided books for the lady's
  • in-door amusement. Sally and Polly are readers. My beloved's light
  • closet was their library. And several pieces of devotion have been put
  • in, bought on purpose at second-hand.
  • * See Letter XXXIX. of this volume.
  • I was always for forming a judgment of the reading part of the sex by
  • their books. The observations I have made on this occasion have been of
  • great use to me, as well in England as out of it. The sagacious lady may
  • possibly be as curious in this point as her Lovelace.
  • So much for the present. Thou seest that I have a great deal of business
  • before me; yet I will write again soon.
  • [Mr. Lovelace sends another letter with this; in which he takes notice
  • of young Miss Sorlings's setting out with them, and leaving them at
  • Barnet: but as its contents are nearly the same with those in the
  • Lady's next letter, it is omitted.]
  • END OF VOL.3
  • End of Project Gutenberg's Clarissa, Volume 3 (of 9), by Samuel Richardson
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CLARISSA, VOLUME 3 (OF 9) ***
  • ***** This file should be named 9881.txt or 9881.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/9/8/8/9881/
  • Produced by Julie C. Sparks
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.